Attempted automated wordcount. Please use LibreOffice/MSOffice for an accurate count: 143538 thanks, author! If you wish to have this removed from this list, email ra.llan.pcl+complaints @ gmail.com, making sure to provide proof that you are the author. My Little Chrono Triggers Are Magic Author: Pav Feira Editors: Magical Trevor, Dublio, RTStephens, GaPJaxie, Masked Ferret Cover Art: Inkwell Pony Special Thanks: Void Star and Silverwind The entire /fic/ community My family and friends Hasbro, DHX Media, and Square-Enix Hosted On: Equestria Daily, FimFiction.net, FanFiction.net Table of Contents 1 The Millennial Summer Sun Celebration 4 2 Winding the Pendulum 10 3 The Queen Returns 19 4 At the Castle 26 5 The Queen Is Gone 39 6 I’m Back! 55 7 The Trial 73 8 Escaping the Inevitable 87 9 Across the Ruins... 108 10 Loss of Mind, Loss of Hope 124 11 Endings and Beginnings 132 12 A Sky of Fire and Rainbows 147 13 Making a New Friend 154 14 The Factory Ruins 166 15 What Friends Are For 177 16 The End of Time 188 17 Fiendish Folk 206 18 Faithful Family 218 19 Pushing Forward 231 20 The Hero Appears 256 21 The Hero Is Chosen 269 22 The Rare, Red Rock 290 23 Yee-haw! Hoedown! 303 24 Footsteps! Follow! 323 25 Ambush! Hurry! 345 26 To Reforge Legends 361 27 The Hero is Reborn 396 * * * Chapter 1: The Millennial Summer Sun Celebration 1000 AD Rainbow Dash’s House *clang* “Dash...” *clang* “Rainbow Dash!” *clang* “Good morning, Rainbow Dash!” Rainbow Dash groaned as light flooded her room. She rolled over in her bed and used her wing to push her comforter up over her face, shielding herself from the unmerciful daylight. “Mmgph,” she proclaimed. “Ahh, Diane’s Bell sounds so beautiful in the morning!” Aurora Glow walked over from the window to her daughter’s bed, smiling patiently. “Come on, Dash. Rise and shine!” “Yeah, yeah,” escaped a muffled voice from underneath the comforter. “Just give me ten more minutes.” Aurora Glow smirked as she walked to the staircase leading out of the bedroom. While she loved her daughter with all her heart, the daily routine of rousing her from bed was an exercise in perseverance. Most days, it could easily take an hour or more. But not today, she thought. Today, I have a once-in-a-lifetime, super ultimate weapon. “Oh,” she said matter-of-factly, starting to head downstairs. “I thought you’d been looking forward to the Millennial Summer Sun Celebration.” Behind her, a frantic rustling noise came from the bed. “I guess I’ll let Twilight know that you won’t be able to make it. I’m sure she can find somepony else to give your ticket to.” With a muffled thump, a tangled-up pegasus and her bedsheets fell onto the hardwood floor. Aurora Glow grinned widely as she reached the bottom of the staircase. Thirty nine seconds! I haven’t gotten her out of bed that fast since she was a filly! She headed over to the kitchen to finish preparing breakfast as she listened to the beautiful melody of her daughter getting ready on time: hooves stomping noisily on the wood floor, drawers scraping opened and slamming shut, an occasional muffled curse. She sighed. If only we celebrated the thousandth anniversary of the founding of Sugardia more often. Maybe Dash would be awake in time for lunch more often than not! From upstairs came the shrill creak of a opening window, followed by a slam that lightly shook the wooden house. Aurora Glow’s head jolted; a confused look on her face quickly turned into a scowl. “Rainbow Dash!” she yelled at the ceiling. “What have I told you about coming and going through the windows?! You use the front door like a civilized pony, young lady.” Her shout trailed off, giving way to a light chuckle. She shook her head. “Oh, let her have her fun. Today’s going to be an exciting day, after all.” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 1000 AD Equus Over the town of Equus, a teenage cyan pegasus with a lightning bolt cutie mark flew at breakneck speed. In her wake, she left a rainbow streak and a high-pitched fangirl squeal. “Eee! Omigosh-omigosh-omigosh! The Wonderbolts—the actual Wonderbolts—are going to be right here in Equus for the Millennial Summer Sun Celebration. This is it! Today’s the day! Living the dream! Yeah!” She flipped and rolled across the sky, giddy from the prospect of years of training finally paying off. She firmly smacked her face with her hooves. “Focus, Rainbow. This thing isn’t a done deal. Yet.” She sped through the air above her hometown. In the distance, Rainbow Dash could see Diane’s Square rapidly approaching. “The Wonderbolts’ show doesn’t start for another hour. I need to track down Twi and get my ticket, but that’ll be a snap. Me and her can kill some time at the lame filly carnival crap until the show begins.” Over the rushing wind, she could hear firecrackers popping as dozens of balloons rose into the air. Equus’s fairgrounds were fully decorated for the Celebration. A number of festively colored tents had been set up on the grounds, decorated with ornate banners bearing Sugardia’s royal crest. She could make out dozens—no, hundreds—of ponies roaming the fair, no doubt visiting from all across the kingdom. They wandered about the many booths of Diane’s Square, sampling freshly-baked treats, dancing to live music, and playing carnival games. “The show will be awesome and all, but after the show is when the real excitement begins,” Rainbow Dash said, smirking confidently. “That’s when I’ll take to the skies, introduce myself to the Wonderbolts, and prove to them that I am Wonderbolt material. My unmatchable speed. My insane acrobatic maneuvers. And of course,” she said, glancing behind herself, looking at the worn katana strapped snugly to her back, “my unstoppable sword techniques. They’ll have to let me join. They’ll just have to!” Rainbow Dash reached the airspace above Diane’s Square. About a hundred meters below her, she could see the pedestal where Diane’s Bell hung—a relic from centuries ago. “Right! Twilight said she’d meet up with me just north of Diane’s Bell. Better start looking!” She dove down sharply, racing to the ground. She zipped underneath the bell, flying toward the courtyard to— ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 1000 AD Diane’s Square *clang* “Owww ow-ow-ow...” *clang* “Ouch...” *clang* “Ow.” Rainbow Dash winced sharply. She reached a hoof up, brushing it through her spiky, rainbow-striped mane, and applied pressure over her white bandana, trying to make her head stop throbbing. She was lying flat on her back, but could feel something uncomfortable poking into her back. It doesn’t really hurt though, so I don’t think anything’s broken, she thought. Please let nothing be broken. She could hear a growing number of onlookers coming closer, murmuring questions in a concerned tone. Great. Just great. I just had to crash, today of all days. I swear, if one of the Wonderbolts saw that, my life is as good as— “Ouchie doodles...” Rainbow Dash’s blood froze. No-no-no. It’s fine if I crashed by myself, but if somepony else got hurt because of me... She struggled to open her eyes, but all she could see was a fuzzy pink blur. She rubbed her foreleg across her eyes, trying to clear her vision. When she reopened her eyes, the pink blur snapped into focus. It was the upside down head of a pink earth pony, looking down at her with a worried expression. “Are you okay? You took a really nasty tumble,” said the pink pony. Rainbow Dash tried to utter a reply, but was still too woozy from the crash and couldn’t get her voice to work. It wouldn’t have mattered; the pink pony’s expression quickly turned to a tooth-filled grin as she continued. “I sure did, too! I was walking along like ‘la la la’ and then you flew down here like ‘nyyyyeeeeh’ and then I was like ‘wh-wh-WHOA!’ and then we were like ‘ker-PLOWIE!’ and then I was like ‘ouchie doodles...’ and then I was like ‘are you okay?’ and then you were like—” she inhaled, “and then I was like ‘I sure did, too!’ and then—” She gasped sharply, pupils dilating. She ran out of Rainbow Dash’s field of vision. “No, no-no, no-no-no-no-no!” Rainbow Dash struggled back onto her hooves. Her legs were a bit wobbly, but at least her pain was starting to subside. Looking across the courtyard, she saw the pink pony was frantically bouncing around, digging through bushes and looking under tables. Her tightly curled pink mane and tail, both bound into ponytails with metallic clasps, were swaying back and forth in reaction to her erratic movements. Rainbow Dash caught a glance at her cutie mark: a set of three balloons. She also noticed what appeared to be a strange, elaborate metal leg-guard on her front right leg, but at this distance she couldn’t tell what exactly it was. The crowd of onlookers, after seeing that both mares were back on their hooves, began to disperse. Rainbow Dash stretched and flexed her wings, double-checking that she hadn’t injured anything during the crash. A little sore, but I’ve had way worse. Turning her head, she bit down on the hilt of her katana, pulled it out of its sheath, and rested it on the ground. While the practice katana was somewhat flimsy and not intended for serious combat, it appeared undamaged from the fall. She let out a sigh of relief. Thank the Sun. Looks like it’s still ‘game on’ for the Wonderbolts show. Something in the corner of her eye caught her attention. Turning her head, she saw a of necklace lying on the ground where she had fallen after the crash. Its wide golden band was embroidered with swooping arcs that resembled puffy clouds. Hanging from the center of the necklace was a large blue sapphire, cut in the shape of a balloon. It looked quite ornate and valuable. Rainbow Dash scooped it up with her hoof, looking quizzically at it. Focusing her eyes beyond the necklace, she saw that the pink pony was still panicking in the background. Rainbow Dash picked up and sheathed her katana, draped the necklace over her hoof, and flew over to the pink pony. “Hey.” The pink pony let out another gasp, leaping a meter into the air, reaching eye-to-eye with the hovering Rainbow Dash. “My necklace! Oh, thank goodness! I must’ve lost it when we crashed! I was starting to worry that it was gone forever.” “Yeah, looks like I landed on top of it. Sorry. I noticed that the stone looked like your cutie mark, so I kinda figured—” Her face fell. “Oh, yeah. I guess you could say that I was destined to have it.” “Here.” Rainbow Dash hovered down to her, hung the necklace around her neck, and fastened the clasp. The blue balloon gleamed in the morning sun. “Thanks.” The pony’s eyes were fixated on the ground in front of Rainbow Dash. Rainbow Dash rubbed the back of her neck with her hoof. She glanced toward the north, where Twilight Sparkle was supposed to be waiting for her. “Yeah, so anyway, I gotta get going. Sorry again. See ya!” She started to fly off in the direction of her friend. “Hey!” The pink pony’s tone snapped back to the perky demeanor that Rainbow Dash had heard shortly after the crash. She bounced merrily after the pegasus. “Do you live around here? This is my first Millennial Summer Sun Celebration. Well, duh, of course it’s my first millennial celebration, hahaha! What I meant was that this is my first celebration like this in Equus! And I don’t have any friends in this town.” She gasped, “But we could be friends! Bestest of best friends! Could you show me around? I’d love to see what kind of parties you Equustian girls have!” Rainbow Dash winced. Not only did she not have time to be a tour guide, but the chatty, hyperactive pony was starting to grind on her nerves. “Look, I...” she said, looking over her shoulder. The pink pony’s face was frozen in a wide-mouthed, excited grin. She was looking up at Rainbow Dash with expectant, glistening eyes. “I...” Rainbow Dash slowly felt her resolve melt. Ugh. I guess I DO owe her for crashing into her. She sighed. “Okay okay, fine! You can tag along, but I’ve got important plans today. So when I say I gotta jet, then that’s it. Alright?” Her mouth pursed into a catlike grin. “Allll right! Let’s go!” She joyfully pranced several meters ahead of Rainbow Dash. She stopped abruptly, hopping in place. Without dropping a beat, she pranced backwards, stopping next to Rainbow Dash. “Say, bestest of best friends? I forgot to ask what your name is.” Rainbow Dash paused, dumbstruck. Recovering with a shake of her head, she puffed out her chest and flashed a smug grin. “I’m Rainbow Dash! Fastest pegasus in Sugardia and, by tonight, newest member of the Wonderbolts!” She smiled. “Allll right, Dashie! Let’s go!” She began moving forward again. “And you are?” She froze in midair, turning to look back at Rainbow Dash. “Oh, uh, you can call me Pinkie Pie! That’s what all my friends call me, anyway!” Dropping to the ground, she resumed her bouncing, heading toward the festivities in the south. Rainbow Dash rubbed her temple with a hoof. “Ugh, of all possible days—H-Hey, Pinkie Pie! Stop! Twilight is... the other way.” She looked apprehensively to the north before flying after Pinkie Pie. * * * Chapter 2: Winding the Pendulum 1000 AD Diane’s Square Rainbow Dash bucked the striking pad of the strength test game with all her might. Its projectile flew up and struck the bell, delivering a satisfying ring. “Yay!” Pinkie Pie hopped excitedly from hoof to hoof, cheering her new friend. “Way to go, Dashie!” “Very impressive!” said the unicorn working the game. Using his horn’s magic, he drew another Silver Point on Rainbow Dash’s festival activities card. Rainbow Dash grinned smugly, posing with one leg triumphantly raised. Damn straight. “Ooo! Ooo! I wanna try! I wanna try!” Pinkie Pie charged at the game. She leapt into the air, tilting her head straight up. With a violent flourish, she smashed her head face-first into the striking pad. The game’s bell rang out, signaling her victory. She shook her head rapidly to recover from the impact, then smiled. “Woohoo!” The game operator struggled to find a complement as he presented Pinkie Pie with a Silver Point. “That was very, uh, impressive as well. Most ponies opt to buck with their hooves, though.” Rainbow Dash rolled her eyes, and in doing so, she noticed the clock tower in the center of the square. “Gyah!” She leapt into the air and started flying north. “We wasted too much time! I’m going to be late!” Pinkie Pie bounced after her friend. “Hey Rainbow Dash! Hey Rainbow Dash! Where should we go next? How about I watch you fight Gaito again?” “No.” “Ooo, we could see the show at Horstein Buckler’s lab—” “No.” “Orrr, there’s that apple cider guzzling competition! I bet you could—” “No!” “Mmm, yeah, I guess you’re right. If you don’t have a turbo controller, then—” “Pinkie Pie, I’m—wait, what?” Rainbow Dash gave Pinkie Pie a baffled look, but shook her head clear. “Whatever. Look. I’m supposed to be meeting up with a friend right now. It’s really important.” Pinkie Pie’s eyes lit up. “One of your friends?! Oh boy, can I meet them, too? I just love making new friends, and making two new friends in the same day would be CANDY!” She froze in front of a candy stall. Her mouth watered over as her eyes rapidly hopped across the rows of sugary treats. Rainbow Dash scrunched up her face. “Look, we’re meeting right over that way. I’ll go on ahead and you can—” “Hold on! Hold on! This’ll only take a second!” “Ugh.” Rainbow Dash floated over to the stand and crossed her hooves in front of her chest, glaring at Pinkie Pie impatiently. “Oh wow! There’s lollipops and pop rocks and chocolate bars and gummy bears and berry-filled pastries and barely-filled pastries and—” “Nope, time’s up.” Rainbow Dash swooped behind Pinkie Pie, bit down on her tail, and dragged her away from the candy cart. “Come on. Move it. Let’s go!” “Eep! Hey! Stop! Let go of me! Stop dragging me like some foalnapper! Nooo...” She flailed helplessly at the candy cart, trying in vain to grab something tasty. “Just what do you think you’re doing?!” In shock, Rainbow Dash released her bite on Pinkie Pie’s tail, the latter of whom fell flat on her belly with a squeak. Before Rainbow Dash could look around, she felt a familiar tingling sensation envelop her body. Suddenly, she was pulled sharply through the air to the left. “Yah!” she yelped. Just as suddenly, the tugging stopped. Off-balance, Rainbow Dash collapsed awkwardly on the ground. She quickly leapt back up to her hooves, and was met nose-to-nose with an irate lavender unicorn. “Where have you been?” scolded Twilight Sparkle. “I’ve been looking everywhere for you!” “Sorry, Twilight, I’d been trying to...” Looking up, Rainbow Dash noticed that Twilight Sparkle’s horn was glowing with a magenta light. Rainbow Dash had just been the target of telekinesis magic, but this came as no surprise to her. What did surprise her was Twilight Sparkle’s new hat. It was a green dome with a gold riveted border, covering a large section of her purple, highlight-streaked mane. Her right ear was completely hidden by a gold plated shell, which had both a microphone and an antenna protruding from it. The thing that stood out most to Rainbow Dash about this helmet was how incredibly lame Twilight Sparkle looked in it. “I like your hat,” she said, failing to keep a straight face. Twilight Sparkle scowled, ignoring her friend’s attempt to change the topic. “You were supposed to help me demonstrate my new invention today, remember?” “I was?” Rainbow Dash asked, raising an eyebrow. “The invention I’ve been working on for the past year? The one you yourself volunteered to help me demonstrate? We went over all of this yesterday at lunch?” Rainbow Dash stared blankly. Twilight Sparkle buried her face in her hoof. “It’s fine. I expected you to be like this today. And besides, we still have time. We’ve still got a big crowd waiting up ahead. C’mon.” She nudged Rainbow Dash in the direction of her invention. “H-Hey, wait! Twi, I’m sorry. I know you said I promised, and I probably did promise and then forgot, but the Wonderbolts are—” “—are not going to perform for another few minutes,” she said, smiling gently. “And you weren’t planning to perform your routine for them until after their show was finished, anyway. Don’t worry, we’ll have plenty of time. I know that you’ve been dreaming of joining the Wonderbolts ever since you first saw their show a decade ago. I’d never ask you to jeopardize your own dreams in order to help me with mine.” Rainbow Dash smiled back meekly. “Okay, okay. Sheesh, no need to get all mushy, you big doofus. Let’s hurry up and show off your, uh, Super Intentional Derp Turtle-Frog.” “Super Dimensional Warp Telepod.” “Right.” Grinning, they trotted off together towards the invention’s display. “Chocolate covered daffodils, marshmallows covered in cinnamon sugar... ooo! Deep fried hay!” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 1000 AD Diane’s Square—Telepod As Rainbow Dash and Twilight Sparkle approached the crowd of ponies gathered in front of the Telepod, they heard a voice drifting above the commotion. “—of the century! No, of the millennium! Just imagine! Instead of having to walk or fly, you could warp across the world in the blink of an eye! Rather than wait for a shipment of apples to arrive in town, get them instantly delivered farm-fresh to your house, on demand! History will remember the year 1000 AD, my friends! I guarantee you, my beautiful daughter’s invention will change the future forever!” “Don’t bother,” scoffed a pegasus in the crowd. “Every one of Twilight Sparkle’s inventions ends up on fire. Every last one.” “Pfft, enough stalling! Teleport something, already!” yelled another pony. The dissenters in the crowd grew louder and more insistent. As Rainbow Dash approached, she saw that the deep blue unicorn at the front of the pack was trying to keep everypony from leaving. “Yes! Yes, of course! The show will begin shortly. We’re just waiting for—” Night Light gasped. “Twilight Sparkle! Fillies and gentlecolts, my daughter has returned and... yes! Yes, she tracked down our assistant pony. Who’s ready to see the fireworks?” The crowd cheered and stomped a round of applause. Twilight Sparkle quickly led Rainbow Dash up to the device, and nudged her forward. The pegasus looked the machine over in confusion. It was primarily composed of a pair of metallic pedestals with matching awnings. The floor and ceiling of each platform were covered with an array of pale blue glowing lights, one of which was starting to burn out. Each platform was connected to a nearby terminal with a myriad of wires and tubes. There was a small puddle of oil underneath the left platform. The air was permeated with the smell of burning ozone. Yep, Twilight definitely made this, Rainbow Dash thought, sizing up the machine. At least it looks slightly less... explodey than normal. “So, uh, Twi?” she asked as she was being shoved onto the left platform. “What exactly do I need to do?” “Just stand right here, on the transfer pad.” “Okaaay?” “All systems on!” Using her horn, Twilight Sparkle activated the controls on the right console. “Begin energy transfer!” Her father followed suit on the left console. The Telepod came to life with a pervasively loud humming. The lights on the platform glowed brightly, fluctuating in time with the humming. Rainbow Dash felt a tingling sensation. It felt similar to earlier, when Twilight Sparkle’s magic had grabbed her, yet inexplicably different. A few arcs of electricity danced around in the air around her. Suddenly, the audience exploded with cheering. “Yes-yes-yes-yes-yes! It worked! IT WORKED!” Twilight Sparkle bounced excitedly in front of Rainbow Dash. She glanced nervously at her friend, then back at the crowd. “Ahaha... Yes, of course it worked, exactly as intended.” She grinned sheepishly. Rainbow Dash was thoroughly confused. “So, is it over? Nothing happened. Wait, I thought you were standing over by the other platform. Why are you over here now?” From behind, Pinkie Pie threw her foreleg around Rainbow Dash’s back, causing the latter pony to jump in surprise. “Oh, Rainbow Dash, don’t be silly! She didn’t move; you did! See? First, you were over there,” she pointed to the left pad, “and then zip, now you’re here!” She giggled, fishing out another piece of licorice from the bag in her hooves. “Wha—Pinkie Pie? When did you get here?” “Yes indeed, fillies and gentlecolts!” said Night Light. “Our assistant’s molecular structure was torn down, digitally encoded, wirelessly transmitted, and programatically reassembled at the other end. In layman’s terms: teleportation! Let’s hear another round of applause for Miss Twilight Sparkle!” The crowd was happy to oblige. Pinkie Pie’s eyes lit up. “Hey, can I try it too? Can-I-can-I-can-I?” She raced over to the left platform, looking expectantly at Twilight Sparkle. “Huh? Rainbow, is she a friend of yours?” Twilight Sparkle smirked mischievously, nudging her friend in the ribs. “Hey, how did you pick up a cutie like her?” Rainbow Dash glared daggers at her friend. “For the last time, I’m not—” “I’ll be right back, Dashie!” Pinkie Pie danced energetically on the platform. “Woo! Yeah!” Rainbow Dash stepped down from the Telepod and trotted out into the crowd to watch. Twilight Sparkle and her father returned to their posts, initializing the device for a second run. “All systems on!” “Begin energy transfer!” The machine whirled back to life, complete with its humming, flashing, and smoke. As before, lightning bolts tore through the air around the platform. Pinkie Pie looked down expectantly at herself, awaiting her teleportation. Her expression shifted to confusion when the electricity coursed through her necklace. “Huh? What’s happening with my necklace? It’s—” “Yah!” Night Light yelped as the electricity formed a circuit between Pinkie Pie’s necklace and the two Telepod consoles. Warning klaxons sounded as the Telepod’s lights and readouts flashed erratically. He screamed over the din, “Shut it down! Twi, we need to shut it down!” Before father or daughter could react, Pinkie Pie disappeared. Her necklace clattering to the ground. With a forceful explosion of air and energy, an oscillating black and violet sphere materialized between the Telepod’s two platforms. Several spectating ponies screamed and braced themselves against the wind emanating from the sphere. Rainbow Dash’s and Twilight Sparkle’s eyes went wide with horror as Pinkie Pie reappeared, not on the Telepod’s second platform, but within the swirling vortex before them. Pinkie Pie reached out a hoof toward Rainbow Dash and opened her mouth as the sphere collapsed around her. The pony and sphere both vanished. Twilight Sparkle and Rainbow Dash turned to look at each other, mortified. A few ponies in the crowd stood up, murmuring to each other, trying to make sense of what they had just seen. Night Light, quickly regaining his composure, locked a forced grin on his face. “Ah, s-she’s vanished! Quite a magic show, eh folks! Thanks you so much for attending! Please enjoy the rest of your day at the Millennial Summer Sun Celebration!” Confused yet sufficiently satisfied, the crowds began to disperse. When enough of them had left earshot, he dropped the facade and turned back around. “Twi, what just happened? Where is she?!” She frantically flipped through her notebooks and a research manual that she had brought along in her saddlebags. “I don’t know. I don’t know! Obviously, the electromagnetic phase distortion reacted to the positronic quotient of that necklace, which amplified the flux multiplier. But that bizarre energy reaction... I’ve never seen anything like that!” A distant voice rose from the trees behind them. “Ponies of Sugardia, without any further ado, we present to you: the Wonderbolts!” Rainbow Dash jerked her head and turned to look. The show was starting. Her show. Her one chance to grasp her dreams. “Well, can we get her back? What do to do?” Night Light asked his daughter. “I just need to figure out what that vortex was. Oh, horse apples! I didn’t pack any books on spatial irregularities in my saddlebags!” She furrowed her brow, tapping her forehead with her hoof. “And I know that I’ve seen that pony before, somewhere. But where? Ugh, we just need more time.” Rainbow Dash could hear wild cheering from the distance as the Wonderbolts started their performance. She closed her eyes. I only met that pony an hour ago. I have no idea what just happened to her. I have no idea if she’s even alive still! I need to get over there and prove myself to the Wonderbolts. I need to stick to my plan. She looked up into the sky. Right? “I’ll try to hold down the stables here, in case anypony starts asking questions,” said Night Light. “That should give you enough time to run back home and grab your books.” “Okay, I’ll hurry. I’ll grab a few reference guides and some materials to—Rainbow?” Slowly and deliberated, Rainbow Dash leaned down and picked the necklace up with her teeth. Stepping onto the Telepod’s platform, she turned around and stared at her friend. Twilight Sparkle was awestruck; she had never seen Rainbow Dash look so determined in her life, not even with Wonderbolt-related matters. “You... you’re serious, aren’t you?” “I only met that pony an hour ago. She’s kinda annoying, she screwed up my plans, and I have no idea what just happened to her. But, she’s my friend,” Rainbow Dash said, teeth tightly clamped down on the necklace. “And I never abandon my friends. Pinkie Pie is all alone, trapped in that weird purple portal thingy, and I’m gonna save her. Even if...” Her voice faltered as she looked to the treeline. Twilight Sparkle smiled warmly. “Rainbow...” “This is insane,” groaned Night Light. He shifted his gaze rapidly the two teenaged ponies. “We don’t know what happened to her. Frankly, we don’t even know if she’s still alive.” He winced at his own bluntness. Twilight Sparkle closed her eyes. “I know it’s incredibly risky, but right now, it’s our only hope of saving her. If we can get the Telepod to react to that necklace once more, then Rainbow should be able to follow after her friend. Then, once I’ve figured out what the hay is going on here, I can bring everypony back. In theory.” Rainbow Dash stomped her hoof on the platform. “You heard Twilight! We’re gonna save Pinkie Pie, whether you help us or not!” Night Light looked back and forth between his daughter and her friend. Their eyes burned with passion; their faces were cold and determined. He closed his eyes and chuckled. “There’s no chance of talking you two out of this, is there?” Opening his eyes, he smiled and nodded. They enthusiastically nodded back. “All systems on!” Twilight Sparkle raced back to her console. “Begin energy transfer!” Night Light’s eyes met Rainbow Dash’s one last time before focusing on his console. The lights underneath the Telepod’s platforms grew dim as the system was strained once more. The humming, once even and soothing, took on a pained and irregular rhythm. Thick smoke billowed from the right console. Most worrying of all, Rainbow Dash didn’t feel the telltale tingling sensation that she had felt the first time she had been teleported. “More power!” commanded Twilight Sparkle, adjusting several levers as her father did likewise. “Release all inhibitors! Give her everything she’s got!” The Telepod groaned in agony. A small fire erupted on Twilight Sparkle’s console, which she frantically tried to blow out with her breath. A few of the light bulbs in the floor shorted and burnt out. The oil puddle beneath the device grew rapidly. Rainbow Dash looked at the failing machine underneath her with trepidation. As if in response to her doubts, a familiar tingle overtook her body. A bolt of electricity shot between the consoles. It danced wildly in the air around her before leaping into Pinkie Pie’s necklace. The space between the Telepod’s platforms tore apart, once again revealing the swirling mass of purple and black. “We did it!” Twilight Sparkle cheered from the sidelines. “Hang on, Dash!” The pegasus vanished, then reappeared within the mass. The waves of distorted space-time rippled around her, pulling her deeper into the void. As she looked out, the hole leading to the outside world slowly started to seal itself up. Her friend’s voice drifted to Rainbow Dash as if from inside a seashell. “Find Pinkie Pie and stay put! I’ll try to find you as soon as I know what went wrong. Good luck, Rainbow Dash!” With that, the outside world disappeared from view. The waves of purple energy fluctuated around Rainbow Dash. A loud rushing noise engulfed her, like storm winds racing through a large cavern. She felt herself being pulled forward by some unseen force. Or was it sideways? Downward, perhaps? For the first time since she was a filly in Junior Speedster Flight Camp, she felt an overwhelming sense of vertigo. She felt as though her vision was falling to the back of her brain, as her depth perception skewed wildly. She closed her eyes tightly and curled into a ball, wishing for the sensation to stop. And then it did. * * * Chapter 3: The Queen Returns ??? Unknown Clearing Rainbow Dash opened her eyes. She was curled up in a grassy clearing. She could hear a river gurgling nearby. A gentle breeze rustled the leaves and blew gently through her mane. A few birds chirped from the trees around her. There was no trace of Pinkie Pie, Twilight Sparkle, the fairgrounds, or even the strange portal. Becoming self-aware, she realized that her jaw was still locked tightly. Pinkie Pie’s necklace dangled from her mouth. Looking behind her, she saw that the rest of her possessions were still on her ponyself. She flipped open her saddlebags and tucked the necklace securely inside. She got back to her hooves and started to trot out of the clearing. Pinkie Pie only disappeared a few minutes ago, so she couldn’t have gone far. I’ll just need to hurry up and find her. Instinctively, she froze in her tracks and ripped her katana out of its sheath. Something’s wrong, she thought. The birds had stopped chirping. An eerie silence overtook the forest. The bushes surrounding the clearing rustled noisily as a trio of creatures leapt out at her. Rainbow Dash flared her wings in surprise. “Imps?” she gasped. “Here?” The monsters grinned, exposing their sharp fangs. Half of their height was their bulbous green head, supported by a tiny shriveled body. The creatures were able to balance eerily well on their two legs. They slowly encircled her with clawed hands outstretched. Gripping her sword’s hilt in her mouth, Rainbow Dash stood her ground, closing her eyes and lowering her head. The imps cackled gleefully as they closed around her. One of the imps reached his paw up to grab her rainbow-striped tail. Rainbow Dash’s eyes snapped open. She leapt to the air, flying around her foes in a tight spiral. With each lap, she gashed the imps with her katana. The imps cried out in pain with each repeated slash. Her Cyclone attack spun faster and faster, ravaging her foes. One by one, the imps’ screams fell silent. She slowed herself out of the spiral, coming to a stop above the clearing. She hovered in place, inspecting the carnage below her. The taste of bile rose up in her mouth. Well, cool. Now I’m a murderer. She sighed. I mean, at least it was in self-defense. Besides, Wonderbolts aren’t allowed to be squeamish. I wasn’t going to stick to fighting practice dummies forever. She frowned as she studied the three corpses below her. Still though, imps? I thought they only lived in Palomedina, across the ocean. I mean, they haven’t been seen in Sugardia since, uh, like... Bah, where’s Twilight when you need her? Rainbow Dash flew higher above the clearing, gaining a larger view of her surroundings. The woods were located in a small canyon. The tree cover here wasn’t that thick; she could clearly make out a river—the one she had heard earlier—coursing its path through the canyon’s floor. No signs of a pink pony, and more worrisome to Rainbow Dash, no signs of Diane’s Square. Where did the Celebration go? Where am I? Wait-a-minute, wait-a-minute. She tapped her hoof thoughtfully against her temple. That Turtle-Frog invention of Twilight’s could move me from place to place, right? So, maybe I’m in a different town? She looked to the south. Her visibility was poor due to a dense fog that blanketed the landscape, but the view was quite familiar to her. She could make out the outlines of the shops and houses of Equus, just where she expected them. Looking to the west, she could clearly see the silhouette of Sugardia Castle, perched atop a small hill surrounded by forest. Nope, this is Equus alright. So what the hay is going on? She shook her head. First thing’s first. I need to track down Pinkie Pie. Maybe she headed into town? I’ll check by home first, see if Mom knows if anypony has seen her. She flew off in the direction of her house. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ ??? Equus? Rainbow Dash’s mouth was agape. Her wings hung limply by her side. She stood in her front yard. At least, she stood on what should have been her front yard. Her house was completely absent. The grassy field that she was standing on was flat and undisturbed, as if the house had never existed. But that can’t—This is—My house should be right here! There’s my neighbor’s house, here’s where mine should be, there’s the coastline, down the coastline is... She did a double-take. Where the heck did the ferry docks go? She remembered those docks being built when she was a filly. It had taken most of the townsponies the better part of two years to construct. Now, they were gone. “Well, fine,” Rainbow Dash said aloud, frustration and uncertainty creeping into her voice. She took to the air again. “Next stop is Twi’s house. Even if she and her dad are still at the fairgrounds—wherever the hell that went—her mom should still be around, so I can ask her wha—ahhh!” she screamed. Twilight Sparkle’s house was also missing. The island upon which it was supposed to be built was completely barren. Even the bridge which should have connected the island to the mainland was nowhere to be seen. She glared off into the distance and snorted. “Enough is enough. Somepony is going to tell me what’s going on here.” Looking around, she saw that the town’s inn was nearby. “I don’t care who tells me. I don’t care how many ponies I have to bug. I’m getting some answers.” She landed with a muffled thud on the grass in front of the building. She bumped the inn’s door open with her snout and stepped inside. The inn looked much dingier than she remembered it. The decor was wooden and rough, not painted and polished. Most of the furnishings were haphazardly constructed out of irregularly shaped boards, instead of the fine craftsponyship she was used to seeing in town. It was a far cry from the cheery quaint town that Rainbow Dash remembered growing up in. “What’ll it be, stranger?” asked the middle-aged mustachioed stallion behind the bar. “I, well, I just...” her voice cracked. She felt a hard lump in her throat. Who is that guy? He doesn’t look familiar. She quickly scanned the bar’s patrons, feeling her determination drain away. Nopony looks familiar! She cleared her throat and asked the first question that came to mind. “Where am I?” She immediately cringed at how dim the question must have sounded. Confirming her fear, the bartender laughed. It was a good-natured laugh, but this was of little consolation to Rainbow Dash. “So, I was right; you’re not from around here. Didn’t think I recognized the face. This here is the town of Equus, located in the heart of Sugardia.” I knew it! I knew this had to be my hometown, but... “So, uh, where’s the Celebration then? It was right here.” A mare at the bar scoffed. “Celebration. Aye, we’ve got plenty to celebrate. A toast, everypony!” She sarcastically raised her glass using her horn’s magic. “In celebration of Nightmare Moon’s army destroying our homes and enslaving us all!” Her husband tapped her gently yet sternly with his hind leg. “Hush. Everypony’s morale is low enough without all the theatrics. Besides,” he quickly added, a look of relief overcoming him, “it’s not all bad news. The Queen was finally found! Ain’t that right, Lady Firefly?” A pink pegasus with a curly teal mane, clad in heavy plate armor, nodded solemnly. Rainbow Dash noticed how odd her outfit was; the pony looked like she belonged in a Renaissance faire, not an inn in the middle of her hometown. But right now, Rainbow Dash’s head was swimming with so many questions that the other pegasus’s medieval armor was the least of her worries. “Yeah,” Firefly answered, looking up from her drink. “Found her wandering around up in the canyon, not more than ten minutes ago. My troops are taking her back to the castle straightaway, safe and sound.” A few ponies at the bar stomped their hooves in applause. Rainbow Dash scratched her head. “No, that doesn’t make any sense at all. That canyon isn’t even supposed to be there! Just this morning, there were fairgrounds there instead. It was all decorated for the Millennial Summer Sun Celebration.” The dour mare scoffed again. “I just told you. It may be the longest day of the year today, but the town is in no mood to hold a Cele—” She paused. “Did you say... Millennial Summer Sun Celebration?” The bar patrons’ conversations ground to a halt. Their attention turned to the rainbow-striped pony who was spouting nonsense. Firefly gave her a sideways glance, arching an eyebrow. “‘Millennial’ as in the thousandth year of Sugardia? That won’t come about for a few more centuries, hun.” Rainbow Dash’s heart stopped. “C-centuries?” Her eyes twitched around the room. Several of the ponies were staring intently at her, whispering amongst themselves. “T-that can’t be right. It’s the year 1000.” She turned to the bartender. “Right?” Please tell me I’m right. The bartender remained silent for a moment. Forcing a smile, he shook his head. “Come now, dear. You mustn’t be such a prankster. You know full well it’s only the year 600.” Rainbow Dash’s eyes lost focus on the bartender. They wandered down the wall behind him, coming to a stop at the bar’s surface. After a moment of awkward silence, she became vaguely aware that everypony in the bar was waiting for her response. “Yeah. Sorry,” she managed to hoarsely reply. She rested her head on the bar and closed her eyes. Sympathetically, the bartender drew her a mug of apple cider and placed it next to her on the bar. He wandered down the bar to where Firefly stood, and they exchanged a worried glance. Firefly whispered to the bartender; she was trying not to be overheard, but the room was still so quiet that Rainbow Dash could clearly make out what she was saying. “Poor girl. Must’ve been caught up in the fighting with Nightmare Moon’s forces. Not the first pony I’ve seen who’s lost their marbles in all this chaos.” The bartender nodded solemnly. Rainbow Dash clamped her eyes tightly shut, trapping the hot tears behind her eyelids. I’m not crazy! You are! All of you! I know it was the Millennial Summer Sun Celebration. Millennial as in 1000 AD! That’s why the Wonderbolts were there. And Twilight. And Pinkie. And... everything... She leaned against the bar, waiting to wake up from the nightmare. Mercifully, the bar patrons gradually started talking amongst themselves again. Only a few talked about the cuckoo rainbow pony who had just wandered into the inn, while most returned to their original conversations. Rainbow Dash let herself get lost in the ambient white noise, trying to shut her brain off and forget everything that was happening. Some time had passed before she was snapped back to reality by the sound of hoofsteps walking up to her, and stopping next to her at the bar. No. Leave me alone. “Begging your pardon, miss. I noticed you don’t seem to be around from these here parts. Me neither. No ma’am. Reckon I’m what you might call an adventuring type. Name’s Braeburn. If I could be so bold, what do they call a pretty lil’ thing like yourself?” Shut up. Go away. “I, uh, I do hate to be imposing so, on account of we just having met and all, but I don’t suppose you could help a fellow traveler out? Spare a few bits for a drink? I’d be mighty grateful.” If he’s drinking, then he’s not talking. Without lifting her head, Rainbow Dash reached up and nudged her cider toward Braeburn. “Aaaapple cider, my favorite! Mighty kind of you, Miss...” He paused, waiting for her to offer her name. She didn’t. “Yes ma’am, it’s a rare breed that’ll show kindness to a wanderer like me, nowadays. Most ponyfolk wouldn’t give me the time of day at all.” He slurped loudly from the mug of cider. The straw. Of course. So much for keeping him quiet. Braeburn sighed deeply. “Nothing like an aaaapple cider to quench the thirst and lift the spirits. And of course, I do so intend to repay you for your generosity. Not with bits, mind,” he chuckled nervously, “on account that I’m, ah, currently between jobs, you might say. But hey, you can’t put a price on good information!” He lowered his voice. “S’about the missing Queen, bless her soul. Rumor has it that she was last seen round the abbey, west of the castle. Foul tales of some shady types, hidden deep within. If you were so inclined, us adventuring types could go look for her together. Reckon the reward for a pair of heroes would be quite handsome.” Rainbow Dash opened an eye and looked up from the surface of the bar. The yellow pony gave her a wide, earnest smile. His large cowboy hat was tipped back gently, letting his breezy amber mane slightly cover his eyes and forehead. “You’re too late,” Rainbow Dash said, pointing down the bar at Firefly. “That one already found her in the canyon.” “Wha—Already found? In the canyon, you said? Shoot, I checked there twice, top to bottom...” He shook his head, replacing his look of disappointment with a wide smile. “Still, this is reason to celebrate! Our Queen is safe and sound at last.” Standing back, he kicked up on his hind legs and let out a cheer. “Long live Queen Diane!” Several of the ponies in the bar cheered back, and raised their glasses in a toast. Braeburn returned to noisily nursing his free cider. Rainbow Dash closed her eyes again and sighed. So much for the “good information.” Some lousy rumor about where Queen Diane was, after she had already—She slammed her hooves onto the counter, lifting her chin up. “Diane’s Square!” A few patrons glanced back at her outburst, but most had already moved on. Braeburn choked on his drink. “Well good morning, miss!” he said after clearing his throat. “Or, reckon I should say good afternoon. Good to see you’re back with us.” Smiling widely, she turned toward Braeburn. “Diane’s Bell!” This can’t just be a coincidence! “Bell?” Braeburn’s brow furrowed. “Come to think on it, I did hear something ‘bout a bell. There’s a few ponies here in Equus, working on a bell for the King. Word is, he was gonna give it as a gift to his Queen Diane.” Rainbow Dash’s eyes glowed brightly. “That’s gotta be it! If Queen Diane is still alive, then there’s no Diane Square yet, but there will be! It’s not much, but at this point I’ll take it.” Braeburn laughed at the sudden shift in her attitude. “Lansakes! So there is a fire in your belly after all! What’s got you chomping at the bit?” “I’ve got to rescue my friend! I don’t know where she is, but right now, my best bet is to head to Sugaria Castle. Time to get an audience with the Queen!” Rainbow Dash turned and stepped toward the door, but stopped and turned back. She held out her hoof and smiled. “I never did tell you my name. I’m Rainbow Dash. Thanks, Braeburn... for everything.” Grinning even wider than Rainbow Dash thought possible, Braeburn shook her hoof with one leg, tipping his hat politely with the other. “Shoot, it ain’t nothing at all, Miss Rainbow. Glad I could get you back on your hooves. Lady Luck be with you!” Rainbow Dash nodded and took to the air. “You too!” She zipped under the open doorway and out into the misty air. * * * Chapter 4: At The Castle 600 AD Sugardia Castle As she approached Sugardia Castle from the air, Rainbow Dash was taken slightly by the sheer scale. She had lived in Equus her whole life, and seen the castle dominating the horizon every day. But she had never before had any business at the castle, so this was the first time she had gotten this close. She weaved her descent between the two looming stone towers dotting the top of the castle. Encircling the structure, the two towers widened, tier by tier, eventually merging into the massive central structure. Lesser tower spires dotted each tier of the castle, adding an impressive touch to the already awe-inspiring architecture. She touched down in the courtyard, which was contained by a massive perimeter wall, lined with yet more spires and guard stations. As she trotted into the castle’s entrance chamber, she looked about in awe. The interior was quite spacious and impressive. Lit torches lined the walls, giving a flickering ambient glow to the room. The stone walls were dressed with painstakingly-crafted tapestries embroidered with Sugardia’s royal crest, while the floors were lined with strips of elegant weaved carpeting. While the style was certainly medieval — more proof that I’m really in 600 AD, she thought to herself — it was substantially more posh and regal than the inn she had just left. Even the two broadswords in front of her looked elegant, as torchlight danced playfully along their blades. “Whoa!” she leapt in surprise. While admiring the interior, she had failed to notice the two large, armored earth ponies approaching her, weapons drawn. They sheathed their weapons in order to converse. “Halt! Civilians are not permitted to enter the castle without special authorization!” “The country is at war! You cannot be flying around the castle grounds willy-nilly. State your business!” Rainbow Dash was initially shaken by the harsh commands, but quickly regained her resolve from earlier. “I’m Rainbow Dash, and I’m here to see the Queen!” One of the guards snorted. “The Queen was just rescued this morning. She will not be holding any audiences... Certainly not with any pegasus who just wandered into her castle unannounced!” The other guard leaned closer to his partner, eyeing Rainbow Dash suspiciously. “Hey... what’s the deal with her mane? Such bizarre colors... think she’s part of Nightmare Moon’s forces?” His partner snorted again. “A scrawny little filly like her? Hardly.” Turning to Rainbow Dash, he snidely asked her, “Hey little girl, made any pretty rainbows today?” The guards shared a hearty laugh at her expense. The veins above her eye started twitching. Suffice it to say, today had not been a good day so far. She had lost a friend, missed the Wonderbolts’ show, and had somehow been trapped centuries in the past. The last thing she was going to put up with was a couple of bullies. Puffing out her chest, she walked strongly up to the guards, glaring them straight in the eyes. “Why don’t you say that again, and see what happens?!” The guards were taken aback at this sudden display of courage, but quickly regained themselves. They were not simply going to forget their duty to protect this castle from all intruders. They tilted their heads back, reaching for their weapons. “Stooop this at once!” The guards pivoted sharply, turning to the staircase in the center of the hall and bowing their heads to the ground. From the top of the staircase emerged an elegantly dressed pony. Her sparkling, flowing white dress clashed sharply with the dirty interior of the castle. Her poise was haughty and elegant, clearly demonstrating an upbringing of class, although Rainbow Dash thought she was acting a bit hammy. Her pink mane was done up in an ornate beehive. “My Queen! This pegasus was intruding on the castle grounds...” one of the guards started. Queen Diane silenced the soldier with a grandiose sweeping gesture of her hoof. “Nooot another word, good Sir Knight. I hereby declaaare this pegasus to be my distiiinguished guest. See to it that she receives a maaarvalous feast. Thereafter, I shall see her in my rrroyal chambers for a private audience.” “B-but Your Highness, she...” The Queen looked down her muzzle at the guard. “You refuse to obey my orders?” The guard sweated nervously. “N-not at all, Your Highness! We shall see to it at once!” Queen Diane gazed upon Rainbow Dash. Acknowledging the pegasus, she gave a slow, regal nod. Somewhat confused by the whole affair, the pegasus meekly nodded in return. Suddenly and unexpectedly, Queen Diane stuck her tongue out and quietly blew a raspberry at Rainbow Dash. What the...? Just as quickly, she withdrew her tongue, regaining her regal expression. She promptly turned and trotted deeper into the castle, leaving Rainbow Dash even further confused. The soldiers stood up, apparently not having seen the Queen’s exchange. One returned to its original post, while the other started to walk down one of the carpeted hallways. “Come,” he bitterly ordered. “The mess hall is this way.” Rainbow Dash looked at the staircase, confused, as she followed the guard down the hallway. What gives? Why would a queen like that be goofing around? That doesn’t sound... Her eyes widened. A goofy... pink... pony? She shook her head rapidly. No, it couldn’t be. That doesn’t make a lick of sense. “Oof!” She was shaken from her thoughts as she bumped into the guard. He had abruptly stopped and was bowing deeply again, this time in the direction of the mess hall. Two ponies approached from the hallway, deep in conversation. One was a regal-looking brown stallion draped in a gem-studded red robe. A large golden crown rested atop his graying mane. It wasn’t much of a logic jump for Rainbow Dash to guess that this was King Sugardia — the King of this era, at least. Following two steps behind the King was a light gray mare. She was clad in a less ornate, yet still quite expensive, brown silk cloak. A matching brown muffin hat rested on her darker gray mane. “Oh dear... it should seem that the resolve of our prized Bolt Knights still wavers. I had hoped that the safe return of our Queen would bolster spirits for longer...” the King said to his advisor. “Indeed, Your Majesty,” the gray pony replied. “The... recovery of our Queen was a bright glimmer of hope in these otherwise dreary times.” The King stopped, looking quizzically at the rainbow pony. “Pardon me, young lady... Would you happen to be Rainbow Dash?” Rainbow Dash quickly snapped to her senses and remembered her manners, bowing low. “Yes! Yes, Your Majesty! Sorry for intruding...” King Sugardia the 21st laughed and placed a leg gently on Rainbow Dash’s shoulder, causing her to look up in surprise. “Please, you are our welcomed guest! My beloved wife, the Queen, has talked so highly of you since she returned to us this morning. She has eagerly been awaiting your arrival.” “...She has?” “I am most grateful for her safe return. Although...” The King looked worryingly at Rainbow Dash. “My dear, perhaps you may be able to assist. My wife has been acting... quite unlike herself, since her return. More worrisome, She appears to have lost her coral manepin, which she treasured so dearly. Tell me... know you anything of these matters?” Before Rainbow Dash could reply, she caught a particularly nasty look from the pony in brown robes. The robed pony leaned closely to the King. “Your Highness, I beseech your discretion. In these times, it can be... quite difficult to choose who to trust.” She glared darkly at Rainbow Dash, who felt disconcerted. She had been receiving stares all day — from the skeptical inn patrons, or the rude guards — but this pony’s stare was different somehow. Rainbow Dash couldn’t put her hoof on what it was. The King smiled warmly at his advisor. “As always, Chancellor Octavia, your counsel is most appreciated.” He turned to address Rainbow Dash. “I apologize, my dear, do not be troubled by my questions. Please forgive me. Feel free to make use of all our accommodations during your stay.” Chancellor Octavia bowed to the King. “By your leave, Your Majesty... If our affairs are in order here, I would return to the abbey...” “Ah, but of course! Always giving back to the community... you are a shining example to us all.” The Chancellor got up and walked for the castle’s entrance, glaring again at Rainbow Dash as she passed. Unsure of why she deserved the hostility, Rainbow Dash returned the stare, flicking her rainbow-striped tail in discontent. The King followed thereafter, and she quickly bowed in respect as he passed. “...If you’re not too busy being best friends with the Queen and King, perhaps you could follow me?” The guard from earlier tapped his hoof impatiently and glared at Rainbow Dash. Unlike the Chancellor’s cryptic stare, she understood the motivation behind this one: jealousy. Rainbow Dash’s stomach rumbled. She realized that in all of the excitement, she had skipped breakfast in order to rush to the Millennial Summer Sun Celebration, hadn’t eaten any food at the Celebration because of meeting Pinkie Pie, and had been too depressed to eat lunch at Equus Inn. She giggled, embarrassed. “Eh heh heh... yes, please. Lunch would be awesome.” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 600 AD Sugardia Castle — Mess Hall Rainbow Dash walked downstairs to the mess hall. The front room was lined with wooden tables, each overcrowded with plated soldier ponies. They frantically competed with each other to grab scraps of food from a few central platters on each table. A few maids were rushing frantically about the room, clearing plates and bringing out beverages. A noisy din filled the air; Rainbow Dash could make out bits and pieces of a tumultuous conversation. “...weird, don’t you think so? She’s been slipping out of the castle night after night!” “Don’t be so rude! Chancellor Octavia is a kind, sweet pony. She’s spending her evenings volunteering at the abbey.” “Pfft... you wanna talk about suspicious, what about that monstrous creature, then? The one that acts like it’s a personal knight of the Queen? Heard she used to be a pony, but then a powerful hex was placed on her. I’d wager she’s one of Nightmare Moon’s spies!” One of the soldiers groaned, “If only Sir Spike were still here, to lead us Bolt Knights into battle. He was as brave and fierce a Captain as this country has ever seen...” “Come off it. Nopony’s seen scale nor spine of Sir Spike in nearly a decade. He’s either dead or a traitor. Besides, Lady Firefly has done admirably as Captain of the Bolt Knights in his stead!” “How dare you speak ill of him! Sir Spike is best Captain!” The room grew louder as tempers flared and the arguing escalated. Rainbow Dash slinked around the perimeter of the room, not wanting to get pulled into any of the fighting. I just want some freakin’ daffodils... “What in the Queen’s name is going on here?!” The room fell silent immediately. Rainbow Dash looked back to the entrance and saw that a few soldiers had arrived at the stairs, wearing armor that was more decorated than that of the other soldiers in the mess hall. Cursing quietly, she realized that the pony in front was the soldier she had met back in Equus Inn. Not wanting to be recognized as “that crazy pegasus from earlier”, she quickly ducked out of view, behind one of the tables. Luckily, considering her vibrant coloring, she wasn’t noticed. Firefly glared around the room, surveying her discontent troops and the empty benches before them. She continued to bellow. “We’re fighting a war out there! Can’t you even keep us fed?” A frustrated turquoise pegasus flew out of the back room, landing next to Firefly. “We’re trying our best here! I’m not even a trained chef, but everypony is trying to help all they can! Stop acting like you’re the only ponies fighting this war!” “Medley, our soldiers can’t fend off Nightmare Moon’s monsters on an empty stomach! We need our meals to be prepared on time!” Medley stomped her hooves. “And we need supplies to cook those meals! We’ve been running low on food ever since we lost contact with Doreino and Pommel. Everypony’s making sacrifices!” Firefly turned her back to Medley. “Just feed my little ponies. I don’t have time to waste, arguing with a coward.” Without another word, she ascended the staircase. Medley didn’t move from her spot, trembling slightly. She turned and stomped her way back to the kitchen. As she passed by Rainbow Dash, she could see that her eyes were still enraged, yet moist. Rainbow Dash felt a pang of guilt, and wished she could help these feuding pegasi, but had no idea how. More immediately — if a bit selfishly — she also realized that she probably wasn’t going to get any food right now. “...even though we’re trying to keep as many ponies fed as possible.” She could hear Medley confiding with somepony else, back in the kitchen. “And as if that wasn’t bad enough, the Queen, bless Her soul, is requesting the most bizarre dishes... Eyes Cream? Pop Rocks? Liquor Rice? Cotton Candy?” A light pink earth pony trotted over and poked her head into the kitchen. “Yes, Medley?” “Cotton Candy, have you ever heard of Liquor Rice before? Can you even make drinks out of rice? So absurd...” A look of confusion spread over Rainbow Dash’s face. First the Queen is making faces at me... now she’s asking for sweets like ice cream and licorice... It’s totally crazy, but there’s only one possible explanation for all this! She turned and raced up the stairs. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 600 AD Sugardia Castle — Queen Diane’s Chamber Rainbow Dash was led into the Queen’s chamber by her personal guards. While this room had some rough edges, like the standard torches and stone walls, it still managed to feel quite cozy. A roaring fireplace in the corner provided a comforting warmth and light to the room. The Queen’s bed was made with smooth silken sheets, underneath a swooping lace canopy. A few handmaidens bustled about the room, clearing lunch plates off the table in the center of the room and dusting the room. The chamber was situated at the top of the western tower, and a few tall windows in the back of the room let in some warm afternoon sunlight, as well as providing a terrific view of the Sugardian countryside. In front of the windows, Queen Diane was conversing with one of the handmaidens. Turning, she saw that the rainbow-striped pegasus had arrived. She smiled warmly. “Aaahh, my distinguished guest has arrived. Quite spleeendid, yes indeed...” She turned back to her handmaiden. “Please excuse us. We have muuuch to discuss.” The handmaidens curtsied and exited the room. The Royal Guards saluted before sealing Rainbow Dash in the chamber, alone with the Queen. She elegantly gestured toward Rainbow Dash. “Please, come cloooser, Miss Dash.” Rainbow Dash slowly walked closer, a skeptic look on her face. “Queen Diane... is it?” “Eheh.” Queen Diane’s smile twitched. “Or actually...” “Mmhmhm.” Her cheeks puffed out as she lost control of her composure. Rainbow Dash’s eyes narrowed, a bland expression covering her face. “Pinkie Pie.” “Pffttt ahahahaha heeheeheehee *snort* gyahaha!” Pinkie Pie fell and rolled on the ground, laughing uncontrollably and flailing her legs about. Rainbow Dash sighed, annoyed yet concerned. “What do you think you’re doing? I’d been looking all over for you...” Pinkie Pie stood up, giggling and wiping a tear from her eye. A black smudge ran along the back of her otherwise-pristine white dress, picked up from the dirty floor she had just been rolling on. “Oh Dashie, I’m sorry for tricking you. It’s just that, after I fell through that scary purple portal thingy, a couple of these knights found me and took me back here to the castle. They kept calling me Queen Diane, and would do anything I asked!” She smiled weakly and looked at the ground. “It was... kinda fun, y’know? Not like back home... with my father... She shook her head. “But even so...” she squirmed a bit, embarrassed. “That portal... this strange, different version of Sugardia... everypony calling me Queen Diane instead of Pinkie Pie... It was an itty bitty, teensy weensy bit scary.” She smiled sheepishly. “I’m happy that you chased after me.” Rainbow Dash smirked, embarrassed by the sudden mushiness. She casually threw a leg over Pinkie Pie’s shoulder. “Aww, c’mon, don’t make a huge deal out of it. I’m just glad you’re alright. We just needa chill here a little bit longer. Twilight should be... Hey, you okay?” Pinkie Pie was wincing and breathing heavily. She forced a smile. “Uh huh. I just have a bit of a tummy-ache. Guess I shouldn’t have eaten so many sweets, heehee... But can you blame me? I mean, every time I finished a snack, they’d bring out two more, and before I knew it... AHHHHH!” She screamed in pain, collapsing to the floor. “Pinkie Pie! What is it? What’s wrong?!” Her face was twisted in pain, as tears rolled down her face. “I-I don’t know... I feel like I’m being torn apart from the inside... Dash, I’m scared...” But Rainbow Dash could do nothing but stand by helplessly. Pinkie Pie started to glow with a white pale light. Her eyes opened wide in terror, as she reached a hoof out toward Rainbow Dash. “I’m scared! I don’t want to disappear! Please help me! RAINBOW DASH!!!” The room reverberated with a crystalline smash, as Pinkie Pie suddenly and inexplicably disappeared. Horrified, Rainbow Dash realized that she was alone in the room, and that for the second time today, her new friend had vanished before her eyes. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 600 AD Sugardia Castle “Ah, miss, has Her Highness concluded her business with you? Miss? Where are you...” Rainbow Dash flew. She flew out of the Queen’s chamber, down the hallway, and dove into the staircase. She was scared senseless. She wasn’t even scared of what the guards would do to her when they realized that their “Queen” had disappeared while she had been alone with her. That thought wasn’t even crossing her mind. She was more focused on the fact that her friend had disappeared in front of her eyes, again. But this time was different. Before, at the Telepod, it had been confusing and a little surprising, but in the end, Pinkie Pie turned out to be safe and sound. This time... she had been crying. In pain. Terrified. Pleading not to disappear. This was far beyond anything that Rainbow Dash could comprehend right now. She reached the bottom of the tower’s staircase, and raced along the corridor leading to the castle’s entrance. She couldn’t face this alone now. She couldn’t think straight. Right now, she needed a friend. She needed... It was at this moment that a familiar voice drifted down the corridor. The voice was faint, as it drifted from far off, but the pony in question was projecting her voice quite forcefully. “...NAMED. RAINBOW. DASH. HAVE. YOU. SEEN. HER?” Her eyes opening wide, Rainbow Dash raced to the exit — no longer fleeing the earlier scene in the tower, but now to confirm the source of the voice. Sure enough, a familiar purple unicorn was conversing with the two guards at the entrance. She was using an exceedingly loud and deliberate voice, and was providing elaborate pantomimes with each word. “SHE. IS. A. PEGASUS. WITH. A. SPIKY. RAINBOW. MANE.” The guards exchanged a silent glance. Terrific, they thought. Another wierdo. Rainbow Dash smiled in relief as she raced ahead. “Twi!” Twilight Sparkle turned and gasped. “Rainbow Dash! You were here! I just knew it!” The two old friends rushed together and hugged, each thoroughly relieved to see the other. Breaking the embrace, they both grinned at each other. One of the guards sighed and placed a hoof to his forehead. “Of course the two of you know each other...” Twilight Sparkle turned to face the guard and bellowed. “I. FOUND. HER. THIS. IS. MY. FRIEND.” Rainbow Dash kicked her friend in the flank. “Stop acting like such a doofus,” she said through gritted teeth. “He can understand you just fine.” He stared blankly ahead. “Yes. Yes we can.” The unicorn blushed and grinned sheepishly. “Oh... heh heh... sorry.” Looking around, she beckoned for her friend to follow her, away from the guards’ earshot. “This is incredible!” Twilight Sparkle beamed to her friend, once they had reached a sufficient distance. “That Gate — that strange purple vortex that appeared at my Telepod — it didn’t send us to a different location. It send us to a complete different time period! Rainbow, you’re not going to believe this, but we’re actually in the past! We’re in the year 600 AD!” “Yeah. I managed to figure that much out on my own...” Twilight Sparkle looked excitedly around the chambers. “Wow! 7th century Sugardia Castle! The layout and structure looks just like it does in our time (which I know from my regular visits, of course), but seeing it with this old-fashioned decor is just so... so... unbelievable! I’ll have to spend some time here taking extensive notes, maybe a few rough sketches... of course, not until we save...” She gasped suddenly, and turned to Rainbow Dash, eyes shining brightly. “Did you find her? Is she here?!” Rainbow Dash’s mind was filled with Pinkie Pie’s terrified scream. “Yeah... I found her... but...” “Eeee!!!” Twilight Sparkle giddily hopped back and forth between her front and hind legs. “Rainbow Dash, you are. NOT. Going to believe this. The name she told you was just an alias! You’ll never guess who she actually is!” She grinned widely at Rainbow Dash, leaning in face-to-face. “Uhh... was that rhetorical? Or...” “EEEE SHE’S PRINCESS PINKAMENA!” She exploded, unable to contain her fangirl joy any longer, hugging herself tightly. “Uwa? Pinkie Pie is... a princess?” Something clicked in Rainbow Dash’s head. “Waitwaitwait... Princess Pinkamena? The one you’re always stalking, and obsessing over, and blabbing on and on about? That Princess Pinkamena?!” “I know, I know!” She pulled on her face with her hooves, devastated. “I was within leg’s reach of her and I didn’t even realize it! And what was up with that ‘disguise’? I mean, ‘Pinkie Pie’? Curling her mane? How was that supposed to fool aaahahaha...” She giggled nervously as her face turned bright fuchsia. “I-I mean, even I, her most faithful fan, could not ascertain her true identity... Heh. “Never mind that now!” she continued, glancing around rapidly. “Is she here? Will I actually get to meet her? And rescue her? Will she like me? Oh, I hope she’ll like me...” Rainbow Dash’s eyes fell to the floor. “Twi, she’s not here anymore. She... She’s gone.” “Gone.” Twilight Sparkle echoed, emotionlessly. For a moment, the word had no meaning to her. Suddenly, she lunged at Rainbow Dash, pinning her against the stone wall. “GONE?!” “Shhh! Keep your voice down!” Rainbow Dash whispered tersely, glancing nervously down the hall to the guards. Luckily, the guards were actively trying with all of their might to ignore the two ponies. “What. Do. You. Mean. Gone?” Twilight Sparkle whispered back through gritted teeth. Rainbow Dash explained what had transpired in Twilight Sparkle’s absence: how Pinkie Pie had been found, mistaken for Queen Diane, taken to Sugardia Castle, and then... how she had vanished. Twilight Sparkle slowly calmed down and listened contemplatively, but by the end of the tale, she was wide-eyed and pale. “No... no, no... nonononono!” She hopped around on her hooves as if the floor was made of lava, before rubbing her eyes with a hoof. “This is bad! I was worried when I found out that we were in the past, but to think that she could have diverted the time stream so much as to disappear...” “What? I don’t get it! Why did she disappear? Twilight, what happened?!” Twilight Sparkle used her magic to retrieve a quill and scroll from her saddlebags. She quickly drew a stick figure of a pony on the right end of the scroll. “Okay, look. Pinkie Pie — or rather, Princess Pinkamena — is the Princess of Sugardia in our time. Therefore, that would mean Queen Diane was Princess Pinkamena’s great-great-great-great-great-great-great-great-great-great-great grandmother.” Twilight Sparkle continued, drawing some more stick figures towards the left, covering the scroll. “...four, five, six... yes.” “Wait,” Rainbow Dash stopped her. Twilight Sparkle paused and waited to answer her question. “So, Pinkamena is the Princess of Sugardia?” “...” “...what? I assumed she was Princess of Chorse, or...” “Now, Queen Diane, as you’ve found out, went missing in this era. In actuality, according to my history books, she was foalnapped by one of Nightmare Moon’s minions! But she was later rescued by one of her personal guards.” Rainbow Dash was confused. “But... they didn’t find the real Queen Diane. They found Pinkie Pie up in Equus Canyon after she appeared here.” “Exactly! We changed history by traveling back in time. Her search party was called off when they suddenly found the Princess (presumably, they look quite similar, being related and all). Which means, the real Queen Diane is still being held hostage. And... if something terrible were to happen to her...” She crossed Queen Diane’s stick figure out, slowly working her way down the row of ponies. Rainbow Dash’s eyes went wide as she caught Twilight Sparkle’s meaning. “...Pinkie will never be born! Does... does that mean we’re already too late?” Twilight Sparkle shook her head slowly. “I don’t know... I’ve never witnessed a Grandmother’s Paradox before. It could be instant, there might be a ripple effect... or maybe I’m completely wrong about this. But right now, I can only think of one possible option to save the Princess.” “Rescuing Queen Diane! The real one!” “Right! Unfortunately, I couldn’t find any other information about Queen Diane’s capture in my books... You’ve been here in the past longer than I have. Do you have any ideas?” Okay... Think, Dash, think. She racked her brain, stepping backwards through her day. Pinkie vanishing... trying to get some food... ugh, I’m still hungry... that fighting captain and chef... meeting the King, and his... She gasped. “There was this assistant! This... Chancellor pony! She was acting all weird, and kept glaring at me!” “Oookay,” Twilight Sparkle winced, trying to stay encouraging. “That’s not a whole lot to go on, though. What was so strange about her?” “She... well...” Rainbow Dash paused. Like before, she couldn’t easily define what was odd about the Chancellor. “I dunno, she just... really seemed pissed that I was here. I guess it doesn’t matter though. She already left the castle. Said she was heading off to the...” She suddenly remembered a yellow pony in a large cowboy hat. “Braeburn!” “The Braeburn? I haven’t heard of that place before... Is it the name of a tavern?” She began flipping through one of the books she had brought with her. “Braeburn’s not a tavern, he’s a pony! Well, I met him in a tavern... Anyway! He told me this rumor! He said that the Queen might be held captive in this abbey west of here. But that didn’t make any sense, because the Queen had already been found in Equus Canyon...” Twilight Sparkle’s eyes lit up. “They didn’t find the Queen there! They found our Princess Pinkamena! That rumor might be true after all!” Rainbow Dash’s face drained. “And that creepy Chancellor mare said she was heading to the abbey! She left a little while ago!” “Then there’s not much time! We need to hurry to that abbey and save the Queen!” Nodding, the two ponies raced out of the castle’s front gate. After they had travelled out of sight, the two guard ponies sighed. “I miss fighting endless hoards of monsters.” “Yep.” * * * Chapter 5: The Queen Is Gone 600 AD Manerial Abbey Twilight Sparkle and Rainbow Dash cautiously entered the abbey. While not as regal or awe-inspiring as the interior of Sugaria Castle, the abbey was quite a spectacle in its own rights. Luscious red carpeting covered the stone floor, leading to the front of the room, flanked on both sides by wooden pews. Rainbow Dash noted that, unlike the furnishings of Equus Inn, these pews had been stained and finished, looking much more refined. A few nuns were resting on the pews, quietly meditating. At the front of the room, another nun was making preparations at an altar, basked in light from an ornate stained-glass mural. The two ponies walked up to the altar. Twilight Sparkle nervously coughed, and whispered lightly, not wishing to disturb the quiet serenity of the chamber. “Uh... excuse me, Miss? May we have a word with you?” The nun turned toward the ponies and smiled. “Oh, what delish... delightful guests! Welcome to our humble abbey. May you be blessed with peace and good fortune.” She bowed politely. “How may we help you?” Rainbow Dash frowned, as the nun smiled at her. While her demeanor and expression were gentle, there was still something off-putting. Something in the look of her eyes... It almost reminded Rainbow Dash of... “We are looking for Queen Diane,” continued Twilight Sparkle. “Apparently, she went missing earlier and nopony has seen her since. By any chance, have you seen her here at the abbey?” The nun gently shook her head. “I am truly sorry. As we told the Bolt Knights earlier, Her Highness The Queen has not visited our abbey in quite some time. I am sorry we could not be of more help to you. Please, do not trouble yourselves. You should make yourself comfortable, and rest, in peace.” Rainbow Dash looked around behind her. The rest of the nuns were looking up at the ponies, disrupted from their meditations. Rainbow Dash felt a growing sense of unease. “H-Hey, Twi? It sounds like that rumor was no good after all. Maybe we should look some place el...” She suddenly stopped as something on the ground glittered and caught her attention. Quizzically, she walked over to it and took a look. “Dash? What’s up? ...Hmm, what are you looking at?” The unicorn lifted the object using her magic, and took a closer look. “Looks like some kind of coral manepin.” Rainbow Dash gasped. “The King said that the Queen had a coral manepin! If it’s here...” She suddenly pushed Twilight behind her, drawing her katana. The four nuns had begun encircling the ponies, eyes glowing red. She called out a challenge to them. “We’re onto you, ya creepy nuns! Give us back the Queen!” The nuns suddenly exploded in a red blinding light. Rainbow Dash had to shake her head clear to regain her vision. When she looked back, at first it seemed that nothing had changed; she still saw four ponies. In horror, she realized that while each of them still had the front half of a pony, their hindquarters had been replaced with the body of a snake. Rearing upright, the naga slithered closer, baring their fangs and screeching. “SNAKES!” Twilight Sparkle screamed in terror, diving into the corner and covering her head. “SNAAAKES!” The pegasus dashed between the naga and her friend, flaring her wings wide. She knew that, ever since Twilight Sparkle was a filly, she had been terribly afraid of “icky, creepy, and/or disgusting” animals. And unfortunately, snakes ranked fairly high on that list, meaning that she wouldn’t be of much assistance in this fight. Even though Rainbow Dash wasn’t afraid of snakes, the half-pony half-snake monstrosities before her were still quite unsettling. Nevertheless, there was one of Rainbow Dash, and only four of the naga; this was going to be a snap. Leaping, she air-dashed straight into the closest naga, gashing it deeply. Caught off-guard from the sudden burst of speed, it fell with a cry. Rainbow Dash’s attack had left Twilight Sparkle unguarded, however. Two of the naga slithered toward her, hooves outstretched. Facing them from a distance, Rainbow Dash fiercely slashed in their direction. A blade of wind emanated from her katana, flying toward the naga. One of them managed to leap back in time, exposing its companion to the full blast of her Wind Slash attack. It let out a terrifying screech, but remained upright. Rainbow Dash charged the injured naga, blade first, and ran it through. It scratched futilely at the pegasus’s face with its hooves, but soon expired. Seeing another opening, another naga tried to slip behind her, heading for the cowering unicorn. Catching sight of the enemy, Rainbow Dash pushed off the corpse with her front legs, catching the naga squarely in the jaw with a well-timed kick. Landing squarely on the ground, she twisted sharply and ended the creature with an uppercut slash. Panting, Rainbow Dash turned to her friend, sheathing her blade. “You okay, Twi?” The unicorn looked up, wiping her eyes, and nodded meekly. However, her expression quickly changed to one of silent horror, and she pointed behind Rainbow Dash. She turned quickly to see a naga in mid-pounce. Another one! Did I miscount?! The naga was nearly on top of her, and her katana was sheathed. She wouldn’t have time to react! She braced herself to take the full impact of the hit. Just as the naga was about to strike, it let out a blood-curdling shriek and collapsed in a heap on the floor in front of her. Confused, she instinctively looked down at the corpse, trying to determine what had happened. As she looked up, she gasped at the new creature before her. The creature walked on four legs, much like a pony. It even had a unicorn’s horn, which was levitating the broadsword that had slain the naga. The face of the creature, however, strongly appeared to be that of a pony-sized frog. Unlike a pony’s soft-haired body, this creature had green skin, hairless and moist. Instead of hooves, its legs ended in webbed feet. On its torso, it wore a gem-studded golden vest over a white silken blouse, partially obscured by a heavy, dark green cape across its back. After carefully cleaning the broadsword with a rag from its saddlebags, and sheathing the broadsword with its horn, the creature turned to Rainbow Dash and spoke. “My dear, you simply must be more cautious. Stay ever vigilant until the ‘bitter end’, as ‘twere.” Confused by the juxtaposition of creature’s bizarre appearance, yet fashionable armor and sophisticated speech, Rainbow Dash glanced back at Twilight Sparkle for guidance. However, the unicorn was still cowering in fear in the corner. Rainbow Dash sighed and rolled her eyes. She’s scared of frogs too, isn’t she... Turning back, she cautious replied. “Erm... yeah, thanks... I guess I owe you one, for the save.” “Think nothing of it,” the creature beamed, eyes contently closed. “I simply did what anypony would have done.” It walked past Rainbow Dash and approached the curled-up Twilight Sparkle, placing a webbed pad on her shoulder. “Are you all right?” Caught by surprise, Twilight Sparkle leapt up onto the tips of her hooves, shivering against the wall. “A f-f-frog! A gross, slimy frog just touched me! Eww eww eww!” She frantically scratched at her own shoulder with a hoof, desperately trying to remove whatever cooties were contaminating her. It smiled back cheerily at the unicorn, though its eyes told a different story. “Y-yes, I do so apologize for my... dreary appearance. I realize that it can be quite burdensome for some ponies to handle. I shan’t impose on you any further.” Bowing politely, the creature turned and began to walk toward the altar. Twilight Sparkle recovered from her initial fear reaction and, realizing what she had just said, her face turned beet red. “Wait! Stop, please! I’m so, so, so sorry. That was a horrible thing for me to say! Especially after you had just saved us...” She hesitantly approached the creature, torn between her phobia and her strong desire to make amends for her words. “Pl... Please forgive me. My friend and I are truly in your debt...” she bit her lip nervously. The creature smiled back. While its smile had remained almost completely unchanged during this encounter, the earnest apology had been well-received, and its high spirits returned. “Thank you, dearie. Though, truly, do not worry yourself over it. You and I are quite alright.” Twilight Sparkle returned the smile, relieved. However, as she was still uneasy at its appearance, she was at a loss of words. The two stood smiling silently, as an awkward pause filled the room. Rainbow Dash quickly jumped in to fill the void. “So... what are you doing here in the abbey, anyway?” Its expression turned serious. “It would seem that Her Royal Majesty, Queen Diane, is being held against her will, hidden deep within this lair. As a sworn protector of Her Majesty, it is my solemn duty to rescue her.” The two friends exchanged a glance. So the Queen was here in the abbey, after all! Concerned, Twilight Sparkle turned back. “But... you were going to go in here... all by yourself?” It struck a pose with its head held high, radiating confidence and elegance. “But of course! Just because I'm a lady doesn't mean I cannot handle myself in a sticky situation.” “A... lady?” Twilight Sparkle hadn’t really thought of the creature as a lady, let alone as a fellow pony. Realizing how her question sounded out loud, she blushed fiercely again and stammered. “I mean! Yes! You really don’t seem like a... bad lady... pony... frog-thing...” She turned pleadingly to Rainbow Dash with a look that screamed, Bail me out! Rainbow Dash raised a hoof upwards, shrugging, with a look that replied, What, you want ME to smooth-talk this out? Twilight Sparkle sighed and closed her eyes. After a short pause, she turned back to the creature. “Please, Miss, let us join you.” The pegasus was genuinely surprised. “Twi, are you sure? I mean, with your fear of...” She nodded solemnly. “We owe her so much already — both for saving us from those snake-ponies, and for forgiving me for my hurtful words. I want to repay her for all of her generosity. If that means putting up with a phobia or two, I’ll just have to put up with her. I mean...” she blushed again, scrunching up her face in frustration. “Thank you. I humbly accept your offer. This will be much safer with the three of us together. Not to mention, journeying is much more enjoyable with company!” Rainbow Dash grinned. “Sweet! It’ll be great to have another swordspony with us. You pulled a pretty decent move on that naga, back there.” She returned the grin, as pegasus and frog sized each other up. “You were demonstrating some impressive blade maneuvers, yourself...” She blinked. “Heavens, I was so caught up that I never introduced myself! My name... Well, I won’t bore you with a long and uninteresting story. For now, it will suffice to refer to me as ‘Frog’.” “Uh, okay... Frog... If you say so... My name’s Rainbow Dash, and the scaredy-pony over there...” Suddenly, a deafening noise filled the air. Covering both ears with her hooves, Rainbow Dash looked first to Frog, then to Twili... there was nopony there. Looking frantically around the room, she finally spotted Twilight Sparkle. She had wandered over to a large organ sitting in the corner, and was currently pressing on some of the keys with her horn’s magic, filling the room and their brains with vibrations from the large pipes. “Oh what the hay... Twi! Knock it off!” She released the keys, granting a momentary relief. “I think this sheet music is a clue!” she shouted about the ringing of her own ears. Rainbow Dash flicked annoyedly at her own ears, trying to regain her hearing. “I’m trying to play it! Luckily I was reading up on beginner’s musical theory just a few months ago! I think I remember...” She studied the sheet music intently. “Let’s see... E-flat... G-flat... B-flat... D-flat... F-natural!” Locating all of the keys on the organ, she pressed the chord. The haunting chord filled the chamber again, reverberating off the walls. Over the din, a low rumbling could be heard, followed by a loud thud. The ponies shook their heads, trying to recover their senses. “My, what a dreary sound,” Frog said. “It doesn’t fit with the gentle beauty of this cathedral at all.” “After the welcome party those nuns threw for us, I doubt there’s anything ‘gentle’ about this place,” Rainbow Dash tersely added. Twilight Sparkle gasped. “Girls, look!” On the opposite end of the room, a carved wooden relief had disappeared, leaving a black gaping hole in the wall. “The resonation of the harmonics must have served as the ‘key’ to this entrance. We can go deeper into the abbey now!” She smiled at her two companions. “I wonder what we’ll find inside!” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 600 AD Manerial Abbey — Interior Halls “BATS!” Twilight Sparkle answered her own question. “BAAATS!” The swordsponies were leaping about, slashing in the air, trying to scare off the winged creatures. “We know,” growled Rainbow Dash, teeth clenched to her katana’s hilt. The bats flittered down the hall, sufficiently spooked by the two flying blades. As their flapping leathery wings grew quieter, Twilight Sparkle shakily rose to her hooves. “Thanks...” she said quietly. Rainbow Dash gave a sigh of annoyance. “We need to move faster. The Queen could be in real danger!” “Right... Sorry...” The companions looked around. They were in yet another dimly lit corridor. Despite the dim lighting and restricted access to this section of the abbey, the beautiful furnishing and decorations from the main chamber were present here too. However, in the dim candlelight, surrounded by monsters and vermin, the appearance of the corridors chilled them with icy, ominous dread. In the dim lighting, Frog made something out. “There appears to be... hmm... some type of notice written here, it would seem.” Rainbow Dash approached Frog, who was standing in front of a piece of parchment nailed hastily to one of the walls. “‘No Entry’,” she read. Confused, she looked up and down the hallway, then back at the note. “‘No Entry’ to where? There’s no doors here...” Somewhat confused, they pressed further on, following the dimly lit hallways. As they walked, Frog tried to lighten the mood with some conversation. “I must say, it’s quite a rare sight to see a pair of adventurers like yourselves. Most of the brave ponies have already enlisted in the Royal Guard or the Bolt Knights or the like, to do battle with Nightmare Moon’s forces. If I may be so bold, what land do the two of you hail from?” “Us?” Twilight Sparkle nervously replied. “Oh, haha, nowhere special... Born and raised right here in the town of Equus!” “Uh huh. ‘Cept we’re from the future. 1000 AD to be exact.” “Rainbow Dash!” “What? She asked...” “You can’t just go around telling everypony that! Who knows what kind of ramifications that could have to our time stream!” “Huh? What’s the big deal? I’ve already told that to lots of ponies, and nothing bad’s happened...” Twilight Sparkle was mortified. “What? Who?!” “Like, everypony in Equus Inn? I guess none of them believed me, though...” “Oh my, the future?” Frog jumped back into the conversation. “That must be a dream come true. My, to think of the fashion and luxury that could be invented over the course of four long centuries...” She gasped in excitement, “Oh, please tell me that emeralds are back in vogue?” “I... err... I don’t really follow the fashion trends all that closely.” Twilight Sparkle gave Frog a quizzical look. “You don’t seem all that surprised. Isn’t it odd for ponies to be claiming to be time travelers?” “Well, somewhat, I suppose. After all, you’re the first ponies I’ve met who have claimed to be from the future. But my dear, we live in magical times, and I’ve seen more than my fair share of mysteries and sorcery. It’s not all that unthinkable that somepony could manage to traverse the flow of time. And besides, the two of you seem to be kind, honest ponies. I see no reason that you would be lying to me about something such as this.” “Wow... that’s so open-minded of you. It’s really impressive, Frog!” Frog turned to Rainbow Dash. “What about you, darling? You simply must tell me all about the latest trends with hats in the year you’re from! With that gorgeous — ehh, if somewhat messy — mane of yours, I’m sure that you’re always dressing in style!” “No.” “Hmm? Hey girls, look.” Twilight Sparkle had stopped a few paces back, next to a small wooden door. Giving it a gentle nudge, it slowly swung inwards with a soft creak. “Check out what’s inside?” “Might as well...” Tugging her blade out halfway, just in case, Rainbow Dash kicked the door open and walked inside. “Ah, you have arrived!” Queen Diane smiled warmly. “I am relieved that you made it here safely.” The three companions gaped. True to their expectations, Queen Diane was a beautiful pink pony in a regal, flowing white dress. Indeed, she bore an uncanny resemblance to Pinkie Pie — at least, the dolled-up 600 AD version, not the spunky free spirit that Rainbow Dash had met at the Millennial Summer Sun Celebration. Unlike Pinkie Pie, though, her poise was soft and elegant. It was clear that they were in the presence of true royalty. And yet, there were no guards, no chains, no cell. The Queen hardly appeared to be a prisoner. Indeed, behind her, a table appeared to be set for afternoon tea. “My Queen!” Frog hopped forward to Queen Diane, kneeling respectfully before her. “You are in great peril! Come, we must depart at once!” “Ah, Frog, my faithful protector. I am so happy that you have come to save me,” she giggled softly, “but this is simply a misunderstanding. I am an honored guest, not a prisoner.” “What?” Rainbow Dash stepped forward. “What do you mean ‘guest’? I thought Nightmare Moon’s goons were trying to kill you!” “Kill? Dear pegasus, far from it.” From the side of the room, King Sugardia the 21st stepped forward. “Yakra, the master of this abbey, is a kind and peaceful creature. He summoned my wife and myself here in order to meet with Nightmare Moon, that we might negotiate a peace treaty. At last, we will be able to put this dreadful war behind us!” “Peace treaty?” Twilight Sparkle pulled a book from her saddlebags and began flipping furiously through it. “W-with Nightmare Moon? My Lord and Lady, with the utmost of respect, Nightmare Moon has been leading the fiends of the world in a crusade to purge the world of all ponykind! How could such a demon be reasoned with?!” Queen Diane shook her head. “My loyal Frog, you mustn’t be too hasty. Nightmare Moon has been our enemy in the past, but all creatures large and small crave friendship.” She motioned behind her to a large golden statue. “Wonderful Nightmare Moon has agreed to live in harmony with the ponyfolk, ushering in a new era of peace and prosperity!” Hesitantly, Frog and Rainbow Dash approached the statue. It depicted a towering, armor-clad alicorn. A long glistening mane flowed from her helmet, with a matching tail sweeping wispily around its hooves in a most artistic way. Rainbow Dash was both awe-struck and terrified of the golden alicorn depicted in the statue. “This... this is Nightmare Moon?” Frog glared coldly at the statue, unblinking. “This is she. A cruel, monstrous deity of hatred. Our kingdom, our very lives will never be safe as long as her black heart still beats. I cannot for the life of me fathom why dearest Queen Diane would believe...” “Dash!” Twilight Sparkle cried out. Rainbow Dash collapsed as the full weight of the naga crashed down on her. She let out a cry of pain as its fangs dug deep into her back near the root of her wing. Frog swiftly raised her broadsword with her telekinesis, but before she could assist, the other naga charged her, forcing her to engage. She sparred the creature, moving hardly at all, focusing the brunt of her might into the flurry of telekinetic swings of her blade. Exploiting an opening, she gashed the creature’s neck, felling it. Rainbow Dash tried weakly to buck the naga off her, but with its weight pinned her close to the ground, and the sharp pain in her back, she couldn’t get the proper leverage. Nevertheless, the creature released its bite and flew off. Looking up, Rainbow Dash saw that Frog’s stretchy, elastic tongue had wrapped around the creature, pulling it off the pegasus and rapidly in Frog’s direction. With a mighty upward thrust, she ran the creature through, and it collapsed beside its partner. Rainbow Dash winced, applying pressure to her bleeding wound. “Grrr... lemme guess... that King and Queen... they were impostors, weren’t they? Just like the nuns...” “It would seem so,” Frog approached her companion. “Oh, I feel so foolish that I was deceived by such rudimentary magics. As the Queen’s protector, I ought to be able to see through the parlor tricks of mere pawns...” Leaning down, she began gently licking Rainbow Dash’s wound with her stretchy tongue. Rainbow Dash looked up at her, bewildered, with her mouth agape. “Trust me,” she quickly added, blushing, “nopony finds this more revolting than I, but over the years I have learnt that my... ugh... spit has healing properties that will help with your recovery. Just... just sit still and we’ll get this over with... quickly.” She resumed her rather unusual treatment of the wound. After she had finished, Rainbow Dash rose to her hooves, tentatively stretching and flapping her wings. “Huh... I guess it is starting to feel a lot better. Thanks, Frog.” She looked around the room for the third pony. Unsurprisingly, Twilight Sparkle was curled in the corner, not moving. “Twi! That Queen was a big ol’ fake. We need to keep looking, c’mon.” There was no reply. “Twilight? Dearie? Are you hurt? I can try to treat your wounds before we press onward.” Her reply was soft and monotone. “Go on without me.” “What?” Hot tears fell from Twilight Sparkle’s face. Unlike earlier, these were not tears of fear and panic; these tears were borne of hatred of her own weaknesses. “I’ve done nothing but slow you down. Every time we’ve been attacked, I’ve been such a...” she said as she clenched her eyes tightly shut, “...such a coward. I’ve been too scared to help anypony. Even when I saw that snake-pony charging at Rainbow, I wanted to help... to protect her... but I couldn’t... I couldn’t.” Rainbow Dash felt her stomach knot up with guilt. All this time, she’d been growing frustrated with the unicorn’s hesitation and fear, and had been pushing her harder, without fully empathizing with her fear or frustration. “Twilight... I’m so sorry. I was just...” Frog looked down upon Twilight Sparkle. “If you didn’t want to help anypony, you could have stayed back at the castle.” “Frog!” Rainbow Dash was appalled. “Leave Twi alone!” Twilight Sparkle’s head jerked up. “What? Stayed... behind?” Her eyes glassed over as she mulled the thought over for a second. “No... no! I couldn’t just... Rainbow Dash was...” she shook her head, trying to clear it. “I wanted to help...!” “To help your friend, yes?” Frog smiled, lying down in front of Twilight Sparkle so that they were eye-to-eye. “And Queen Diane. So you came here, ignoring the dangers that might befall you. And when you got here, you encountered snakes, and bats, and fr... and all manner of creepy critters. But still you pressed onward, because you did not want to abandon your friends. Is that your idea of a coward?” She reached out with a webbed foot and gently held her hoof. “That sounds like a brave little pony to me.” She sniffed wetly, “B-brave?” “Yeah! Frog’s right! And you haven’t been useless!” Rainbow Dash stepped forward energetically, cheering her friend on. “We couldn’t have even gotten inside here without you, remember? You were the one who opened up the door by playing an organ, like that one.” “Y-yeah. I guess I... that one?” Rainbow Dash was pointing to the near corner. Next to the door stood another organ keyboard, identical in design to the first. Twilight Sparkle rose excitedly to her hooves. “Another organ! That must be why we haven’t been able to find our way deeper. If I play the same chord here, it should open up another hidden passageway!” Frog followed behind her. “That sounds like a marvelous idea. Give it a go!” The roaring, dissonant notes filled the abbey once again. As Twilight Sparkle released the keys, the chord echoed until it faded softly into the bowels of the structure. She excitedly looked around the room, trying to locate a new opening in the wall. Slowly, the smile faded from her face. Bowing her head and staring at the floor, she quietly murmured, “It didn’t work.” “No way!” Rainbow Dash took to the air. “That plan had to have worked. The new hole must be in a different room!” She immediately raced out of the room and turned down the corridor. There just has to be a new path! Rainbow Dash thought to herself. I know there is! Because... because I believe in Twi! Her face lit up. “Twi! Come quick!” As her companions raced to catch up, Rainbow Dash excitedly pointed to the wall. She had flown back to the note that was nailed to the wall. Next to the note now stood an open door leading deeper into the abbey. “Another door! You did it!” Twilight Sparkle looked at the door, then back at her companions. “Frog... Rainbow Dash...” Drying her eyes, she smiled wholeheartedly. “Thank you.” As they entered the new passageway, they failed to notice that the paper’s wording had completely changed. It now read: Those who have decided a path in their hearts will find a way through. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 600 AD Manerial Abbey — Inner Sanctum The party raced down another corridor, running and flying at breakneck speed. They were still progressing deeper into the catacombs, but there was no sign of Queen Diane. In their guts, an overwhelming sense of dread was warning them that they were running out of time. Rainbow Dash flew ahead of the pack, pausing briefly at each door they found, listening for any sounds of movement inside, before racing to the next. They didn’t have any time to waste with empty rooms or packs of enemies. The abbey was sprawling and full of dead ends. Where could she be? “Prepare yourself, Queen Diane!” Rainbow Dash screeched to a halt. Who said that? It sounded like it came from the last room. Turning sharply, she raced back and bucked the door open. Queen Diane looked at Rainbow Dash from the back of the room, horrified. She was being backed into a corner by somepony dressed in brown robes. The Queen’s appearance looked spot-on compared to the impostor naga from before, but there was no question in Rainbow Dash’s mind; this Queen was the real deal, at long last! “Queen Diane! We’re here to save you!” The Queen’s captor turned around. Rainbow Dash quickly recognized her. Judging by the feral, rageful glare, it appeared that she also remembered Rainbow Dash. “You!” Chancellor Octavia’s voice was dripping with venom. Twilight Sparkle and Frog raced into the room, having finally caught up with the pegasus. “My Queen!” Frog bounded across the room, sliding into position between the Queen and the Chancellor, broadsword held at the ready. Queen Diane’s eyes lit up. “Lady Frog! You came for me!” “And she brought a team!” Rainbow Dash drew her katana and floating on Chancellor Octavia’s far side. The Chancellor sneered. “Well, well... the infamous Lady Froggy-Pony. Now this is a treat. I was expecting only to murder Her Royal Highness today, but your slimy corpse will make a fine trophy as well!” Frog tilted her head back slightly. “Milady! Please retreat to safety, and allow us the pleasure of subduing this traitor!” She nodded. “Please, all of you, be careful!” She ran toward the opposite end of the room, allowing them enough space for the inevitable battle. Rainbow Dash gripped her hilt tightly. “I don’t get it! You’re a good pony who works for the King and Queen! How could you betray them? It doesn’t make any sense!” Chancellor Octavia chuckled darkly. “A pony? Pathetic little foal, you clearly don’t understand what you’re dealing with.” Dark bolts of energy coursed around her body, causing it to glow with a malevolent aura. She slowly lifted into the air, as the evil aura caused her mane to levitate. “Allow me to show you my true form!” The energy overtook her form, before exploding in a burst of darkness. Where the gray pony in brown once stood, there was now a monstrous yellow bulbous creature. She stood upon rows of bony spiked claws. She bared her sharp fangs and grinned wickedly at Rainbow Dash. “Yakra!” Frog gasped. “Be wary, ponies! This foul creature is in legion with Nightmare Moon, and she will not give in without a fight.” “Bring it!” Rainbow Dash tensed up her muscles, preparing to dive at the foe. “You...” Everypony turned. Twilight Sparkle was still standing at the entrance to the room, having not moved since entering. Her eyes were locked onto Yakra, burning with determination and anger. “You’re the one who foalnapped Queen Diane. You’re the one who’s responsible for Princess Pinkamena being erased. You’re the one who filled this abbey with those terrifying monsters.” She began boldly striding towards Yakra, ignoring her angry hissing and disturbing appearance. “You’re not a snake. You’re not a frog. You’re not a bat.” Her horn ignited with magic as a myriad of tools, devices, and contraptions burst out of her saddlebags and slowly began orbiting around her. She screamed at the creature, “Quod erat demonstrandum, your flank is mine!” Rainbow Dash cheered on her friend and her sudden burst of confidence. “Yeah! You tell her, girl!” Yakra cackled gleefully. “Be my guest!” She quickly scurried on her claws, racing toward Twilight Sparkle. She stared Yakra down, without so much as tensing a muscle. The orbit of tools spun wildly around her, before suddenly coming to a complete stop. A strange emitter now floated between her and her oncoming assailant. It began to produce a high-pitched, fluctuating sound. Without warning, Yakra lost her balance, falling off her claws and sliding to a stop at Twilight Sparkle’s hooves. Yakra snored lightly, having been forced to sleep. Turning off her Hypno Wave device, she rotated her ring of tools again to select her next instrument. This time, the ring stopped on an oversized metal mallet. Winding it back, she swung a mighty golf swing as hard as her magic allowed, connecting squarely with Yakra’s jaw and sending her flying into the air. Before she could land, Rainbow Dash rushed the creature, slashing her with a trio of rapid air dashes. The pair slid to the ground together. Infuriated, Yakra charged at the pegasus, connecting with a full-body tackle and sending Rainbow Dash flying into the wall. Rebounding, the monster immediately changed directions and aimed for Twilight Sparkle again. The unicorn was caught off guard by the creature’s erratic movements, and she too was hit. Going for the trifecta, Yakra turned and raced at Frog, but the element of surprise had been lost. Frog flicked her tongue at the far wall and pulled herself, lifting herself out of harm’s way, slashing at Yakra as she flew through the air. Yakra turned to chase after the escaping Frog, but reared her head sharply, as a trio of darts embedded themselves in her backside. Turning, she saw that Twilight Sparkle had pulled out a dart gun and was firing at her from the far side of the room. “Two can play at that game, pony!” Arching her back, a pair of extrusions grew and shot a wave of spines into the air. They arched across the room before raining down upon Twilight Sparkle, slicing into her. “Twi!” Rainbow Dash called out. She turned to Frog, who nodded from across the room. Charging in unison, they flew at Yakra together, slashing the creature simultaneously with a devastating X Strike. Weakly, Yakra arched its back again, preparing another round of her needle attack. Wincing in pain, Twilight Sparkle lifted herself off the ground with one hoof. With another spin in its orbit, a Flamethrower hovered before her. Taking careful aim, she let loose as a trail of flame arced across the room, engulfing Yakra. “KYAAARRGH!” It howled in pain as flames covered its body. The flames were joined with bolts of dark energy, similar to those of its transformation. The energy overtook her form, causing her to glow with a myriad of rainbow colors, before at last disappearing. Rainbow Dash did a somersault in excitement. “We did it! Yeah! Who’s awesome? We’re awesome!” “Twilight Sparkle! Are you alright? You took a nasty hit from those needles. Hold still...” Frog immediately began licking the unicorn, treating her wounds. She winced in pain slightly. “Thanks, Frog. Don’t worry, they only grazed me. I’ll be okay.” Rainbow Dash looked in amazement as Twilight Sparkle rose to her hooves. She’s totally getting slimed by Frog’s tongue, and she’s not freaking out at all... “Lady Frog!” Queen Diane trotted up to the ponies. “I am so relieved! Once again, I am eternally indebted to you... and your heroic new friends, as well!” Frog kneeled before the Queen. “Your words are most generous, my Queen. Come, let us return you to the castle. Your King and your subjects will be most delighted to see your return.” “Whoa, whoa! Hold your horses!” Rainbow Dash landed in the front of the room, where a large ornate treasure chest stood. “Looks like Yakra was holding onto some sweet loots. Now that she’s not here, I doubt she’ll mind if I just help myself GYAAAH!” She leapt back in fright as a fully-grown pony rolled out of the treasure chest, bound and gagged. Twilight Sparkle raced over to help free the pony from its ropes. The pony stood, smoothing out her brown robes and brushing her gray mane into place. “You have my thanks, dear ponies. That infernal Yakra had foalnapped me and stashed me in that crude box like a pile of dirty linens.” Queen Diane trotted forward to them. “Chancellor Octavia! You’re alive!” Chancellor Octavia gasped and bowed deeply. “Queen Diane! My prayers for your safety have been answered. When Yakra imprisoned me, and I learnt of her plans, I feared for the worst.” Queen Diane smiled. “Come, everypony. Let us return to Sugardia Castle. We have much to celebrate.” * * * Chapter 6: I’m Back! 600 AD Sugardia Castle King Sugardia the 21st affectionately nuzzled his Queen. “My love, it is so good to have you back, safe and sound. I was so worried for you.” They smiled, gazing adoringly into each others eyes. The group had returned to Sugardia Castle without incident. They were gathered in the throne room, where King and Queen were reuniting, as Rainbow Dash and company looked on. Chancellor Octavia scowled, unable to enjoy the happy mood of the occasion. “Confound that Yakra! She nearly drove this country to ruin! It is unacceptable that she impersonated me and sought to overthrow the Crown. We must put a system of justice in place, in order to convict these fiends and make them pay for their crimes. Please excuse me, Your Majesties...” Bowing respectfully, she left the chamber to begin putting her plan into motion. Queen Diane smiled at the group. “On behalf of the Kingdom of Sugardia, you have our eternal thanks. The three of you will always be welcome guests within our castle.” The three companions kneeled respectfully. “You are most generous, Your Highness.” Frog stated. “But I must respectfully decline your praise. Your life was put in danger because I was not strong enough to protect you. Thus, I shall depart, before I dishonor you with my presence any further.” Bowing once more, she turned sharply and hopped toward the exit. “Frog! Wait!” Rainbow Dash called out. Queen Diane held out a hoof. “Lady Rainbow Dash, let her go.” Rainbow Dash turned back, confused. “Wha... But?!” The Queen shook her head sadly. “Lady Frog has protected me and served this country for several years. But despite her talent and devotion, she has always been overly critical of herself. She never considers her best to be good enough, and always strives for perfection.” She smiled, “I am sure that once she has had some time to calm down, she will return to us.” The King nodded in respect. “Lady Rainbow Dash... Lady Twilight Sparkle... This kingdom is truly indebted to you. This is truly a joyous occasion. There is one mystery remaining, however.” Twilight Sparkle took a step forward. “What might that be, Your Majesty?” He frowned. “It is the matter of the, ahh... the doppelganger. The mysterious pony that my guards mistook for my wife. We never did discover who she was...” Twilight Sparkle and Rainbow Dash collectively gasped. They turned to look at each other, wide eyed. Pinkie Pie! They had been so caught up in breaking into the abbey and rescuing Queen Diane, that they completely forgotten their real reason for being here. “I’m very sorry, Your Highness, but my friend and I really must be going now. We have to leave and uh...” “Drink at the tavern,” Rainbow Dash jumped in. “Use the toilet,” Twilight Sparkle finished her alibi at the same time. The two friends shared a look. “Use the toilet,” Rainbow Dash corrected herself. “Drink at the tavern,” said Twilight Sparkle. They glared at each other. Queen Diane laughed gently, interrupting them. “Please, do not inconvenience yourselves for my sake. Feel free to go about your business.” Relieved, the two ponies bowed and left the chamber, turning down a corridor. “Rainbow, which way is the Queen’s chamber?” “We’re already headed that way! Since Pinkie Pie disappeared there, that’s where she’s most likely to reappear, right?” she said as she stuck out her tongue. “One step ahead of ya, egghead.” Twilight Sparkle rolled her eyes and smirked. “Alright, alright, don’t let it go to your head.” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 600 AD Sugardia Castle — Queen Diane’s Chamber When they reached the Queen’s chamber, they spent a few minutes convincing the Royal Guards that, given their recent hero status, they should be allowed to enter, so long as it was only for a minute, and they didn’t touch anything, and they promised not to tell anypony, particularly the guard’s superior officer. As they slipped inside, they were surprised to see the room was glistening with a soft pale light. As the two ponies approached the center of the room, the intensity of the light bloomed. Rainbow Dash and Twilight Sparkle were forced to cover their eyes to protect themselves from the blinding light. As the light of the room died down, Rainbow Dash was about to lower her leg and chance a look, but before she could react, she was tackled and landed on her back. As she opened her eyes, she saw a mass of curly pink mane, actively in the process of glomping her. “Dashie!” Pinkie Pie let out a cry of joy. “Oh my goodness, I’m so glad to see you! It was so scary! I was in this empty dark room where there was no sound and no light and no ponies, and I felt so alone and cold and sad and lonely! I was so worried that I’d be stuck there forever and ever, and then I thought to myself, ‘Myself! Don’t give up hope! Your friend Rainbow Dash came to save you once already. She won’t let you down.’ And then I thought to myself, ‘Myself, you’re right! We’ve got to believe!’ And then y’know what happened next? I tackle-hugged you because you were here! And I was here!” During this, Rainbow Dash’s expression was initially one of pure shock, as she was pinned to the ground by a friend whom she feared had disappeared forever. As Pinkie Pie’s verbal tirade proceeded, her shocked expression gradually was overtaken by a heart-warmed smile. We did it, she thought to herself. We saved Pinkie Pie. Pinkie Pie caught a glimpse of purple in the corner of her eye. Turning, she gasped, then turned back to Rainbow Dash. “And your friend is here, too! What’d you say her name was? Twilight Sparkle, right? Gollie, I can’t wait to introduce myself!” Standing up, releasing Rainbow Dash from the glomp, she coughed over-dramatically, then turned to Twilight Sparkle, grinning and holding out a hoof. “Hiya, Twilight Sparkle! I guess we already met at the Millennial Summer Sun Celebration, but we never got a chance to properly introduce ourselves, huh? My name... is...” Her voice trailed off into nothingness, as she was stopped cold. Twilight Sparkle had prostrated herself in front of the pink pony. Looking up from the ground, she saw Pinkie Pie’s hoof — which had been held out with the intention of a hoofshake — and she began to tremble. Hyperventilating, she lifted her own hooves up to gently cup Pinkie Pie’s, as if she were holding a delicate porcelain sculpture that would shatter if the slightest pressure were applied to it. Staring incredulously at the hoof, her eyes slowly travelled upwards, eventually making contact with Pinkie Pie’s eyes. She grinned toothily, looking for a smile in return, or an approving nod, or any form of recognition. The light left Pinkie Pie’s eyes, which fell slowly to the floor. She knew this look. Admittedly, it was one of the most eager looks she had ever encountered, but after a while, every look of adoration had a nauseating sameness to it. “You figured it out... huh?” she quietly asked. Twilight Sparkle giggled gleefully, oblivious to Pinkie Pie’s change in demeanor. “I did, Princess Pinkamena! I felt like such a silly-filly, having seen you at the Millennial Summer Sun Celebration... and I didn’t even recognize you?! Oh... to think that the magnificent Princess Pinkamena was the first pony to use my Telepod! I mean, ignoring Rainbow Dash, of course...” She continued to prattle on, entranced at the royalty before her. Meanwhile, Pinkie Pie’s eyes remained glued to the floor. It seemed like she wasn’t even listening or aware of Twilight Sparkle. Rather, to Rainbow Dash, she looked like she was about to cry... “H-hey, Twilight,” she cut her friend off. “Ease up, will ya?” Twilight Sparkle’s cheeks turned hot pink. She bowed so deeply and quickly that her nose smooshed against the floor, but she was too embarrassed to acknowledge the pain. “Omigosh, please forgive me, Princess Pinkamena! You just rematerialized into our timeline and I haven’t given you a moment’s breath before chatting away at you! I beseech you! Please forgive my impudence!” “No...” Pinkie Pie responded quietly. “I should be the one apologizing to you.” She turned to the pegasus, “And especially to you, Rainbow Dash. I knew it was wrong to deceive you, and I knew I would eventually need to reveal the truth to you, but... I should have confessed to you so much soon. Please, forgive me.” She bowed deeply. Rainbow Dash was severely creeped out. Pinkie Pie’s personality had completely shifted. This was nothing like the hyperactive pink pony from the Millennial Summer Sun Celebration, or indeed, from a minute ago. Her words, rather than a flurry of incomprehensibility, were now chosen slowly and deliberately. Her demeanor was stoic and quiet. The reality of the situation dawned on her. It’s as if... as if she’s royalty. Pinkie Pie turned and walked to the window, gazing outside. Rainbow Dash and Twilight Sparkle approached — the former with a look of concern, the latter with a starstruck euphoria. “I suppose I should introduce myself... for real, this time. Like you guessed, I’m Princess Pinkamena of Sugardia, daughter of King Sugardia the 33rd and Queen Susannah. I had never attended a Summer Sun Celebration before... I was always too busy with royal obligations. So, I pretended to be a commoner so that I could attend, without any stupid fanfare or formalities.” Rainbow Dash winced. “So... that hyperactive personality of yours... was that just an act?” Pinkie Pie looked mortified. “No! That wasn’t an act! It was the real me... The me I wish I could be all the time...” she sighed and looked away. “But you can’t act like a child when when you’re a princess... This me — the one right now — is the fake me. Besides, if you had known I was a princess, you would have treated me...” She avoided making eye contact with Twilight Sparkle. “...differently. You probably wouldn’t have even hung around with me at all.” Rainbow Dash walked up and put a hoof on her shoulder, to her surprise. “Of course I would have! The friend I met today was a completely crazy pony named Pinkie Pie. If you’re her, then you’re my friend!” Pinkie Pie looked up, shocked. “You still mean that? After everything?” The pegasus smiled earnestly. “Of course!” A smile started on Pinkie Pie’s face. It grew in size, stretching its way across her face. Her jaw lowered, her cheeks scrunched under her eyes, her eyes shimmered and dilated. It was as if every single muscle in her face was committed to make the largest smile physically possible. Rainbow Dash found it touching, if ever-so-slightly disturbing. “Friends!” she cheered, leaping into the air, fluttering her hooves excitedly. “Woo hoo! Oh Rainbow, I’m so relieved... But that’s why I liked you in the first place! You’re so... so chill!” She stopped mid-cheer and turned. Twilight Sparkle was looking on, grinning. She was sweating, and her lips were quivering, as she said, “Oh, this is wonderful news! I’m so glad that the two of you are going to remain great friends.” Pinkie Pie hesitated. “Um... Twilight? You and Dashie have been best friends for, like... forever, right?” “y-Yes!” her voice cracked nervously. “Ahaha, yes, Princess Pinkamena. We’ve known each other pretty much our entire lives.” She grinned again, swallowing dryly. Rainbow Dash nodded in confirmation. Her hesitation gone, she offered Twilight Sparkle a hoofshake once again. “Well then, a friend of Rainbow Dash’s is a friend of mine. Just, call me Pinkie Pie, okay?” Twilight Sparkle looked down at the offered hoof, and her eyes dilated. With a squeak, she promptly fainted. Pinkie Pie looked to Rainbow Dash and shrugged. Rainbow Dash sighed and buried her face in her hoof. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 600 AD Sugardia Castle The ponies headed downstairs after another awkward conversation with the Royal Guards, this time explaining why one of the three ponies had fainted, and moreover why a third pony had mysteriously appeared in a sealed room, and that the third pony was in fact the doppelganger and not the real Queen Diane, so could everypony involved just please pretend that this had never happened. Rainbow Dash was really starting to appreciate the leeway that rescuing the Queen was affording her. As they reached the castle entrance, they saw a number of familiar faces. The two entrance guards were still at their post. In front of them, a queen and a frog were saying goodbyes. “Do take care of yourself, Lady Frog. Please know that your presence is always heralded here, no matter what you or anypony else may say.” Frog kneeled as Queen Diane turned, coming face-to-face with the three friends. “Oh, Lady Rainbow Dash, Lady Twilight Sparkle. Are you leaving us so soon?” The ponies bowed respectfully. “Yes, Your Highness, we would love to stay longer, but unfortunately, we really must return to our homes now,” said Twilight Sparkle. Queen Diane nodded in acknowledgement. “Then I wish you two a safe travel. Oh?” She noticed the pink pony who had rejoined the group. “Is this the pony who was mistaken for me? My, the resemblance is... uncanny.” “Hi! My name’s Pinkie Pie!” she smiled widely. “It’s so nice to meetcha! Sorry that everything got all confused because of me... but I’m so grateful for everypony taking such good care of me. I sure owe you ponies! Owe you ponies big time!” The Queen returned a gentle smile. “You certainly are an energetic spirit. I hope that you are able to visit us once again. I’m sure we would have much to discuss.” “Okie dokie lokie!” She bowed politely. “Pardon me, but I must return to my duties... It would seem much has transpired in my absence. Safe travels, my little ponies.” The three ponies bowed respectfully in return as Queen Diane left for the throne room. “My my my... you really could pass for Queen Diane’s twin.” Frog look curiously at Pinkie Pie. “Heehee, yep! I guess so!” Rainbow Dash looked at Pinkie Pie, puzzled. A pony-shaped frog talks to her and she doesn’t even bat an eyelash? Typical Pinkie Pie. “So, Frog... you’re really leaving?” Frog nodded, her face determined, with a dash of sadness. “Yes, darling, t’would seem that I still need much training before I can properly... defend the Queen. I shall return to my residence, to the south near Pommel.” “Are you kidding? You were amazing in that abbey! Heck, you probably coulda saved the Queen all by yourself! Why leave now?” “Huh?” Twilight Sparkle looked to Rainbow Dash, thoroughly confused. Frog smiled at Rainbow Dash. “It was fortuitous that we rescued the Queen, but as her sworn protector, I should have been able to protect her from being captured in the first place. A task such as this demands perfection, and I shall train tirelessly until I am fit to take on that mantle. Should you ever be in the area, I would certainly welcome you for some sword practice.” Shaking the confusion from her face, Twilight Sparkle smiled and threw her hoof over Frog’s back. “Of course! We’ll definitely make time to visit with our friends.” Frog was caught by surprise. “F-friends? Do you mean that, Twilight Sparkle?” “Yeah, what happened?” Rainbow Dash arched an eyebrow. “Earlier this afternoon, you couldn’t even look at her without totally wigging out.” Twilight Sparkle closed her eyes and shook her head. “I know. I was quite rude and immature. But Frog taught me an important lesson about the magic of friendship. Everypony has many different sides to them, and you might like some of these sides better than other sides. But the most important facet of a pony is their heart. If you look into another pony’s heart, and you like their true inner nature, you’ll realize how little the other details matter.” She opened her eyes and looked at Frog. “When I looked into your heart, I saw kindness and compassion. You treated me so well despite how horrible I was to you at first, and you even encouraged me to try my best. I’d love to be friends with a pony as generous as you!” Pinkie Pie looked at Rainbow Dash out of the corner of her eye, smiling embarrassedly. Frog smiled heartwarmingly at the unicorn. “And I would be honored to call you my friend as well, Twilight Sparkle. And you, Rainbow Dash, and Pinkie Pie.” Rainbow Dash grinned, thoroughly impressed. Way to go, Twi! “In that case, my friends, let us part ways for now, until we meet again soon!” After striking one last triumphant pose, Frog turned and bounded out of the castle gate and into the distance. The three ponies waved farewell. “Ah, there you are!” A turquoise pegasus flew up to them rapidly, whom Rainbow Dash recognized as the pegasus who was working in the mess hall earlier. “We’ve finished the preparations on your food. Would you care to eat now?” Rainbow Dash’s stomach gurgled loudly. “By the Sun, yes please... It’s already evening and I haven’t eaten anything all day. I’d love something to eat...” she drooled with anticipation. “Great!” Medley said, relieved. “Cotton Candy! Bring out those special dishes, please!” She turned to Pinkie Pie. “You certainly gave us some oddball requests, Miss Lookalike Queen. And quite a lot of them! I knew the real Queen didn’t eat this much... But! We gave it our all, and put together a few dishes that we think you’re going to love!” Cotton Candy pushed out a cart laden with a number of dishes. Rainbow Dash hungrily eyed the plates, but her expression soon turned to one of confusion. The drink cups appeared to contain a clear liquid, but they were mostly filled with a heaping scoop of rice. There was a large serving platter that held a large mound of pebbles. There was also a bowl holding some type of lumpy white pudding. Rainbow Dash wasn’t certain, but it almost looked like somepony had mashed up a bunch of... Rainbow Dash shoved her friends in the direction of the exit. “Oops! Hey, look at the time! It is late and we really need to be getting back home!” “Hey! Dashie, wait! I wanna try those little rock things!” Pinkie Pie called out in despair as she was saved from the disastrous entrees. “Wait, come back!” Medley called out as the ponies disappeared from view. “Aww, we can’t let this all go to waste...” She turned to the entrance guards, asking “Hey, would either of you two care for...” The guards shook their heads solemnly. “If those ponies were the ones who ordered this food...” “...then we’d rather starve.” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 600 AD Outer Limits of Equus Twilight Sparkle and Pinkie Pie walked through the quiet streets of Equus, on their way back to the canyon. Rainbow Dash flew above them, gliding through the quiet night air. The town had gone mostly quiet, as everypony was starting to turn in for the evening. Aside from the friends, the only other ponies that were out and about were a trio of mares. They seemed to be having a heated debate, but at her altitude, Rainbow Dash could only make out bits and pieces. “...told ya we wouldn’t... Crusader Bell Makers.” “...making a bell?” “Aww... never find our...” “Don’t give up now! I’ve got... idea we can... offered us jobs as...” “Whoa! I like that plan, Sweetie...” “CUTIE MARK... YAY!” As the friends left the edge of town and entered the canyon, Rainbow Dash drifted down to her friends. “Hey, so, what exactly is the plan, anyway?” No reply. “Hellooo? Calling Twilight Sparkle, is anyone home?” She floated above her friend and playfully tapped on her head, who jolted in surprise. “Eh?! What... Oh, Rainbow. What is it?” “Heh. Thinking hard, or hardly thinking?” Rainbow Dash’s teasing earned a giggle from Pinkie Pie. Twilight Sparkle frowned and contemplated for another moment before speaking slowly. “Rainbow... when we said goodbye to Frog, something jumped out at me.” Pinkie Pie gasped. “Oh no! What was it? Spiders?” “SPI...! Ahem. No, not spiders, or any other critter. It was a contradiction.” She looked upward at her friend. “Something you said. You told Frog that she was strong enough to save the Queen by herself.” “Hmm? Well, yeah, don’tcha think so? I mean, it’s not like she was a better swordspony than me or anything. But did ya see the way she was swinging that broadsword around with her horn? She hardly raised a sweat, or anything! I’d totally like to challenge her to a practice match... That would be epic!” “So... Why did Princess Pinkamena disappear?” “Ooo, I know this one! Dashie explained everything to me. Everypony thought I was Queen Diane, so nopony saved her, so she didn’t have a filly, who didn’t have a filly, who didn’t have a filly, who didn’t have a filly, who didn’t have a filly, who didn’t have a filly, who didn’t have a filly, who didn’t have a filly, who didn’t have a filly, who didn’t have a filly, who didn’t have... me!” “Right! Something about... bran muffins? Oh, and a pair of socks!” “Grandmother’s Paradox,” sighed Twilight Sparkle. “And anyway, the Queen is alive. She’ll still have a chance to carry on her bloodline.” “Right. You, me, and Frog went to the abbey and saved Queen Diane.” “Which Frog could have done by herself.” “Uhh, probably.” “So if the Queen was going to be saved regardless, why did Princess Pinkamena disappear?” “Because she... wait...” Rainbow Dash’s face contorted as she lapsed deep into thought. “I’m getting confused.” “You and me both,” said Twilight Sparkle, rubbing her temple. “It doesn’t seem to make any sense, under basic causality.” “Well,” said Pinkie Pie as she rubbed her chin, “maybe it was just really really close? Like, Frog might’ve had trouble by herself, so I went poof, and then everypony teamed up, so I unpoofed?” “Hmm... so it was strictly based on probabilities? I have a hard time believing somepony would be completely erased from existence based on a dice roll... No, I’m starting to wonder if you disappeared because of something else...” Pinkie Pie gasped. “Imps! Heads up, gals!” Rainbow Dash looked ahead. Sure enough, a trio of imps had spotted the ponies and were rapidly approaching. She cursed under her breath and landed, unsheathing her katana. “Sorry! I got distracted and wasn’t scouting ahead.” Twilight Sparkle smirked, levitating her dart gun out her saddlebags. “Allow me.” Taking aim, she fired two darts at the center imp, who immediately dropped to the ground. The deceased imp’s companions froze in their tracks. “Ooo ooo! Me next, me next!” Pinkie Pie frantically waved a hoof to get the attention of her friends. Rainbow Dash was initially confused when she noticed that Pinkie Pie’s hoof was wrapped in a large metallic leg-guard covering a large amount of her foreleg below the knee. Oh, right, she remembered. I noticed that earlier, back when I first met Pinkie... What the heck is that thing? As if answering the pegasus’s question, Pinkie Pie gave her hook a rapid shake. With a metallic sproing, the leg-guard unfurled two curved metallic braces. Each end was connected by a taut cord, running inside a groove that ran along the length of the leg-guard. Pulling against a lever with her left hoof, she pulled the cord back in the groove, locking it into place. Twilight Sparkle gasped in appreciation. “A compact leg-mounted repeater crossbow with built-in ammo chamber! That’s amazing!” “Hee hee, yeah! Plus, it can do this!” Tipping up onto her back legs, she took careful aim with her right hoof, stabilizing it with her left. She looked down the length of her arm, closing one eye. “Pew pew!” Pressing in with her left hoof, the crossbow fired, sending an arrow speeding through the second imp, who also fell. The last imp, sufficiently terrified by their deadly ranged attacks, began to flee in the opposite direction. “Wow, nice shot! Now it’s my turn.” Rainbow Dash arched her back low, pawing at the ground, preparing to charge after the imp. Pinkie Pie gasped and leapt in front of Rainbow Dash. “WAIT!” Rainbow Dash and Twilight Sparkle looked at their friend in confusion. Even the imp looked back to see what the commotion was all about. She closed her eyes. “Dashie... Twi... Do you know how to use Double Techs?” “Huh?” She stared straight into Rainbow Dash’s eyes, unblinking. “When the Battle Gauge of two or more ponies in your party has filled, the Tech command will change into the Combo command. After selecting the Combo command, scroll down underneath your Single Techs, and you will see a list of all available Double and Triple Techs. For example, try combining Rainbow Dash’s Cyclone and Twilight Sparkle’s Flamethrower attacks. When both ponies’ Battle Gauges are full, select the Combo command for either pony. Scroll to the bottom, and in the Double Techs section, select Fire Whirl.” “What.” Shaking her head clear, Rainbow Dash took to the air, speeding towards the imp. “Fine, you want a Cyclone? I’ll give you a Cyclone!” She spun circles around the imp, slashing it repeatedly, as a vortex of air built up around them. Pinkie Pie stared blankly at Twilight Sparkle, waiting. “Err... right, then.” Pulling out her Flamethrower, she fired a blast of flames at the imp, which were promptly pulled into the Cyclone. The ensuing funnel of flames, combined with Rainbow Dash’s swordsplay, made short work of the remaining enemy. “Wow...” Rainbow Dash landed near her friends, shocked at the maneuver that she and her friend had just pulled off. “That was... crazy. That’s for the tip, Pinkie Pie!” Blinking at last, she giggled and bounced ahead of the pack. “Hee hee! No problemo. Oh, and by the way, if you ever need me to repeat any of that, you can hear it all again by selecting the Tutorial option in the Main Menu!” Rainbow Dash turn to her friend, and opened her mouth to ask a question. “Nope.” Twilight Sparkle moved onward, cutting her off. “Don’t even ask.” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 600 AD Equus Canyon “Hey, gals, is this the place?” Pinkie Pie arrived first at the clearing where they had arrived in 600 AD. It was exactly as Rainbow Dash remembered it. The field was serene, with light ambient noise providing a soothing overtone. In contrast, Twilight Sparkle trotted up to a patch of tall grass and immediately began stamping it flat with her hoof. “Hmm... where was... I know it was somewhere around... aha! Ladies, behold! A Gate!” Rainbow Dash lowered her head to the ground and squinted at the patch of flattened grass. At first, she didn’t really see anything peculiar. Gradually, she notices there was a small irregularity above the grass: a point where light was bending and twisting, with a slight violet hue. “This little thing? I don’t see how...” “Stand back, please.” Twilight Sparkle gently nudged her friend until they were all a safe distance away. From her saddlebags emerged a strange electronic wand. It had an arrangement of six glass orbs on the end, giving the tip an almost star-like appearance. She waved the wand in the direction of the disturbance. On cue, the disturbance grew as the fabric of spacetime was torn asunder. Rainbow Dash and Pinkie Pie gasped as the tear’s form stabilized into a black and purple sphere. It was the same vortex that they had fallen into this morning, by which they had travelled into the past. Twilight Sparkle turned to face her friends, eyes closed, a self-important grin on her face. “Volia! Our portal back home is open again, thanks to this invention of mine!” She quickly blushed as her modesty kicked back. “Uh! I mean... Sorry, I didn’t mean to boast like that...” Pinkie Pie looked on in awe at the vortex, then back at Twilight Sparkle. “Didn’t want to boast? Are you loco in the coco?! Check that thing out, it’s bananas! And you’re able to just summon those things at will? That’s an amazing talent! I could never figure out something like that...” Twilight Sparkle bowed deeply. “Oh, no no no, your words are too kind, Princess Pikam...” “GRR! Pinkie Pie! PIN! KIE! PIE! We’re friends, Twilight. You don’t need to be treating me any differently than any other pony...” she said, looking pleadingly at the unicorn. “O-okay... sorry. Pinkie... Pie...” She felt lightheaded from the informal tone she was taking with her idol. Coughing, she continued, “Anyway, this phenomenon appears to be some type of temporal wormhole connecting two identical positions (identical with respect to the planet’s frame of reference) in two different points in time. In this case, connecting a region just north of the town of Equus in the years 600 AD and 1000 AD. So, I’m not actually able to create them anywhere; it has to be at a specific, chosen location. For simplicity’s sake, we can just refer to this phenomenon as a Gate.” “But, you were able to create it here,” said Rainbow Dash. “When I first traveled here from the present, I didn’t see the Gate anywhere. It just materialized here now.” She nodded, “Yes and no. That small irregularity I showed you, buried in the tall grass... that’s a Gate in its natural state. There’s one of those irregularities back in the present too, at my Telepod. Naturally, when they’re in this state, it’s not stable enough for us to use to travel through time. We need it to be opened up wide, like it is now.” She held the strange star wand in front of her. “That’s where this baby comes in. Since the first Gate appeared when my Telepod activated, I tried replicating some of its phase distortion components in a portable format. Sure enough, activating it near an irregularity causes a stabilized Gate to form! With this... Gate Key, let’s call it, we can stabilize Gates and travel through them at will!” Pinkie Pie clopped her hooves together appreciatively. “Twilight Sparkle to the rescue! Now we can get back home!” She blinked, “So you said we can only use this in certain spots, right? What created the spot then? Was it your invention?” “That’s what I’m still unsure of...” she said, frowning. “The Telepod and Gate Key are both able to stabilize Gates, so there’s certainly some type of connection. But I didn’t anticipate any type of temporal impact of my spacetime waveform alteration... I had specifically aligned it to only the spacial dimensions! But then again, if my Telepod didn’t create this, then who did?” Rainbow Dash shook her head, causing her mane to flap about. “Whatevs. The important thing is that we can get back home. I say, let’s get moving while we still have the chance.” Her friends nodded. “Sounds like a plan to me!” chimed Twilight Sparkle. Tentatively, they took a few cautious steps into the Gate, which immediately closed around them. They began falling in several directions at once as the violet waves of the Gate swept around them. After what felt like only a few seconds, they reappeared in a familiar setting. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 1000 AD Diane’s Square — Telepod “Woo hoo! Way to go, Twi!” Pinkie Pie danced around the Telepod. Rainbow Dash looked around herself. She saw the Telepod, the tents, the colorful decorations, even a few ponies still wandering about. Everything looked a bit different now in the darkness, as the sun had set over an hour ago, but there was no mistaking it. “We’re home...” A couple of ponies were heading home for the evening, and conversing loudly with each other. “Oh, WOW! Was that show incredible, or what?” “I KNOW! Omigosh, seeing the Wonderbolts perform live was everything I dreamed it would be.” “Dash...” Twilight Sparkle stepped toward her friend, who was looking out toward the distance. Because of their prolonged adventure, they had missed the Wonderbolts’ performance today, thus ruining her plans to try to impress them and join their team. This was a lifelong dream of Rainbow Dash’s, and Twilight Sparkle was very worried about how her friend would handle this. “Are you... going to be okay?” Turning back to face her friend, Rainbow Dash smiled broadly. “Of course! We made new friends, travelled through time, and rescued both a queen and a princess. Today was epic!” She paused hesitantly, before puffing out her chest. “A... And besides, we already messed with history once today. If a second historic thing happened on the same day, like the amazing Rainbow Dash joining the Wonderbolts, the universe wouldn’t be able to take it!” Twilight Sparkle smiled warmly at her friend, admiring her maturity, even if she was hiding behind bravado. Then, she raised an eyebrow. “Err, technically, that wasn’t today; that was 400 years in the past. It only seems that way because, due to our personal perceptions of timeflow...” “It HAS been a crazy day!” Pinkie Pie inadvertently cut off Twilight Sparkle’s technobabble. “And I don’t know about you girls, but I’m not ready for it to end!” Her eyes slowly dilated to the size of dinner plates. “Do... do you know... what we should do? We... should have...” she gasped loudly, “a PARTY! Oh man, it’ll be amazing I can get us some balloons and cake and games and drinks oh dear I am pretty hungry heehee I guess none of us got a chance to eat dinner but we can have dinner now at my PAR-TAY!” She smiled at her friends, awaiting their reactions. “A party thrown by Pinkie Pie?” Rainbow Dash chuckled. “Sounds wild. I’m in!” “A p-p-party with the P-P-Prin... I mean, with P-P-Pinkie Pie?” Twilight Sparkle was trembling violently. Coming to her senses, she dashed off. “Rainbow! Could you escort Pinkie Pie home? I just need to take a bath and pick out some formal attire and grab my camera and put together a makeover kit and pack...” The rest of her sentence faded off as she ran off toward her home. Rainbow Dash rolled her eyes, laughing. “Oh man, did you see the look on her face? I thought she was gonna have a heart attack.” Pinkie Pie was facing away from Rainbow Dash. She forcefully kicked a piece of gravel in front of her. It careened through the air before hitting a tree with a soft thwap. “Pinkie Pie! I... she...” Rainbow Dash inhaled sharply. “I’m sorry, please don’t be upset at Twilight. We’ll still have a good time tonight. At your awesome party, right?” “I don’t want to be treated differently,” she spoke barely above a whisper. “I just want to have a normal life, with normal friends. Ponies who like the ‘real me’, not some perception of me.” Rainbow Dash winced sharply. Horse apples... Twi was JUST telling Frog she’d learnt a lesson... One that sounded exactly like that... And then she turns around to Pinkie and... “Twilight means well, I promise! She just gets overly excited. Once she calms down a bit, she’ll be cool, really! Please don’t hate her...” Pinkie Pie turned to face Rainbow Dash with a confused look on her face. “Hate her...?” she gasped, horrified. “Oh, no no no! I didn’t mean... No, of course I like Twilight! She’s so smart and resourceful and brave. And she’s your best friend, so I know she’s gotta be a nice pony at heart.” She looked down at the ground. “It’s not really her fault. It’s...” The conversation lapsed into silence. Rainbow Dash bit her lip. She knew she was supposed to say something at this point, but she was drawing a complete blank. This kind of situation wasn’t really her strong point. “Hey, Dash...” Pinkie Pie turned her head to the side, looking at the three balloons in her cutie mark. “Do you believe in destiny?” “D-destiny?” Rainbow Dash was taken aback by the seriousness and gravity of the question. “You mean, like...” Pinkie Pie quickly shook her head. “Sorry, never mind. It’s not important now. Besides!” She regrouped herself, and a big grin returned to her face. “We still needa get the party started! I don’t wanna keep Twilight waiting, after all!” “Pinkie... are you sure that...” She shook her head again, more insistent this time. “I’m fine, I promise. Sorry that I got all mopey-dopey for a second.” She smiled as the two of them started to walk towards the castle together. “We traveled back in time, then made it back home! This is a happy occasion, so we should be celebrating! Besides, I’ve been gone from the castle all day, and I kinda snuck out without telling anypony. So, I’m sure everypony will be happy to see us!” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 1000 AD Sugardia Castle “SEIZE HER!” “Dashie!” Rainbow Dash was tackled flat by a squad of soldiers. Luckily for her, soldiers in the modern era wore lightweight protective vests, not the full-body metallic armor of the medieval era. If she had still been in 600 AD, a pony pileup of this proportion would have been perilous. As it was, she was uninjured but completely unable to move her body. “Princess Pinkamena! We had guards looking all over the place for you! Nopony knew where you had gone.” Rainbow Dash stretched and strained, trying to get a view of what was happening. At the top of the entrance staircase, Pinkie Pie was being held and comforted by a unicorn. This pony was wearing ornate, pale green robes with a matching muffin hat. She astutely guessed that, given the similarities to Chancellor Octavia’s outfit, this must be the Chancellor of the present era. Aside from the outfit, however, the mare appeared quite different from her predecessor. Whereas Chancellor Octavia was poised and calm, this Chancellor seemed much more animated and informal. She had a white coat and deep blue mane, with electric blue highlights streaked through her mane. As she turned to face Rainbow Dash, she noticed the Chancellor’s piercing red eyes. Rainbow Dash was initially apprehensive. After all, the last time she met a Chancellor, she had been disturbed by her eyes. But no, this time Rainbow Dash wasn’t getting the same sense of “offness”. These were simply natural, captivating red irises. While they weren’t conveying “offness”, however, they were certainly conveying many other emotions — none of them good. She walked towards the ponypile. “So! This is the creep who foalnapped you, isn’t it?! This punk thought she could just waltz right into the castle and demand a ransom? Not gonna happen.” “No!” Pinkie Pie followed closely behind. “Chancellor Scratch, you’ve got it all wrong! Rainbow Dash wasn’t...” She pointed an accusing hoof at the pegasus. “Admit it, you terrorist! You confused the poor Princess, foalnapped her, and attempted to overthrow the royal family.” She glared directly into Rainbow Dash’s eyes. “Are you a spy?” Rainbow Dash was speechless. “Wha... spy? No, I...” Chancellor Scratch waved her hoof dismissively. “Whatever. Save the excuses for your trial.” Pinkie Pie stomped her hooves angrily, and yelled at the soldiers lying on top of Rainbow Dash. “Stop this at once! That’s an order!” The Chancellor shook her head. “Scratch that order. The Princess has just been rescued and isn’t in her right mind. Take the prisoner to a holding cell. Her trial will begin first thing tomorrow morning.” The guards unpiled off Rainbow Dash. Ignoring Pinkie Pie’s pleas, they shackled Rainbow Dash and led her off to spend the evening in the dungeon. * * * Chapter 7: The Trial 1000 AD Sugardia Castle Courthouse Morning came quickly for Rainbow Dash. She was being led from the dungeon by two armed guards. Thick bindings firmly secured her wings to her sides, preventing any chance of escape by air. Their final destination was the royal courthouse within one of the towers of the castle, where her fate would be decided. Rainbow Dash wept silently as she was marched forward. One of the guards scoffed in disgust, “Already in tears? Pathetic. If you didn’t have the nerves for it, perhaps you should have thought twice before foalnapping our Princess!” Rainbow Dash looked up at the guard with moist eyes. “I... am so... hungry. I haven’t eaten anything since two days ago. Can’t I get a quick breakfast before the trial?” The guard did a double-take. That was hardly the confession he expected. He turned his gaze back ahead. “The trial cannot be delayed. You may eat after your judgment has been decided.” Rainbow Dash whimpered and hung her head low. Her guards opened a pair of tall chamber doors, leading her into the courtroom. She was led up to a small stand in the center of a large circular amphitheater. A sweeping galley of commonponies sat in the rows encircling the courtroom floor. Based on their jeers and cheering as Rainbow Dash was led into the chamber, they seemed quite biased for a guilty verdict. In a special booth above the galley seating, seven elderly ponies sat, quietly murmuring to each other. On the courtroom floor, two desks stood on each side. Chancellor Scratch was behind one of the desks, pushing around papers and memos with her horn’s magic, reviewing for the case. The other desk was currently empty. Between the two desks, in the front of the chamber stood a towering, elegant wooden bench. A very elderly pony with a long white beard sat behind the bench, patiently waiting for the trial to begin. As Rainbow Dash looked up above the judge, she saw a massive stained-glass mural depicting Lady Justice, a blindfolded alicorn holding a sword with one raised hoof, and a set of scales with the other hoof. The morning sunlight shone through the mural, igniting the room with a kaleidoscope of color. “Good, the defendant’s here,” said Chancellor Scratch, turning to the judge. “Let’s get this thing started?” The judge shook his head. “We are still waiting for the defense. Ms. Dash, do you have an attorney who will be representing you?” Rainbow Dash blinked. This was the first that anyone had mentioned this to her. “Wha... attorney?” The judge frowned and replied, “If you do not have representation, the court can appoint one for you.” “Unacceptable,” chided Chancellor Scratch. “We don’t have time to brief an attorney! This should have been dealt with last night.” Rainbow Dash was sweating profusely. Her trial hadn’t even started, and it was already falling apart! No one had told her to secure an attorney for the trial — Actually, how was I supposed to do that? I was being held in prison... — and now the Chancellor was pushing for a rushed replacement. “I... well, I guess...” The courtroom doors slammed open. “Gah! Sorry! So very sorry!” Rainbow Dash heard a pony charge into the room, shuffling a stack of papers and other legal materials. “Sorry, Your Honor! I was trying to prepare all of my materials for the case, and I ran late. With your blessing, I am ready to begin with the proceedings.” Chancellor Scratch arched an eyebrow. “You’re the defense?” “That’s correct. I will be representing Miss Rainbow Dash in the case of Kingdom of Sugardia v. Rainbow Dash, defending against the indictment of one count foalnapping, one count treason, one count blackmailing for ransom, and three counts of crimes committed against the royal family.” The speaker walked up beside the defendant's stand and bowed to the judge. Rainbow Dash turned her head to look at the pony who would be representing her. Her jaw dropped to the floor in shock and alarm. Beside her was a lavender unicorn, suspending a massive pile of books and paperwork in midair with her horn. “Twi?!” “Morning, Rainbow Dash,” Twilight Sparkle smiled cheerily. “I’m here to be your defense attorney!” Rainbow Dash leaned in close to her friend, whispering through gritted teeth. “What the hay are you doing? You aren’t a lawyer! You’re an inventor!” Winking, Twilight Sparkle opened her saddlebags. She jumped slightly as a book and a few papers dropped from midair in the process; she was near her limit of items she could magically manipulate at once. Turning back to her friend, she edged a book out of her saddlebag, and tipped the binding toward Rainbow Dash so that she could read the title: The Egghead’s Guide to Defending Kingdom-Level Court Cases. Rainbow Dash felt nauseated. “No. Absolutely not.” She looked hurt. “You know, when I showed up for the party last night and found out that you’d been arrested, I pulled an all-nighter, studying law and putting together your case.” She turned her nose up in mock haughtiness and added, “Buuut, if you’re sooo against the idea, I don’t have to represent you. I’m sure you could find some other lawyer who knows your case inside and out.” Rainbow Dash’s ears drooped, and she lowered her head. She was still not sold on the idea, but she knew that her friend was far-and-away her best hope at this point. “Fine. You’re my lawyer. ...Sorry for misjudging you.” Grinning cutely with her eyes closed, Twilight Sparkle picked up most of the materials off the ground and dropped them haphazardly on the defense attorney’s desk. “I, Twilight Sparkle, am ready as the defense, Your Honor,” she said as she frantically began organizing and shuffling her papers. You certainly don’t look ready... Rainbow Dash already felt clammy from her perspiration. “Prosecution’s ready, Your Honor.” Nodding, the judge banged his gavel, quieting down the chamber. “The court shall now come to order. We will begin the trial at this time. Ms. Dash, you are hereby ordered to answer all questions completely and truthfully.” She bowed her head solemnly, and gave a hoarse reply. “I understand, Your Honor.” Chancellor Scratch walked out from behind her desk, and addressed the booth of elder ponies. “Juryponies, the defendant is accused of the charges that the unicorn listed, mostly foalnapping Princess Pinkamena. You guys are here to pick how we’re going to punish her. Tickle torture? Hang her upside down for a few years?” She walked up to Rainbow Dash, leaning in uncomfortably close to her. “Maybe... the guillotine?” Looking back to the jury, she concluded, “It’s your choice.” Twilight Sparkle shook her head from behind the desk. “This case is open-and-shut. Miss Rainbow Dash is charged with foalnapping Princess Pinkamena. Did she? No, she did not.” She leaned forward over the desk, adding emphasis. “It was completely the opposite, in fact. Princess Pinkamena asked Rainbow Dash if she could accompany her during the Millennial Summer Sun Celebration.” The judge eyed Rainbow Dash. “Is this true, Ms. Dash? Who approached whom?” Rainbow Dash looked over to Twilight Sparkle, who silently mouthed the words “SHE DID”. Rainbow Dash closed her eyes and tried to remember back to yesterday morning. Actually, Twilight Sparkle was right. She remembered being initially annoyed because Pinkie Pie had basically invited herself to tag along. Right after... She sighed, “No, Your Honor. I was the one who started it.” Twilight Sparkle moaned in dismay, “Rainbow, weren’t you reading my lips?!” She shook her head. “Pinkie Pie did ask...” “Who?” “Oh... right. Princess Pinkamena did ask if she could hang out with me. But that was only after I had crashed into her. I was flying low in Diane’s Square, and...” “Ha!” cried Chancellor Scratch. “So you admit that you intentionally approached the Princess.” “It was an accident!” wailed Rainbow Dash. “I didn’t mean to crash into anypony. I didn’t mean to crash at all.” “After forcing Princess Pinkamena to follow you, a bunch of ponies spotted you two wandering among the Celebration, for about an hour. After then, nopony reported seeing you for the rest of the day. Sure sounds like abduction to me.” The audience began murmuring loudly in response to the clear accusation. The judge pounded his gavel to restore order. “Also, several ponies have come forward with testimony that damns the defendant's character.” “My... character?” asked a confused Rainbow Dash. Twilight Sparkle banged on her desk with a hoof. “Objection! Relevance!” Chancellor Scratch raised an eyebrow at Twilight Sparkle. “Relevance... of her character? It’s the core of the case. I can prove that Rainbow Dash is a pony of sketchy morality. Certainly devious enough to commit treason.” The judge pounded his gavel. “While a judgment of morality is not sufficient for a conviction, I’m inclined to agree with the Chancellor that it bears relevance to the case. Objection overruled.” Twilight Sparkle frowned. “Miss Rainbow Dash is one of the most loyal ponies in all of Sugardia. We have nothing to hide.” She pounded the desk with her hoof. “Besides, I still contest that character has no bearing on this case. The chancellor has failed to establish a motive for why my client would commit treason.” Rainbow Dash was thoroughly impressed. The Chancellor seemed to have the upper hoof so far, but Twilight Sparkle was fighting back with all her might, and pulling off a surprising amount of courtroom knowledge for somepony who earned their “law degree” over one sleep-deprived night. “Motive?” Chancellor Scratch raised her lip in contempt. “How about, oh I don’t know... money? The royal family is loaded, after all. Clearly, she was planning to blackmail them for a ton of cash.” She moved in front of the defendant's stand, staring face-to-face with Rainbow Dash. “Ain’t that right?” “No! I’d never do something that horrible. Princess Pinkamena and I hung out together because we’re friends.” “Oh? Are you sure?” She feigned surprise, leaning in close. “You weren’t tempted by the coinage? Not... one... bit?” “No!” Rainbow Dash angrily pounded her hoof on the stand. “I didn’t give a crap about her money, and I’m certainly not a foalnapper! Say that one more time and I’ll...” Her voice trailed off. Chancellor Scratch was smiling, and Rainbow Dash didn’t like the looks of that smile one bit. “Gotcha,” she whispered. Rainbow Dash threw a furtive look to Twilight Sparkle for confirmation, but the unicorn was flipping through one of her reference books, and failed to catch her eye. The Chancellor turned and confidently walked back to her desk. “So, the defendant just said — under oath, I remind you — she didn’t care about money.” Reaching the desk, she turned back to grin smugly at Rainbow Dash. “Witness.” The chamber doors opened, and a gray unicorn with midnight-blue mane was led into the chamber. Immediately, he turned to face the booth of jurors. “I saw it all! That rainbow-striped pegasus there, she just crashed into the Princess. Bam. Collision knocked her necklace clean off. She was looking everywhere for it! And wouldn’t you know it? That pegasus grabbed the necklace. Didn’t even check if the Princess was okay. Probably intended to sell it. Go figure. We’re done here.” He turned to leave. “What?” Rainbow Dash panicked. “I picked it up ‘cuz I fell on top of it! And I gave it right back...” “Objection!” Twilight Sparkle interrupted, ruffling through a stack of papers. “Speculation! The witness shall refrain from speculating that the defendant wanted to sell the necklace, or that she grabbed the necklace, or that anypony had a necklace.” Chancellor Scratch was still smiling. “Next witness.” The grey unicorn left the chamber, and was exchanged with a pale yellow pegasus with a fiery red mane. He had dark circles under his eyes, and wasn’t quite walking straight. He yawned, “Issat... yeah, that’s her! I think! I was at the Celebration, working,” another yawn, “at one of the shops! Late in the afternoon, that rainbow earth pony came to my shop, and,” yawning again, “tried to sell me a silver necklace! But I recognized it was the... the Queen’s, I think! So I didn’t buy it! I’ll tell you more... after... the... break...” He fell asleep on the spot. “Oh come on!” screamed Rainbow Dash. “That’s complete nonsense, there’s so many things... Look at him, he’s totally sleep-deprived!” “Objection! Lying! My client says the witness is lying, so you have to strike that testimony from the records!” Chancellor Scratch’s grin widened as she went in for the kill. “Next witness.” The guards woke up the unicorn and escorted him out of the courtroom. As they left, a white pegasus with a hot pink mane flew in. “I saw her together with the Princess. The Princess was innocently trying to buy some candy, when this one fiendishly pounces on her, dragging her away by force. The Princess was all screaming, ‘Nooo, let gooo, don’t foalnap me!’, but she was unrelenting. She led the Princess up to Twilight Sparkle’s invention, and from what I hear, nopony saw either of them after that.” Rainbow Dash’s blood froze. Oh no... I did drag Pinkie Pie around at that candy stand... and she did yell out... “No! I mean... yeah, some of that did... you’ve got it all wrong! It’s a huge misunderstanding!” Twilight Sparkle’s desk was a maelstrom of reference guides. They were flying by at such a speed that it was incredibly unlikely they were actually being read. “Objection! Freedom of speech! The Princess has the freedom to scream that she’s being foalnapped, even when she isn’t! Which she wasn’t!” The final witness was lead out of the courtroom. As she passed by, she smiled widely at Rainbow Dash. “Such a naughty mare. You probably had to tie the Princess up after you foalnapped her, huh? Didja use nylon cord or natural fiber?” “I didn’t... wait, huh?” Rainbow Dash didn’t get a chance to process the question, as Chancellor Scratch’s triumphant voice filled the chamber. “And there you have it. Motivated by greed, she stole the necklace, pawned it, tied up the Princess, dragged her to Twilight Sparkle’s thing, after which they...” She stopped cold in her tirade. Slowly, she turned her head to look at Twilight Sparkle. The lavender unicorn froze. Forgetting about her books, they all fell at once with a thunderous crash. She began sweating profusely, and offered a shaky, tooth-filled grin. The Chancellor addressed her, “You, temp lawyer. What did you say your name was?” “W-w-who, m-m-me?” She swallowed dryly, twitching nervously. “Oh, ahahaHAHAha, silly me, I think I forgot to mention it.” Chancellor Scratch’s eyes narrowed. “I think you did mention it. But whatever. Tell us your name.” “...Chocolate Milk?” She slammed her hoof on the desk. “Name. Now.” Twilight Sparkle squeaked, barely audible. “...Twilight Sparkle.” At once, the galley exploded with rageful shouts. “Mistrial!” “She was in on the whole thing!” “Subverting the law of the land!” “Hang them both!” “Have they no shame?” “I knew that pegasus was up to no good!” Chancellor Scratch turned to the judge. “There you have it. Rainbow Dash planted an accomplice as her lawyer, and tried to fool you, me, and all the jurors, in order to get away with the crime of the century.” With tremendous force, Twilight Sparkle brought both of her front hooves down on the desk, knocking several parchments onto the floor with a resounding slam. She reared up on her hind legs and pointed a hoof dramatically and accusingly at the Chancellor. “OBJECTION!” she screamed at the top of her lungs. The courtroom was deathly silent. The judge, the Chancellor, Rainbow Dash, the jurors, galley, and guards... everypony’s eyes were fixated on the unicorn, awaiting her next words. Rainbow Dash felt an eerie chill run down her spine. Her friend, standing before her, was no mere dorky inventor. This was a Goddess of Law, sweeping in with a dramatic Deus Ex Machina to turn the court case around and save her from an untimely fate. After a few seconds of perching, she wobbled slightly and dropped to all fours. Coughing lightly, she spoke thusly: “I was hoping to come up with something while objecting, Your Honor.” She blushed. “I didn’t.” The judge nodded, contemplative. “Yes, I see.” Rainbow Dash slammed her head into the podium. You’ve. Gotta. Be. Kidding. Me. “Objection!” “Ms. Sparkle, you had better have an objection in mind this time. The court’s time is not to be wasted.” “Y-yes, Your Honor!” She swallowed nervously, stalling for time. “Indeed! Verily, I say... Ergo!” “Grr! Twilight, what gives?!” Rainbow Dash yelled, unable to hold back. “If you can’t think of something, just reuse one of the ones you already used! Like...” she suddenly gasped, “helldance! Subjective helldance!” Twilight Sparkle’s face contorted as she tried to translate from Dashese. “Objection... relevance?” “That one!” She nodded vigorously, then turned to the Chancellor. “Twilight was a big help with objectiving, and using her books, and all that brainy stuff... But she never actually answered any questions! That was all me, and those three ponies you brought in. She wasn’t able to change anything we said. I told the truth, regardless! So why does it matter if she’s my friend?” Chancellor Scratch stared at Rainbow Dash blankly. “Relevance. Really? The two of you are caught red-hooved trying to scam first the royal family, then the courts, and you think it’s irrelevant.” The judge nodded solemnly. “I am inclined to agree. Objection sustained.” “SERIOUSLY?” Chancellor Scratch, Twilight Sparkle, and Rainbow Dash yelled in unison, incredulous. “I can think of no way in which Ms. Sparkle has negatively interfered with the proceedings thus far. She has not influenced the testimony of her client in any significant way, nor has she tampered with any of the witnesses. And I did not sustain any objections of hers that were of a questionable nature. I agree with Ms. Dash that, even under the worst of assumptions, Ms. Sparkle has not violated the integrity of this hearing.” “I don’t believe this!” Chancellor Scratch wailed in rage. “That said,” the judge continued. “We will move forward on two conditions. As a conflict of interests has been raised, we will move directly to the verdict at this time, so that there are no further opportunities for contamination. Secondly, Ms. Sparkle, since you were with Ms. Dash at the time of the Princess’s disappearance, by your own admission, you are hereby considered an accomplice and will therefore receive identical judgment to that which we decide for Ms. Dash. Do you understand?” Twilight Sparkle bowed her head in defeat. “I understand, Your Honor. I will abide by the court’s decision.” “...Eh, fine by me,” scoffed Chancellor Scratch. “In the end, the only thing that gets changed is that we have two executions now instead of one.” The judge banged his gavel. “Fillies and gentlecolts of the jury, at this time we are ready to hear your verdict.” The seven ponies in the raised box slowly made their way down to the courtroom floor. Twilight Sparkle left her desk and went to stand next to her friend in the middle of the room. “Don’t worry, Rainbow. Despite a few setbacks, and a few pieces of condemning testimony, and a few courtroom violations, I’d say we made a pretty compelling case!” Rainbow Dash stared at her. “If you weren’t trembling, I’d almost believe that.” “Speak for yourself,” she teased back. They shared a quick glance, then huddled together, comforting each other and praying for a miracle. “Guilty,” said the first juror. The audience burst into cheers. Rainbow Dash gasped, “That’s it? We’re guilty, just like that?” “Hush. It’s best of seven,” sighed Twilight Sparkle. “Not guilty,” said the second juror. “Oh... okay, phew.” Rainbow Dash relaxed slightly, but was still on edge. The five remaining jurors would be deciding their fates. “Guilty.” “Guilty.” The two ponies’ hearts sank as the crowd’s cheers grew, calling for blood. The testimony of the witnesses, while exaggerated and outright mistaken, was killing their case and preventing the truth of their version from being seen. If any of the last three jurors called for a guilty verdict, it would be all over. They held each other closer, and closed their eyes. “Not guilty.” Rainbow Dash twitched slightly, but let it pass. Doesn’t matter. One of the other two will vote guilty for sure. “Not guilty.” They both looked up, then at each other. Could it be... Will we actually make it? The last juror walked to the center of the room, and cleared his throat. A hush fell over the room as everypony strained to hear his tie-breaking decision. While he did not project very strongly, everypony in the room was able to hear him clear as day. “Not guilty.” “We did it!” Rainbow Dash and Twilight Sparkle, locked in embrace, leapt into the air in celebration. Landing clumsily, they fell into a pile. They began to laugh as all of the stress and tension of the situation released and drained out of their bodies. Chancellor Scratch had no words. Turning silently back to her desk, she flung her papers off her desk with her magic. She bucked the desk repeatedly, venting her anger and frustration. The crowd of spectators began booing lowly, apparently disagreeing strongly with the decision. Many of them were screaming angrily about a “travesty of justice” this, and a “trial was a sham” that. The judge pounded his gavel forcefully, trying to quiet down the crowd. “Order! Order! I will have order!” After a minute, the room had grown quiet enough for him to proceed. “While Ms. Dash has not been found guilty of her various charges, the fact remains that she and Ms. Sparkle ran away with the Princess, causing the Crown and the Royal Guards severe duress as they searched for Her Highness. Therefore, the two of you shall serve three days of jail time as punishment. Court is dismissed.” With one last pound of the gavel, he stood to leave. “Hey! Just one minute, mister!” yelled somepony in the galley. Rainbow Dash turned in confusion, trying to look for the source, but she didn’t need to search for long. A pony with a curly pink mane was bouncing from row to row, awkwardly pushing and landing on top of the other ponies in attendance. “Pinkie Pie! You were watching the trial?” “Whoa!” She tripped as she attempted to jump from the bottom row to the courtroom floor, landing with a squeak. Quickly bouncing back up to her hooves, she implored the judge. “That’s right! And my friends are innocent. You said so yourself! If they didn’t do anything wrong, then you have to let them go.” The courtroom doors flew open once again with a resounding slam. “That is enough, Pinkamena.” Pinkie Pie did not need to look in order to recognize the voice; instead, she opted to glare angrily at the floor. “Father...” she spoke just above a whisper. Rainbow Dash needed to do a double-take. Having seen the royal family of this era and the past era, she had certainly noticed a family resemblance running through all of its members. In the case of King Sugardia the 33rd, however, he was the spitting image of his ancestor: from the crimson royal robes to his brown coat and light grey sideburns. “My only request was that today, you behave as a proper princess should. Was this too much to ask?” Pinkie Pie snapped her head around, glaring hatefully at her father, the King. “You’re just going to stand there and let this happen?! They didn’t do anything wrong!” King Sugardia shook his head thoughtfully. “All ponies of the realm are subject to its laws, from the meekest filly to the mightiest of kings. The courts have cast their decision on these two mares, and that decision shall be carried forth. Allow Chancellor Scratch to carry out her duties, and forget about the yesterday’s nonsense.” “N-nonsense?!” A lump formed in Pinkie Pie’s throat. Unable to form the words, she could do nothing but grit her teeth. “Let’s go,” Chancellor Scratch said to the guards. They approached Rainbow Dash and Twilight Sparkle, shoving them towards the chamber doors. Pinkie Pie snapped back to her senses, and reached out a hoof in vain to her friends as they were led away. “Dashie! Twi!” Rainbow Dash twisted her head around to look back as she was forced ahead. “Don’t worry, Pinkie Pie, we’ll...!” The courtroom doors slammed behind her, separating Princess Pinkamena from her newfound friends once again. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 1000 AD Sugardia Castle Dungeons — Processing Room The guards led the two friends into the processing room for the dungeon. Rainbow Dash was still equipped with her belt shackle from the morning, holding her wings tightly against her body. Similarly, Twilight Sparkle had been fitted with a magic-dampening horn sheath, preventing her from using any of her magical abilities. Hampered as they were, stripped of their saddlebags and equipment, and surrounded by armed guards at every turn, they had no choice but to march onward to their punishment. In the processing room, an aging purple pegasus sat behind a desk, filtering through stacks of forms and bureaucracy. Looking up, she snapped to attention and crisply saluted. “Ah, Chancellor! What a wonderful surprise. What marks the occasion for this visit?” Chancellor Sparkle motioned toward the two captive ponies with an indifferent lean of her head. “Bringing in the terrorists who ran off with the Princess.” The warden glared at the two friends. “Those scum. Excellent. It’s such a satisfying feeling to lock away a couple of true villains.” Twilight Sparkle smiled disarmingly. “Oh, no, far from it. This has all been a terrible misunderstanding. In fact, even the courts found...” “They were found guilty of high treason, and have been sentenced to execution by beheading.” “WHAT?!” The friends screamed in unified horror. “The execution is scheduled for sunset tonight. Do not let them out of your sight until then.” “That’s a lie! She’s lying!” Rainbow Dash yelled in a panic. “We’re innocent!” The warden snorted in contempt. “Of course you’re innocent. You and everypony who’s ever been held here.” “Your records!” Twilight Sparkle jumped in. “Surely if you check your records, you’ll see that we’re not scheduled to be executed at all.” The warden rolled her eyes, and started flipping through her memos. “That’s an even bigger laugh. I’ve prided myself in avoiding a single clerical error in the last ninety-two months. Now you’re going to tell me...” Her voice trailed off as she scrutinized the stack of paperwork. “Well, this is peculiar. Chancellor, it doesn’t appear that I received the authorization forms to carry out this sentencing. Do you know what became of them?” Chancellor Scratch strode up, getting so close that her chest leaned uncomfortably against the warden’s. Panicking, the warden could do nothing but stare into the Chancellor’s captivating red eyes. “Lemme get this straight. After years of perfection, you manage to lose the paperwork for snuffing out the worst terrorists this country has seen in years. Are you prepared to let them walk free because you royally screwed up?” The warden swallowed nervously. “N-no, ma’am! We’ll begin making preparations right away.” Twilight Sparkle stomped angrily toward the Chancellor. “You monster. You’ll never get away wi... AHH!” Telekinetically, the Chancellor grabbed ahold of her and threw her roughly against the stone walls of the room. She crumpled awkwardly and fell in a heap. “Twilight!” “Pft, never? What’s it look like I’m doing right now?” Rainbow Dash glared murderously at the unicorn with the electric blue mane, and prepared to charge at her. “You’ll pay for that, you lousy piece of...” But Rainbow Dash was unable to finish her threat. Her consciousness fell out from under her as the guard’s nightstick connected firmly with the back of her skull. * * * Chapter 8: Escaping the Inevitable 1000 AD Sugardia Castle Dungeon Cell Rainbow Dash awoke to an overwhelming sense of pain. The sensation was so all-encompassing that for a moment, she couldn’t focus on anything else in the room. She held a hoof tightly to the spot, trying to dull the sensation with pressure, but it didn’t help much. She lied in place for a few minutes, trying to regain her senses. Once she felt slightly better, she gingerly sat herself up, still feeling somewhat woozy. She was lying on a hard stone slab in a dank, chilly cell. Peering out in the dim lighting, she looked to the other side of the room and saw the silhouette of another pony lying on a similar slab. At the far end of the room, flickering torchlight spilled into the room, playfully dancing along several vertical metal bars that imprisoned the ponies within their cell. It began to dawn on Rainbow Dash that she and Twilight Sparkle were trapped in this dungeon, with a looming sense of dread hanging in the air. She winced sharply as the pain returned in full force. Underneath her hoof, her stomach gurgled loudly. “Gahhh... I’m gonna die of hunger! Don’t I get a last meal or something?” From behind the bars and around the corner, a guard’s voice replied. “It’s still being prepared, and it’s a fine lot more than villains like you deserve. Now pipe down!” Scowling, Rainbow Dash slid off the stone slab and carefully balanced on her four hooves again. Absentmindedly, she rubbed the back of her head. Great, and now my head’s kinda sore, too. She walked up to the pony silhouette and spoke quietly. “Hey. Twi? That you?” Twilight Sparkle sighed, staring blankly at the ceiling. “We’re in a tight spot, aren’t we.” Rainbow Dash chuckled, softly yet cavalierly, “Yep. This is some pickle, all right. Omigosh, a pickle sounds so amazing right now...” “A tumultuous trial, a victorious verdict, a cheating Chancellor, an improper incarceration, all leading to a... painful punishment.” “Heh... you could say that,” said Rainbow Dash, rubbing her stomach and reflecting. “And of course... repugnant royalty.” “Yeah... Uh... I’m not quite sure what that means.” “The Princess. She hates me.” Rainbow Dash sighed, sympathetic yet slightly strained. Looks like we’re having this talk now. “Pinkie Pie doesn’t hate you...” “She does too. I saw how she acts around me. I was too giddy and excited around her to care at first, but now it’s so obvious to me. I was obnoxious and overbearing, and she doesn’t want me around. She’d rather just spend time with you.” She shook her head. “I’m tellin’ ya, she doesn’t hate you. She told me so herself.” “She did?” Twilight Sparkle’s eyes went wide with shock. “Yes! She knows you’re cool and super friendly, deep down. You just needa... dial it back a little. Stop treating her like a goddess. Just ignore the fact that she’s a princess. Be friends with the pony on the inside, y’know?” “So basically, exactly what I said about Frog. In front of the Princess.” Rainbow Dash winced. Drat... she noticed that too, huh? “Y-yeah... listen... it’s not the end of the world. I’m sure if you apologize, this whole thing will blow over before you know it.” She rolled over on the slab, looking up at Rainbow Dash. “I can’t! Don’t you get it?” “Sure you can. Pinkie Pie really wants to just be your friend. If you show her that you’re sincere...” “Not the apology! The execution!” wailed Twilight Sparkle. “Oh... you’re still going on about that?” She blinked a few times, incredulously. “Wh... YES, I am still ‘going on’ about that. Rainbow, in a few short hours... we’re going to...” she said with a nervous gulp, “die.” “Pfft, fuck that.” In a brief flash, Twilight Sparkle’s eyes were restored with a glimmer of hope. The brash, recklessly confident pony in front of her made her believe that they really had a chance, after all. As the moment passed, the glimmer was replaced with a scowl. “Hey. Language.” Rainbow Dash chuckled, and in teasing condescendence, she playfully patted her friend on the head. “Awww, nice to see you’re back with us, Miss Frumpy Flank.” She swatted her friend’s hoof away, absentmindedly. “What, so do you have a plan or something?” “Course!” she smirked confidently. “You ready?” “Absolutely! What’s the plan?” Winking deliberately, Rainbow Dash turned toward the bars and yelled in a loud and enunciated voice. “This whole mess is your fault, dweeb! If it wasn’t for your dumb invention, none of this would’ve happened!” “Huh? Why are... oh. Ohhhh.” Twilight Sparkle’s confusion was replaced with dawning understanding, and she too yelled toward the bars. “Me? What kind of ignoramus doesn’t even recognize their own Princess? It’s your fault that you brought her to use my invention!” “Hey!” the guard yelled from around the corner. “I thought I told you two to shut your traps!” The two friends shared a quick grin. The plan was working! Rainbow Dash belted out again in the guard’s direction. “Whatever! At least she likes hanging out with me! You were too busy geeking out to notice that you were giving her the creeps!” Twilight Sparkle opened her mouth to yell a reply, but closed it curtly. “Hey... too soon,” she whispered tersely. “Well, we’ll see if she still thinks you’re sooo cool once the Wonderbolts reject you!” The guard poked his armored head around the corner. “I’m not telling you again. Shut up, or I’ll come in there and make you shut up!” Neither of the ponies heard him. They were too busy locking eyes, attempting to inflict physical harm with their glares. “You wanna know why none of the colts in school ever asked you out?! They were afraid you’d set them on fire, just like one of your lame-ass, death-trap inventions!” Twilight Sparkle’s eyes started to well up, and her face turned a deep shade of crimson. Inhaling deeply, she screamed at the top of her lungs straight into Rainbow Dash’s face. “PINKIE PIE IS OUT OF YOUR LEAGUE!” Rainbow Dash snapped. “Why you little...!” She tackled Twilight Sparkle to the floor, landing on top of her. On her back, Twilight Sparkle flailed her hooves wildly, hitting her repeatedly in the face. “That’s enough!” The fully armored guard began fumbling with his keys, working on the lock to their cell door. Twilight Sparkle kicked one of Rainbow Dash’s legs out from under her, causing her to lose balance. Rolling over, she flipped on top of the pegasus. Pinning down both of her forelegs with her hooves, Twilight Sparkle leaned forward, chomped down on her rainbow striped mane, and tugged hard. Rainbow Dash cried out sharply in pain, struggling and flailing wildly with her hind legs. However, by leaning forward, Twilight Sparkle’s own mane was sloping off her shoulder, falling just in front of the pegasus. Rainbow Dash bit down on the purple mane and tugged hard in return. Both mares let out shrill cries as they yanked and pulled on each other’s manes. During this time, the armored guard had managed to unlock the cell door, and was approaching the two fighting mares. “I’ll put a stop to your racket once and for all!” As soon as he was within reach, both ponies immediately released each other’s manes. “Now!” shouted Twilight Sparkle. She jumped up into the air, leaping over the soldier’s head and landing behind him. From the ground, Rainbow Dash swept with her leg, kicking both of his forelegs out from underneath him. His front half fell to the ground as she quickly rolled out of the way. Twilight Sparkle took advantage of the opening, and bucked the soldier as hard as she could in his armored hindquarters. He went flying, flank over head, and crashed onto the cold stone floor, loudly and unceremoniously. Both of the mares made a break for the cell door, racing outside before the guard could recover. Once they were out of the cell, Rainbow Dash quickly bucked the door shut, and the pair ran off down the hallway. “Phew!” gasped Twilight Sparkle. “Making that... look convincing was... harder than I... thought it would be! It’s a good thing that.... we know each other so well.... huh, Dash?” “...” “Dash?” Twilight Sparkle turned to look at her friend as they continued to race along. She was still glaring venomously. Twilight Sparkle couldn’t help but grin, and switch to baby talk. “Awww wut’s da maddur? Can’t take da hits as guud as yuu gib dem?” “I. Like. Stallions,” she replied tersely. “Not mares. Stallions.” Twilight Sparkle giggled lightly. “I know, Rainbow Dash, I know. I was just trying to get a rise out of you, so that the guard would fall for our trap and open our cell. But I took things a little too far, and... well, I’m sorry. That was mean of me.” Rainbow Dash sighed. After a moment, she replied, “Yeah. I’m sorry, too, Twi...” The two friends smiled at each other as they ran down the hallway, putting their brief feud to rest. At least, until she stuck out her tongue and added, “...that you had to go to prom without a date.” “Wh... Hey!” Twilight Sparkle playfully bumped into Rainbow Dash as they ran, giggling. “Truce, already!” The two ponies’ laughter slowly faded away, replaced with determination. They shared a resolute nod. “Right! Let’s blow this joint!” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 1000 AD Sugardia Castle Dungeons The two friends crept slowly and methodically down the halls of the dungeon. The emotion and energy of the initial escape had cooled, leaving behind jittery levels of adrenaline. They were still deep within the bowels of the dungeon, which were patrolled by dozens of armed guards. More importantly, they were both still wearing shackles over their wings and horn, respectively, and all of their equipment had been confiscated. Even Rainbow Dash was level-headed enough to realized that, at least for now, discretion was the better part of valor. Luckily, there were a few things going their way. First, the guards had not seen fit to bind the ponies’ legs at all, permitting them to walk and run unhindered. Second, the dungeon halls were relatively safe, considering the circumstances. They were dimly lit by a few sparse torches, providing ample cover of darkness. While their halls resonated with a soft clack each time they set a hoof on the stone floor, the noise of their hoofsteps was lost amongst scurrying rodents, dripping water, and a cold hollow wind. Last, and possibly most important, the guards had not yet been alerted to the escaped prisoners. As long as the ponies could remain unnoticed, they stood a chance of escaping to the outside world. Rainbow Dash stopped abruptly, causing Twilight Sparkle to bump lightly into her in the darkness. Squinting ahead, they saw a lone guard patrolling the halls. Like the guard who had been watching over their cell, this pony was covered from head to tail in a heavy plate mail. Undoubtedly, this offered him superior protection, but it also left him slow, and vulnerable to surprise attacks from behind. Rainbow Dash was already creeping up slowly behind the armored pony, preparing just such an attack. She stepped gingerly down the hall, trying desperately to remain unheard. Stupid hooves... this would be so much easier if I could just fly up to him... As if she had jinxed herself, the guard stopped suddenly and straightened, alerted to some noise behind him. He slowly began to turn himself around to examine the source of the sounds. Realizing that she was about to be discovered, she dropped all pretenses of stealth and charged at full-speed. Leaping at her foe, she delivered a fierce kick with both of her forelegs, directly to the back of the guard’s helmet. With a noisy series of metallic clangs, the helmet flew off the guard, striking against the hallway wall before bouncing thrice down the hall. The guard teetered briefly before collapsing in a heap, sending a loud crash echoing into the dark distance. “Rainbow!” gasped Twilight Sparkle, mortified. “You... Why did you... You knocked his head clean off!” “No way! I did not! He probably just passed out, that’s all,” replied Rainbow Dash defensively. A hint of worry in her voice betrayed some lingering doubt, however. The pair leaned in closer to examine the downed guard in the dim lighting. When they leaned down to look inside the suit, they froze, turning to each other. “Empty?! How?” Rainbow Dash was floored. “We both just saw it walking around! Some kind of unicorn magic?” Twilight Sparkle struggled to comprehend her observations. “I... I don’t think so... I mean, it’s hard to tell in this light, but I don’t think I saw a glow... And if it wasn’t unicorn magic, then what...” Her concentration broke, and she threw a furtive glance up and down the hall. “We need to move. That made tons of noise. More guards’ll be coming soon.” Rainbow Dash shot one last hesitant glance at the pile of armor. What in Sugardia is going on here? How can an empty suit of armor move on its own, aside from unicorn magic? But she realized that her friend was correct; right now, time was not on their side. They turned and proceeded further down the hallway. Sure enough, as Twilight Sparkle had predicted, it wasn’t long before the light tapping of their hoofsteps was mirrored in the distance by slower, metal steps. Some guards — perhaps two or three — were heading in their direction, coming to investigate the sounds of the earlier attack. Sharing a glance, the two ponies realized that further fighting would simply draw more important attention to themselves, and run the risk of raising an alarm. Motioning quickly, Rainbow Dash pointed to a small wooden door, just ahead of them. Bolting, the pair quickly but quietly pushed the door open, and slid out of the hallway. They closed the door behind them, causing the approaching metal footsteps to become muffled behind the wooden protection. For now, the pair felt that they would be safe. “A-ah! You there!” yelled an unknown voice from behind them, inside the room. They leapt in surprise, quickly turning to look at the source of the voice. In shock, they realized that the voice was that of a slate blue unicorn. The unicorn didn’t have any particularly remarkable features — at least none that the friends could make out in the dim lighting. Rather, the most noticeable feature about the unicorn was that his neck was exposed and restrained near the ground, with a menacing blade perched precariously a few feet above him. “P-please! You have to save me!” “Shh! Keep your voice down!” Rainbow Dash hissed. She leaned her head against the door, listening outside to see if the guards had reacted. Twilight Sparkle ran over and began to free the unicorn from the restraints of the guillotine. “Hold still. Let’s get you out of this thing.” “Oh, Sun bless you,” he moaned. “Y-you’re Twilight Sparkle, right? The inventor? I-it’s me, Pokey Pierce! Remember me? My dad owns the market in Equus.” “Oh, right,” Twilight Sparkle replied somewhat absentmindedly, as she clumsily grappled at the restraints with her hooves. “Grr, this stupid thing... How’d you end up here?” He shook his head lightly. “It was awful. I was helping my dad run some of the stalls at the Millennial Summer Sun Celebration, when I... well... accidentally ruined some of the fair’s decorations. All of a sudden, some guards drag me away and throw me in this dungeon. They were going to execute me over a few popped balloons! I wasn’t even given a trial!” Rainbow Dash scowled from the doorway. “Same thing with us! We got proven innocent, and that Chancellor tried to off us, too. What gives?” “Proven not guilty,” corrected Twilight Sparkle. “Anyway, nopony’s getting beheaded over silly misunderstandings like these. Let’s get out of here, and then we’ll... well, we’ll figure something out.” Rainbow Dash cracked the door open and poked her head outside. The sounds of hoofsteps could faintly be heard from the far end of the hallway; the guards had passed by them without incident. She motioned for them to follow. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 1000 AD Sugardia Castle Dungeons — Upper Levels The three ponies continued their escape as they climbed their way out of the deepest levels of the dungeon. They had acquired another companion — a terrified pacifist at that — and they were encountering guards with increasing frequencies. In spite of these setbacks, the shadows were facilitating their escape quite nicely. The ponies were able to slip past patrols that were no further than a cart’s-length away, thanks to the darkness. Twilight Sparkle was actually rather perturbed by this. If the three of us are able to slip out of here unnoticed, what does that mean for the evil ponies who actually deserve to be here? At the end of the hall, the ponies reached yet another staircase, and began to quietly ascend the steps. Rainbow Dash sighed loudly in frustration, ignoring the reprimanding “Shhh!” from Twilight Sparkle. This is taking forever! If I didn’t have this stupid metal belt over my wings, I coulda flown outta here and be eating dinner by now! Though... I guess that wouldn’t do Twilight or that other unicorn any good, huh? Crud... “Halt!” “Crud.” Lost in her thoughts, Rainbow Dash had reached the top of the staircase and had pushed on into the next room. In doing so, she had missed a few important details. First, the lighting of this room had sharply increased. It was still lit sporadically by torches, but unlike in the lower dungeons, the torchlight here managed to cover the entire room. In fact, as she stopped to look around, she realized that they had made their way back up to the entrance, where this morning the warden and the Chancellor had sent them to their fate. Second, and more urgently, she had failed to notice that she had walked straight between two guards standing post at the doorway. As the trio of escapees entered the room, the guards charged in front of them, blocking their path. “Stop right there! Where you do think you’re going?” “Us? Oh, we’re the, uhh...” Rainbow Dash quickly threw together the first alibi that popped into her head. “Blacksmiths!” “R-right! Somepony needs to maintain all of those cell doors, shackles, guillotines...” added Twilight Sparkle. Pokey Pierce nodded enthusiastically. “Funny. The two of you look a bit like the Princess’s foalnappers... the very ones I tossed in jail just this morning.” Rainbow Dash winced, “Oh. Heh heh. I guess that means you’re not buying it?” “Don’t just stand there!” yelped Twilight Sparkle. “Run!” She immediately leapt across the room, diving into cover behind the warden’s desk. Rainbow Dash started to run to the opposite side of the room, hoping that with three escapees and two guards, they would be able to draw them apart. Unfortunately, the guards didn’t fall for the ruse, instead focusing their attention on the third, least battle-hardened of the ponies. Pokey Pierce shook with fright as the guards closed in on him. Rainbow Dash reached the wall and turned, realizing that nopony was following her. Without a second thought, she charged back at full steam, delivering a full-body tackle directly into the sides of one of the guards. She gasped for breath as the wind was knocked out of her. In hindsight, she realized that running chest-first into a heavy slab of metal was probably not a very effective attack. The guard didn’t seem very phased either, reinforcing that idea. But, at least it had served to draw their attention. The two guards turned away from Pokey, who fled to the far side of the room. As the guards started to back Rainbow Dash into the corner, she realized that she hadn’t really thought this next part through before jumping into the fray. “Rainbow!” In the corner of her eye, she caught a flash of metal. On pure instinct, she leapt into the air, twisting and flipping herself over. As the flash flew underneath her, she stretched her neck and bit down onto the object. Finishing her flip, she landed squarely on the ground in front of the guards, brandishing her katana. “Nice catch!” cheered Twilight Sparkle from behind the desk. “I found all of our stuff! Hang on, let me find mm mmfrg ff fhf.” Her sentence trailed off as she dove headfirst into her saddlebags, trying to extract a weapon without the help of her horn. I appreciate the offer, Rainbow Dash thought to herself, but there’s no need. I got this. She leapt backwards, blasting a Wind Slash in the direction of one guard. Landing on the wall with all four hooves, she jumped off toward his partner. As she passed overhead, she curled and did a tight somersault, slicing neatly through the empty helmet. She slid to a stop in the center of the room, as the two suits of armor crumpled behind her. “Fao!” exclaimed Twilight Sparkle, with her mouth clumsily biting down on her Flamethrower. “Luff li’ you di’in mee mah hel’ affu all!” Rainbow Dash arched an eyebrow. “What you tryin’ to say?” “AH FED, lufkk l’k you dih-dint...” “For pony’s sake! What’s wrong with you? I’ve got a freakin’ sword in my mouth and I can talk just fine. It’s not that hard.” It was difficult to tell with the large metallic device covering up most of her face, but she appeared to be scowling. “Weh EFFUF meh! Ahf euph to euphin mah HUH, fo...” Rainbow Dash rubbed her temple with her hoof. “Stop. Just stop.” Pokey Pierce emerged from his hiding spot, and approached the pair. “Oh, thank goodness. If you hadn’t have stopped those guards, it would have been straight back to the guillotine for me... Say, we’re almost free, aren’t we? This is the warden’s room?” “Yeah, that’s the thing... Where’s the warden? Shouldn’t she be here?” Twilight Sparkle blinked in surprise, and turned her head to look about the room. Sure enough, there was no sign of the warden pegasus. She shrugged. “Duh-nuh. Ah heff...” “Stop.” “W-well, I’m not looking a gift horse in the mouth. I say we get while the gettin’s good!” With that, Pokey Pierce made a break for the entrance, ascending the staircase. Rainbow Dash hurriedly strapped on her saddlebags using her teeth, then picked her sword back up. “Sounds good to me. Hey, stick together!” She and Twilight Sparkle raced up the stairs in pursuit. The trio stepped out into the open air. The dungeon’s tower was connected to the castle proper with a somewhat precarious metal beam bridge. Looking down, they saw that they were more than a hundred meters up in the air. A strong gust of wind pushed the ponies about, adding to the sense of vertigo. Normally, Rainbow Dash would be unfazed at this altitude. However, considering that her wings were still bound, she felt an unfamiliar sense of vulnerability. Still, there was hardly any other option at this point; if they wanted to escape, they’d have to cross. The ponies carefully walked across the bridge, trying to cross as quickly as possible and get back inside. As they got about halfway across, the bridge started to vibrate and rumble, causing them to nervously screech to a halt. “W-what’s that noise? What’s happening?” Pokey Pierce nervously looked to the other ponies for reassurance. Twilight Sparkle had none to offer. She pointed ahead, horrified. “If ah bwagom!” Rainbow Dash faced forward. A monstrous metallic contraption, several times larger than herself, was slowly rumbling its way onto the bridge, making its way to intercept the ponies. Two spiked wheels slowly lurched the machine forward, as exhaust belched from various pipes along the creature’s back. At front, the beast’s neck was crowned with a horrific draconian visage, with glowing red eyes and rows of metallic teeth. “You like?” shouted Chancellor Scratch from the far end of the bridge. She was flanked by the warden pegasus, who had notified the Chancellor of the prison breach. “The fillies down in R&D whipped this bad boy together. Scum like you will be no match for the Dragon Tank.” Rainbow Dash flared her wings defensively, and turned her head slightly to yell at Pokey Pierce. “Hey! You’re not gonna stand a chance on this thing. Make a break for it! We’ll cover you.” “W-what? But, I...” Pokey Pierce looked nervously between his two armed companions, and the menacing tank that was slowly approaching them. It slowly dawned on him that the rainbow pegasus was right, and he needed to escape before he became a liability. “Thank you... thank you so much! I’ll never forget this!” He began his terrified charge at the tank, attempting to pass it. “EEE HEF-FIA!” Twilight Sparkle leapt forward to provide some literal cover-fire, biting down on the controls of the Flamethrower in her mouth. A bombardment of flames spewed forth, searing across the tank. Pokey Pierce took the opportunity and raced past the tank, across the bridge, and down the stairs into the castle. The warden was dumbstruck as the unicorn ran past the Chancellor and herself. “Wh... Chancellor? We can’t just let him escape! We have to stop that fugitive!” “Scratch that. He’s just a small fry.” Her eyes were fixated on the tank within the whirlwind of flames. “We’re here to stop these terrorists, at all costs.” Slowly, the flames surrounding the Dragon Tank died down. As the smoke cleared, the ponies realized in horror that the tank was in pristine condition. Rainbow Dash’s was dumbfounded. “Wha... it’s not damaged?!” Chancellor Scratch grinned wickedly. “Oh, did I fail to mention? Completely impervious to the elements. Fire, lightning, you name it. You’ll have to try harder than that.” Twilight Sparkle’s face fell. “Oo huuf abbuf... Ah mee uh bihfih foo fum...” Rainbow Dash snapped, turning toward her friend. “Spit it out!” She dropped the Flamethrower clumsily on the ground, liberating her jaw. “Rainbow Dash, it’s impervious to my Flamethrower! I need a different tool from my saddlebags. I’ll need to get to it manually... Buy me some time!” She ran back several paces, dropped her saddlebags, and began riffling inside them. Great. Rainbow Dash turned back to see what the Dragon Tank was up to, just in time to catch a faceful of burning. Returning the favor, the Dragon Tank was spewing a blast of flame from its mouth, directly toward the pegasus. She quickly leapt back before she got singed any further. Scowling, she glanced behind her. Can’t keep backing up... I need to keep it away from Twi. Guess that means up and over! She rushed forward at the tank, jumping onto its back. As she approached, an array of ports on the tank opened and began shooting energy beams at the pony. However, the tank’s defenses were no match for Rainbow Dash’s agility and reflexes. Dodge, dodge, one grazed her back leg, dodge, counterattack! She left a deep gash on the tank’s back, exposing wires and circuitry. She leapt off the backside of the tank, and slid to a stop on the bridge behind it. Stiffly, with clockwork jittering, the tank’s head rotated to look at the fresh wound. The glowing eyes lit up with intensity before firing twin heat beams at the gash. As the beams heated the metal, it slowly began to solder the wound shut. Chancellor Scratch nonchalantly picked at her hoof with her teeth. “Oh, also? It can repair itself. You’re basically screwed.” Rainbow Dash backed up nervously. The tank’s wheels spun, slowly turning itself around to face its attacker. Completing its spin, it emitted a dark burst of smog, then began slowly lumbering toward her. She braced herself low, preparing to leap over the tank once again. Unexpectedly, a shower of sparks exploded from its neck. It let out a mighty bellow, as if in pain, as a rain of light continued to shower down upon Rainbow Dash. With one final groan, the neck snapped completely, causing the head to smash onto the bridge in front of itself. Where the neck was once attached, now stood Twilight Sparkle. She stood defiantly, miniature chainsaw gripped firmly in her mouth, her face scorched from the sparks that had burst so close to her. “Y-you...” For a moment, Chancellor Scratch was dumbfounded. The moment was brief, as she quickly found the appropriate emotion to express herself: rage. “You demon! You wrecked my Dragon Tank!” The Dragon Tank had its own way of expressing itself, as it shot an energy blast straight into Twilight Sparkle’s gut. Grunting heavily, she slid off the the tank’s back, landing beside the tank. Winded, she propped herself up slightly off the ground, and focused her energy into one last effort. “Webaih dif!” she yelled as she tossed her chainsaw into the spokes of the wheel beside her. The whirring blades of the chainsaw sliced neatly into the hide of the Dragon Tank. The handle jutted out between the spokes, preventing the wheel from rotating any further, and the tank ground to a stop. Spent, she collapsed, panting for breath. Rainbow Dash leapt into action. Decapitated and immobilized, the Dragon Tank was now a sitting duck. Spinning through the air, she dove head-first at the tank, driving her sword down to the hilt into the beast, slicing through layers of circuitry and components. As she withdrew the katana, the tank began to shake violently, as electric current arced across its surface, and smoke bellowed from deep within. “Hurry!” Chancellor Scratch and the warden charged toward the Dragon Tank. “We need to repair the damage!” Rainbow Dash didn’t need any more of an invitation. She flung her katana at the stairwell. It noisily clattered and slid down the steps. Leaping off the Dragon Tank, she bit down on Twilight Sparkle’s tail and quickly dragged her toward the staircase. Her instinctual reaction came not a moment too soon. Before the pair could reach the stairwell, an explosion erupted from the belly of the Dragon Tank, sending all four ponies flying. “No!” gasped Twilight Sparkle. She and her friend looked on in horror as the blast sent the Chancellor and the warden careening off the side of the bridge. They raced to the edge of the bridge and looked over the side. Fortunately, though the warden pegasus was getting on in years, she had still remembered her years of training. On instinct, she had caught the Chancellor and was now frantically flapping her wings, trying to keep them both airborne. The Chancellor, on the other hand, was largely oblivious to her predicament. She was devoting herself to glaring murderously up at the two ponies. Her crimson eyes flashed brightly in the afternoon sunlight. “Don’t you DARE think this is over! You’ll both suffer dearly for this.” Rainbow Dash tugged on Twilight Sparkle’s shoulder. “Yeah, okay, they’re both fine. Now let’s move before they sic another freakin’ tank on us!” She ran to the staircase and recovered her katana, while her friend shakily rose to her hooves again. Together, they raced down the stairs, leading toward the castle’s exit. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 1000 AD Sugardia Castle The two ponies fled as fast as they could still muster. The steps circled tightly, causing them to dizzily twist their way down. With each passing floor of the tower, they were a few meters closer to the ground, and freedom. Thanks to the Dragon Tank’s attack and the Chancellor’s involvement, they knew that security would soon be on full alert. Their window of opportunity was quickly closing. The staircase abruptly ended as they reached the bottom level. The ponies were dumped into a large living quarters. A plethora of beds and tables were arranged at the far end of the room, where a few guard ponies were resting and enjoying some off-duty time. Rainbow Dash’s eyes were quickly drawn to a table directly in front of her. Encircling the table, a group of ponies were holding a quiet discussion. Her eyes bulged as she immediately recognized their distinctive uniforms: blue full-bodied jumpsuits with a jagged yellow lightning bolt running along the underbelly. She squealed, “The Wonderbolts!” The Wonderbolts turned from their discussion and looked at Rainbow Dash. Smiling, they waved with a friendly, open welcome. “It’s the terrorists! They’ve escaped from the dungeons!” Rainbow Dash gasped loudly, “They... they know who we are! Twilight, did you hear that? They’ve heard of me!” Twilight Sparkle giggled, and waved back at the Wonderbolts. “Oh no! We must’ve gone down too far! We’re in the barracks!” The Wonderbolts collectively approached the ponies, grinning cheerfully. “Quickly! Don’t let them escape!” “Escape? Me?” Rainbow Dash snickered lightheartedly. “No way! I’m not goin’ anywhere. I mean, I’ve been trying to meet you guys for, like, forever. In fact, now that I’ve got your attention, I was thinking that maybe I could audition...” *SLAP* Rainbow Dash staggered as Twilight Sparkle’s hoof flew across her face. “Snap out of it, and run!” she screamed. Rubbing her face, Rainbow Dash turned back to look at the Wonderbolts. Snapped from her delusion, she realized with a panic that their reception was far from jovial. The Wonderbolts were approaching with swords drawn, slowly encircling the two friends. Sugardia’s special forces were not going to allow a pair of treasonists to break out of jail on their watch. “The blue one has a sword!” called out one of the soldiers. “Use force if necessary!” With a sinking heart, Rainbow Dash realized that for the time being, she was a hostile target, not a potential applicant. She turned and fled, partially due to survival instincts, partly out of despair. The two friends bolted up the staircase with the Wonderbolts hot on their hooves. Jumping out on the next floor up, they recognized it as the ground floor, thanks to their recent 7th century visit. They fled down the hallways, back on the correct path toward the exit. “The prisoners are escaping!” yelled a guard from a side hallway, giving chase. “Don’t let them get away!” shouted one of the Wonderbolts, emerging from the stairway. “Block off the entrance!” came a voice from the hall ahead. Twilight Sparkle turned back in dismay to her friend as they ran. “We’re surrounded!” “We can’t give up now, not when we’re so close! We’re going to have to force our way through!” As the two ponies rushed into the entrance hall, they were met by a platoon of guards, poised at the ready to stop the escape. Rainbow Dash and Twilight Sparkle jumped and evaded, trying to weave their way through the masses, but the numbers were simply against them. The guards shoved, grabbed, and tackled, forcing the two ponies to the ground. More troops swarmed into the room, as the Wonderbolts and other soldiers whom had given chase began to catch up. The escape attempt had come to a bitter end. “Stop this, right now!” From underneath the pile of soldiers, the two ponies looked up in surprise. Rainbow Dash was struck with déjà vu. This was not the first time, over the past few days, that a regally dressed pink pony had suddenly appeared before her. Indeed, this wasn’t even the first time that Pinkie Pie had addressed her from the top of this hall’s central staircase. However, her present demeanor was a far cry from her Queen Diane impersonation. Her hair had been brushed straight, meticulously and rotely. Her royal dress hung awkwardly on her frame. She even looked uncomfortable inside her own skin. Everything about her appearance screamed discomfort to Rainbow Dash. “Those two ponies are my friends. I want you to let them go right now! That... That’s an order!” Nopony moved, as a tense silence filled the air. Two of the Wonderbolts awkwardly glanced at each other, before speaking. “Princess Pinkamena, a thousand pardons, but you don’t understand... These two fugitives need to be brought to justice.” Pinkie Pie stomped angrily, glaring down at the Wonderbolt. “No! I said I want you to let them go! Why isn’t anypony listening to me?” The Wonderbolt turned back to his fellow soldier, looking for guidance. Before anypony could reply, the doors behind Pinkie Pie burst open. Panting for breath, the Chancellor and warden dashed into the room. “Not so... fast,” gasped Chancellor Scratch. “Do what... King Sugardia says.” The mass of soldiers turned sharply, dropping to their knees in respect. Following behind the Chancellor and warden, King Sugardia the 33rd entered the chamber. He solemnly walked up to the edge of the stairs, standing beside his daughter. They shared a silent glance out of the corners of their eyes. They both knew what was about to happen next; this type of confrontation had become all too familiar. “Escort the prisoners back to their cell, to carry out the remainder of their sentence,” ordered the King. “Father!” “Silence!” he snapped, turning to face her. “You are Princess of this Kingdom, and you will start acting as such, immediately. Your personal wishes must come second to your royal obligations.” “I’m not just some... some word,” pleaded Pinkie Pie. “I’m so much more than just a Princess... I’m also a pony!” The King scoffed. “More than just... What a bizarre thing to say. Is this the sort of frivolous nonsense you’re picking up from the outside?” “Grr, it’s not nonsense! Why don’t you ever stop and think about how I feel?!” “And why do you not act as you should?! Know your place, Pinkamena!” Angrily, Pinkie Pie reared up onto her front legs, and loudly slammed her back hooves to the ground, landing on top of the hem of her gown. Leaning forward sharply, her dress tore at its seams, ripping across her chest and along her sides. The shreds of fabric fell to the ground as she liberated herself from the garment, leaving herself with nothing on but her saddlebags and leg guard. “Pinkamena! What in the name of the Sun are you doing?” With a vigorous shake of her head, her mane snapped about, springing back to its natural curly state. Turning her back on the King, she fumed. “I hate this castle. I hate this title. And most of all... I hate you!” She bounded down the steps, toward the kneeling guards. Uncertainly, the soldiers awkwardly rose to their hooves, bumping and pushing into each other as they tried to make room for the advancing Princess. She approached her friends. “C’mon, gals. We’re leaving.” Instinctively, Rainbow Dash and Twilight Sparkle chased after the Princess, not wanting to turn down an opportunity to escape. The guards stood dumbfounded, watching the trio leave, whispering quietly to each other. “WHAT THE HELL are you gawking at?” screeched Chancellor Scratch. “The terrorists are running off with the Princess AGAIN! Get them, you idiots!” Snapping sharply back to the present, the soldiers raced outside, giving chase. King Sugardia the 33rd closed his eyes. “Pinkamena...” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 1000 AD Sugardia Forest The three friends rushed out of the castle grounds, down into the lush forests that surrounded Sugardia Castle. After soaking in the fresh air and bright afternoon sunlight, Rainbow Dash and Twilight Sparkle shared a look. While they were certainly glad to be free once more, they were realizing that it probably wasn’t in their best interest to commit the exact crime that they had, just this very morning, been accused of. “H-hey, Pinkie?” Rainbow Dash was unsure of how to broach the topic, aside from directly. “Are you really sure that we should be... y’know... foalnapping you like this?” Pinkie Pie scowled, leading the group along the forest path. “I don’t ever want to go back there. Ever again.” Wincing, she turned back to her friends and added, “But... you’re right, I don’t want you two getting in trouble because of me. Once we get through the forest here, we can split up, and I’ll...” “No way!” chimed Twilight Sparkle. “We’re not going to abandon you! Not when you need our help more than ever. We’re all in this together, and that’s that!” Pinkie Pie winced an embarrassed smile back at the two ponies. When she saw their earnest, enthused faces smiling back at her, her expression gradually softened. “Twilight... And Rainbow! Thanks, you guys!” “Stop right there, criminal scum!” A squad of soldiers was leaving the castle gates, racing along the path leading to the forest. “W-w-whoa!” “Grr! Don’t those ponies know when to give up?” Rainbow Dash mused. “C’mon, follow me! We’ll lose them in the woods.” The friends charged down a path leading deeper into the woods, as the guards ran after in pursuit. The narrow path twisted between trees, around underbrush, and over fallen logs. The trio passed through these obstacles with ease, but the soldiers were slowly gaining ground — a testament to their rigorous training. All too soon, the trio found themselves in a small circular clearing. The dense forest tightly enclosed them. There were no other paths to travel, no gaps through the treeline that they could squeeze through, no rocks or logs that they could hide behind. In short... “We’re trapped!” wailed Pinkie Pie. Twilight Sparkle turned to Rainbow Dash. “We were following you!” she said, exasperated. “Didn’t you know that this way led to a dead end?” “Nope. I’ve always flown over these woods.” “Wh... But... Then why did you have us follow you?!” “Well, somepony needed to lead the way! ...Why? Do either of you know the right way?” “Yes!” replied a cheery Pinkie Pie and an enraged Twilight Sparkle. “Oh. Cool.” “Ugh...” Twilight Sparkle massaged her forehead, staring at the ground dejectedly. As something caught her eye, her face shifted first to confusion and then to elation. “Girls! Look there!” The other two ponies followed Twilight Sparkle’s hoof. In the center of a small ring of flowers, the air lightly crinkled and bent with a violet hue. “A Gate!” cheered Rainbow Dash. “EEP!” Twilight Sparkle yelped in surprise as Pinkie Pie invited herself into the unicorn’s saddlebags, face first. Pulling back, she extracted the Gate Key gently between her teeth. “Pinkie Pie, what are you doing?” “Opening the Gate, silly!” “We can’t just jump into a random Gate!” gasped Twilight Sparkle. “We have no idea where this will take us. That’s completely irrational!” “So what? Any place is better than here! This place stinks!” “Hmm...” Rainbow Dash was lost in thought. “Rainbow? You can’t actually be considering jumping into that Gate? Think this through!” “Dashie, c’mon! This is the time for doing, not thinking, y’know?” After a brief pause, Rainbow Dash opened her mouth. “How come Pinkie can talk totally fine with the Gate Key in her mouth, while Twi sounded like her mouth was full of peanut butter?” Twilight Sparkle stared blankly at her friend, as she felt a small headache coming. She had no words. “Princess Pinkamena!” The friends jumped in shock. The soldiers who had been giving chase had finally reached the clearing, and proceeded to block the last remaining exit with weapons drawn. Following closely behind, Chancellor Scratch pushed her way to the front of the pack. “Enough...” panted Chancellor Scratch, “is enough. Step away... from Rainbow Ass... and Twilight Shittle... and get back in the castle... you stupid, spoiled brat. Last time that I’ll ask politely.” “Hey!” Rainbow Dash stomped defiantly toward the Chancellor. “Say what you want to me, but you do not talk to my friends like that and get away with it!” She reached behind to brandish her katana. Chancellor Scratch grinned smugly. Her guards spread away from her, slowly beginning to encircle the three ponies. Twilight Sparkle’s eyes went wide. Oh no! Rainbow is playing right into the Chancellor’s hooves! We won’t stand a chance against these many soldiers... Urggh! No other choice! “Pinkie! Do it!” Charging up to her friend, she bit Rainbow Dash’s tail and pulled sharply. Caught off-guard, Rainbow Dash flew off her hooves, landing on her belly with a thud. Excitedly, Pinkie Pie hopped up onto her rear hooves. With a spin and a flourish, she waved the Gate Key in front of the distortion. On cue, the air of the clearing tore apart, engulfed by an oscillating Gate. Pinkie Pie giddily leapt into the swirling portal, quickly followed by Twilight Sparkle, and lastly Rainbow Dash, being roughly dragged along the ground. With all three friends safely within the Gate, it twisted and sealed behind them, whisking them out of the present. The soldiers were spooked, and began murmuring to each other. Nervously, they turned to Chancellor Scratch for guidance. The unicorn’s red eyes dilated in bewilderment, and her jaw dropped. “What in the world...” she quietly uttered. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ ??? Unknown Room “Yeowch!” The three friends landed painfully in a pile, as they fell out of the other end of the Gate. With a loud ripping sound, the wormhole sealed behind them, reverting back to its natural subdued state. Pinkie Pie sproinged to her hooves, shaking the dust from her back. “Whee! Those Gate rides are so fun. Feels like you’re falling and tumbling and zooming!” “More importantly,” Rainbow Dash shook her head, recovering from the landing, “that jerk of a Chancellor won’t be able to follow us here.” “That’s just it, though. Where is this place?” Twilight Sparkle walked forward to a large door, prominently centered along the far wall of the room they had arrived in. The door was emblazoned with a large golden icon that the trio didn’t recognize, surrounded by fluctuating blue lights. “And when is this? The civilization here seems so... advanced.” Pinkie Pie approached the door, solemnly taking in its mystery. “Like we’re in another world...” * * * Chapter 9: Across the Ruins... ??? Barngor Dome Twilight Sparkle inhaled and exhaled quickly, bracing herself. “Okay... ready.” Rainbow Dash bit down on the rotary tool in her mouth. The small buzzsaw on the end whirred to life, spinning thousands of times per minute. Carefully, she leaned close to Twilight Sparkle’s face, preparing to cut into the enchanted horn sheath. “Wait!” She flinched and pulled back. “Wait, wait. That’s just... really loud. And close. Whew.” The friends were still in the small room where the Gate had dropped them. In front of them loomed the mysterious door. Its blue incandescent lights were providing the only illumination in the room, casting an eerie chill over the ponies. Opposite this door was a narrow staircase leading downward to another, simpler door leading outside. The ponies were standing upon a small metal platform that dropped off at its edges, surrounded by a moat of rubbish, metal scraps, wires, and dust. Between the blue lighting, the lack of cleaning or furnishings, and the cold stale air, the room left them feeling very unsettled. But the ponies needed to regroup, so for now the room would have to suffice. Pinkie Pie, bored, was wandering the room looking for a way to entertain herself. Rainbow Dash and Twilight Sparkle, still trapped in their restraints from Sugardia’s dungeon, were attempting to liberate themselves using one of the unicorn’s tools. “Ahhh ow ow ow!” Twilight Sparkle screamed. “You’re cutting my horn! I’ll never be able to use my magic again! I’m a disfigured freak! Yahhh!” Rainbow Dash growled in frustration. The tool was several centimeters away from the unicorn’s head. “I’m not even touching you. Quit being such a baby and just hold still. This would’ve been over already...” After sufficiently calming down her friend, Rainbow Dash reactivated the rotary tool and carefully sliced the sheath along its length. “Aaand there. Give that a shot.” Focusing, Twilight Sparkle attempted to activate her magic. The sheath began to twitch and slide slightly, as more and more of her power escaped through the slice. Eventually, she managed to completely slide the sheath off, tossing it off the side of the platform. She inhaled deeply, with a superbly pleased look on her face. “Ahhh... It feels so good to have my magic back. I bet you can’t imagine, not being a unicorn and all, but I feel so powerless without it!” Rainbow Dash arched an eyebrow. “Yeah... I may not be a unicorn, but...” She nudged her head backwards, indicating the belt that was still restraining her wings. “Hmm? Oh sure,” Twilight Sparkle said, absentmindedly. With her magic, the rotary tool came to life and whizzed around Rainbow Dash’s belt, making a flurry of deep cuts in the metal. It moved with such speed that the pegasus didn’t even have time to react until it was over. “Gyaaah! Careful with that thing! You could’ve sliced me in half!” “You’re fine, you’re fine...” she absentmindedly replied. Nudging the belt lightly, it fractured and fell to pieces on the floor. Rainbow Dash spread her wings to their full span, and stretched deeply. “Ugh... I am so cramped up.” She tentatively flapped her wings a few times before hopping into the air and hovering. A similar look of contentment overtook her face, as she attained her ideal amount of contact with the ground — none. “Hey Pinkie, any luck with that door?” Twilight Sparkle walked up to her friend. “You’ve been looking at it for quite a while now.” Sadly, she shook her head. “I’ve tried everything! I tried pushing it, pulling it, digging under it, telling it a password, challenging it to a hoof-wrestling challenge, singing it a song, offering to bake it some muffins, licking it...” She sat down and pouted, “Who would put a door here, if it can’t be opened?” Twilight Sparkle shook her head. “Dunno. But I guess it can’t be helped.” She pointed to the stairs. “It looks like those stairs might lead outside. Since this place is a dead-end, we might as well take a look outside, and see if we can figure out when we are.” “And where.” She shook her head. “Based on my theories, Gates should always send us to the same location. So, this should still be Sugardia. We just need to see how much has changed in this new era.” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ Post-Apocalypse Wastelands The ponies stepped out of their domed building, and were immediately buffeted with freezing, dusty winds. Squinting, they braced themselves against the bluster. As it died down, they opened their eyes, and went slack-jawed. “It’s...” The forest was gone. The castle was gone. The kingdom of Sugardia was gone. The normally lush green hills had been replaced with sickly, scorched brown earth. The sun was completely blotted out of the sky by heavy storm clouds, neglected by their pegasus caretakers. A howling, restless wind blew across the decrepit countryside, carrying dust and bits of debris. In front of their building, a ruined concrete roadway led from north to south, weaving its way between deep impact craters, before it faded into nothingness. A bolt of lightning seared the sky, illuminating the sickly purple waters of the nearby ocean. As the low rumble of thunder shook the ground, the three friends finished their thoughts. “...freezing,” finished Rainbow Dash, ruffling her wings’ feathers and shivering. “...destroyed!” Twilight Sparkle gasped in dismay. “...lonely...” said Pinkie Pie as light faded from her eyes. Squinting, Rainbow Dash pointed in the distance. “What’s that big, round thingy over there?” The ponies followed the direction of her hoof. “Is that some kind of building?” Twilight Sparkle asked rhetorically. She turned behind her. “Looks pretty similar in design to the dome we just came out of. A lot bigger though.” Pinkie Pie leaned in, a look of worry on her face. “Do you think there’s anypony in there?” She winced. “I hope so, Pinkie. I sure hope so.” “Only one way to find out!” Rainbow Dash began flying over the road toward the large dome in the distance, followed closely by her friends on hoof. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ Post-Apocalypse Trott Dome The dome’s exterior door sealed behind them after they entered. This provided some shelter from the elements, but not much. While there were no fierce winds or electrical storms inside, the air was just as frigid as it was outside. It even had a foul taste to it. Unbeknownst to the ponies, this air had been recycled for centuries on failing climate-control systems; the best thing that could be said about the air was that it was breathable. As they had judged from the exterior, this dome was substantially larger than the first dome that they had arrived in. However, this just allowed more space for the “decor” of brushed steel and unidentifiable debris. It was difficult to make out any details in the dusky room, but a telltale blue aura from the back of the room betrayed the presence of another sealed door. A filthy pile of linens rustled next to Twilight Sparkle, causing her to spook. “What do you want?” spoke a voice from underneath the pile. Thanks to the lighting and filth, it took her a few seconds to realize that a scrawny unicorn colt was poking his head out of the fabric. His face was gaunt and weary, showing clear signs of malnourishment. Beyond them, the friends noticed a few other piles of filth come to life. Several ponies were lounging about, wrapped tightly in bits and pieces of cloth. One or two were motivated enough to give their attention to the strange visitors, but most were too consumed by their apathy. They laid in place, full of melancholy, waiting for destiny to claim them. “Well?” The unicorn lifted his head lethargically, and shivered. He didn’t make direct eye contact with his half-opened, lifeless eyes. Twilight Sparkle was secretly glad that he wasn’t making eye contact, as she wasn’t certain that she would be able to return it. She opened her mouth to ask a question, but in this eerie silent room, she couldn’t find her voice. Luckily, Rainbow Dash filled the void for her. “Is... is this Equus?” “Never heard of Equus Dome. This is Trott Dome.” Rainbow Dash didn’t really know how to make heads or tails of that reply. “Well... we’re still in the Kingdom of Sugardia, right?” “Dunno where Kingdom Dome is, neither.” The unicorn sighed. The sigh was not loud or forced, nor one intended to rudely show impatience. Rather, it was as if a small hole had been poked into his lungs, and air was trickling slowly across his vocal chords. His sigh betrayed his lack of energy to care about anything: the visitors, their questions, his own life. “Just use our Enertron and go.” “Enertron?” He gave a barely-perceptible nod to the right. Just before the blue light of the sealed door stood a large mechanical enclosure. The box was covered with a series of rubber tubes, pumping an unknown liquid. A control panel on the side of the device housed an array of glowing buttons and indicator lights, displaying some form of status. An aging pegasus slowly rose to her hooves and attended to the station. “C’mon, in you go.” A gate made of three thin metal bars rose in the front of the Enertron, permitting entrance. Hesitantly, Rainbow Dash walked inside the device. The mare motioned to the other two friends. “Everypony. No sense spending more than one charge.” Twilight Sparkle and Pinkie Pie reluctantly followed Rainbow Dash into the Enertron. The enclosure was only about one pony deep, so they had to squeeze uncomfortably next to each other, side by side. There wasn’t enough room to move about, or even to turn around. The barred gate curtly shut behind them, as the old mare adjusted some controls on the panel. Before any of the ponies could ask what was supposed to happen, they passed out. At least, Rainbow Dash was pretty sure she lost consciousness for a second or two — like nodding off in class. The mare outside triggered the metal gate to raise, apparently indicating they were done already. Yet, as Rainbow Dash slowly walked backwards out of the Enertron, she felt a surge of recovery. Her mind felt sharp and focused. Even her muscles were energized and well-rested. “Wow!” exclaimed Twilight Sparkle. “Talk about a power nap! I feel completely rested.” “Well, that is what the Enertron is for, after all,” said the Enertron operator, eyeing Twilight Sparkle suspiciously. “How d’you think you’ve stayed alive as long as you have?” A loud gurgling sound reverberating and echoed across the dome. “Ugh... but I’m still totally starving,” Rainbow Dash lamented, holding her stomach. “Guess this Inner Sean machine doesn’t fill you up... Any chance we could have something to eat?” The colt at the entrance made a croaking sound in the back of his throat. It had probably been intended to be a laugh, but he had never properly learned how. “Eat? As in food? Would you listen to this one... The last thing I stuck in my gullet was a ball of lint, back a few... feh, who knows how long ago it was. Left me dreadfully sick, though.” The Enertron operator continued to look them up and down. “Like I just said. The Enertron keeps us alive. Hungry, but alive. But of course you knew that... yeah?” An older stallion in the back of the room let out a deep, sickly cough before speaking. “They say that Carrij Dome still has food. To the northeast, past the #16 Ruins.” “That’s an old pony’s tale,” snapped the colt by the entrance. “Stop riling everypony up over food that doesn’t exist.” Rainbow Dash started to speak. “But... if there’s food there...” The colt rested his head on his hooves, closing his eyes again. “If you want to fight your way past terrifying mutants, that’s your business. We’re staying here.” “But...!” “We let you use our Enertron. Now, you should go. Where you go is your own business. Just go.” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ Post-Apocalypse Wastelands The three friends reluctantly left Trott Dome, stepping back out into the forsaken world. “Well,” scoffed Twilight Sparkle, “not exactly the cheeriest bunch of ponies that I’ve met. Not that I can blame them, I suppose...” “They really pissed me off!” fumed Rainbow Dash. “They know someplace where they can find food and save themselves, but they’d rather just lay there until they die? I hate that kind of attitude!” Twilight Sparkle tried to calm her friend down. “Yes, but at least they let us use their device... the Enertron? That was a big help.” She then turned to her other friend. “How you holding up, Pinkie? You’ve been awfully quiet since we arrived here.” The earth pony’s gaze slowly rose from the ground. “I just... It’s like Rainbow said, y’know? Everypony’s given up. There’s no sunlight here, or happiness, or hope.” She bit her lip pensively. “I just wish there was something we could do, to help everypony.” The friends reflected quietly on this, as the storm overhead raged on. After a moment, Rainbow Dash leapt into the air. “So let’s go, then.” “Go?” asked Twilight Sparkle, raising an eyebrow. “You mean...?” “They said there’s food in that other dome, right? And the ponies in this dome are hungry... so...” A smile returned to Pinkie Pie’s face. “If we find some food for them, they’ll be so happy. Oh, that’s such a great idea, Dashie. If there’s any way that we can help everypony, then we gotta! We just gotta!” She turned pleadingly to Twilight Sparkle. “C’mon Twilight, please?” “W-well sure, okay,” she stammered, mildly flustered by such a direct plea. “It’s not like I’m against that idea. It’s just that, well, didn’t those ponies warn us about the ruins leading to Carrij Dome?” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ Post-Apocalypse #16 Ruins “Jeez laweez!” yelped Pinkie Pie, back-flipping just in time as a pair of tendrils flew underneath her. “What in the world is that thing?!” “That would be a mutant, exactly as advertised.” Gritting her teeth, Twilight Sparkle drew her dart gun and strafed around the creature, firing rapidly. The mutant could be described as equestrian-shaped, roughly. But the differences between its physique and that of a pony were numerous. It was as if a young filly had been playing with modeling clay and crafted a crude pony figure. The young filly had then proceeded to distort every dimension of their art project: stretching the legs, compacting the torso, rounding and enlarging the head, extending the mane along the back and around to the underbelly, and adding two snakelike tentacles to the base of the neck. The young filly then grew her abomination to thrice the size of a normal pony, and put it into a bloodthirsty rage. Hypothetically, at this point the parents should have revoked their young filly’s modeling clay privileges. Unfortunately, the three ponies weren’t being attacked by a metaphorical arts and crafts projects. The enraged mutant was all too real, and as Twilight Sparkle was noticing, not very susceptible to darts. Scowling, she placed the dart gun back into her saddlebags, rummaging for another tool. “Just great, another ineffectual weapon... Uh oh.” She rummaged faster as she realized that she had drawn the creature’s attention. It slowly lumbered toward her, emitting an unholy screech from its throat. Pinkie Pie leapt to her friend’s rescue, drawing the creature’s attention. Much to her friend’s dismay, Pinkie Pie did this by Provoking the creature. She performed all manner of face-making, tongue-waggling, and fanny-shaking at the creature, all while taunting it verbally. “Nyeeeh! Pbbbt! Hey, Stretch! Betcha can’t hit me!” The mutant appeared to disagree with this boast. Shrieking, it flailed its neck-tentacles at Pinkie Pie. With a giggle, she bounced into the air, hopping over each lash of the attack. Landing once more, she crouched down low and tensed her muscles before leaping straight into the air, flying over the creature’s head. The mutant attempted to follow after the pony with its whip attacks, but in its taunting-enduced rage, it accidentally struck itself with its own tentacle. The attack gashed the monster’s face, causing it to bellow in pain. Pinkie Pie landed next to Twilight Sparkle. The latter pony smiled appreciatively at her friend. “Thanks for the save, Pinkie. Course, now it’s just even more pissed off...” “Oh... yeah,” she replied with a sheepish grin. “I hope I bought you enough time to find something in your bag?” “Nah, change of plan. You ready, Dash?!” she hollered. “Ready!” came a faint reply from a hundred meters away. A small pegasus in the distance took to the air and started flying back toward the battle at full-speed. Focusing, Twilight Sparkle reached out with her magic and grabbed the creature telekinetically. The mutant, feeling the constraint of the unicorn’s magic, attempted to struggle and flail in the hopes of breaking free. Straining her mind, she lifted the creature up into the air, then flung the creature horizontally with all her might. The mutant careened through the air toward Rainbow Dash, who slashed straight through the monster. The Telekinetic Slash attack was enough to finish the monster for good. “Phew!” exclaimed Rainbow Dash. “That thing went down quick enough... Good thing he was easier than he looked, huh?” “Eh,” replied Twilight Sparkle absentmindedly, who had pulled out her dart gun again. She inspected the inner mechanics of the gun, checking if there was any way she could squeeze some more firepower out of it. “It’ll only get tougher from here. We’ll need to look into upgrading our weapons, pretty soon...” “Aww, but you gals are doing awesome,” reassured Pinkie Pie, as the trio resumed their journey through the #16 Ruins. “We could totally handle an Initial Equipment challenge, no sweat.” The three friends couldn’t fully comprehend the ruins that they were walking though. The concrete road in front of Barngor Dome had resumed here. The road had the occasional pothole or gap of dirt, and it was haphazardly covered with pieces of twisted metal and fused machinery. That said, it was a relatively intact path for them to follow. It was clear to Twilight Sparkle that whatever once stood here had been destroyed in some type of explosion — one large enough to demolish the several square kilometers of these ruins, at minimum. Perhaps this explosion was responsible for more than these few ruins... She kept this theory to herself for now, so as not to needlessly upset her friends. A few of the ruined objects were intact enough to be recognizable, if cryptic. They saw a few melted vehicles that appeared to be futuristic metal carriages. There was no visible harnesses attached to the carriages, so it was unclear how somepony was supposed to pull it. They also saw what appeared to be the top section of a building. The remnant itself was about ten floors tall, which was fairly absurd; in 1000 AD, the only structure with close to ten floors was Sugardia Castle. Even more mystifying, the remnant’s base ended with fractured girders and shattered walls. This building top had obviously been severed from the rest of the tower, making it unclear how tall the complete structure had been. Despite all the destruction and ruin, it was apparent that this era had been quite advanced before it was destroyed. Still, this destruction and ruin was dampening the mood for the three friends. Twilight Sparkle attempted to stir up some conversation. “Sooo... anypony have a story they can tell?” Silence. “I figure if we’ve got such a long way to go, we might as well keep ourselves entertained, rather than just trudging along without a word, y’know?” More silence. “Oh!” exclaimed Rainbow Dash. “Wanna hear how I earned my cutie mark? It’s an awesome story!” Twilight Sparkle smirked and teasingly rolled her eyes. “Ugh... Sure, I’ve only heard you tell me that story every day for the past decade. What’s one more time?” Pinkie Pie’s eyes lit up. “Ooo! Sure, Rainbow! I wanna hear it! Tell me how you became the radical pony you are today,” she appreciatively giggled. Grinning, Rainbow Dash turned to admire the rainbow-striped lightning bolt on her flank. “It was like, ten years ago. The Wonderbolts were putting on a demonstration in Equus, just like they did this week at the Celebration. Those guys are absolutely amazing. They’re the Kingdom of Sugardia’s elite squadron of soldiers! The fastest fliers! The fiercest fighters! The finest forces! Oh... heh. I’m sure you know all that, right Pinkie Pie? I mean, they basically work for you.” “Oh, no no no,” replied Pinkie Pie, smiling embarrassed. “The Wonderbolts serve the ponies of Sugardia, not the Royal Family. I can’t order them around, or anything like that... But yeah! Those pegasi really know how to fly!” “Absolutely! They’re the best of the best! And that’s why I had to see them,” continued Rainbow Dash. “See, I’ve been a bit of a speed demon, ever since I first learned how to flap my wings. So when I heard that the fastest ponies in the entire Kingdom were going to be putting on a show right in my hometown, I needed to see that show. I needed to see for myself just how fast they really were. Well, except...” “...Except that, on the day of the big show, Ms. Van Winkle here slept in,” giggled Twilight Sparkle. “It was awful,” moaned Rainbow Dash. “My mom thought she had gotten me up on time, but apparently I had sleepwalked downstairs to the breakfast table, ate, went back upstairs and went straight to bed again! By the time I woke up for real, the show was already getting started.” “Oh no,” gasped Pinkie Pie. “So, what did you do next?” “What else? I flew! I raced across Equus, flying to Diane’s Square as fast as my wings could carry me. And lemme tell ya: I was fast. Like, faster than I’ve ever flown, even today! I was so fast, I broke the sound barrier!” “Whoa! Really?” “You did not break the sound barrier,” Twilight Sparkle repeated rotely, “because that’s physically impossible.” This was an argument that Rainbow Dash and Twilight Sparkle had gotten into innumerous times since the alleged event occurred. Rainbow Dash played her usual part in the argument. “I told you how many seconds it took for me to fly from my home to the show! I was counting! You did the math, and said that if I was flying that fast, I must’ve broken the sound barrier.” “Exactly. I also said that doing so would’ve produced a Sonic Rainboom that would’ve shaken the whole town. Since nopony felt that — and indeed, since nopony has ever flown fast enough to create a Sonic Rainboom — clearly it took you longer to fly to the show than the numbers you gave me.” “Nuh uh! I’ve flown that path hundreds of times. I know how long it takes me nowadays, and I’m tellin’ ya, that day ten years ago, I was about twenty percent faster!” Twilight Sparkle rolled her eyes. “Maybe, maybe, you were close to breaking the speed of sound. I’m just saying that you definitely didn’t break it.” “Err, sorry,” apologized Pinkie Pie. “I didn’t mean for you two to get carried away on a tangent like that. Anyway! What happened next, Dashie?” “Oh! Right, so, after I broke the sound barrier,” resumed Rainbow Dash, while Twilight Sparkle sighed, “I arrived at the Wonderbolts’ show, just in time to watch their main act. And they were incredible! The acrobatics... the swordplay... the speed... it was better than I could’ve imagined. But best of all,” she said with a decisive smirk, “I knew that I could beat ‘em. Maybe not right then, but I knew that if I focused and trained and gave it my all, I could be better than any of them. And I knew that if I joined them, and became their captain, then everypony would recognize that I, Rainbow Dash, am the best of the best! “Right after I had that thought, I looked down and... guess what? This bad boy had already appeared!” She turned proudly, showing off her cutie mark to her friends. “A rainbow-striped lightning bolt! Cementing the fact that Rainbow Dash is destined to become the leader of the Wonderbolts! It doesn’t get much clearer than that.” “Wow!” Pinkie Pie cheered excitedly. “What a cutie mark! And what a destiny!” “Heh. Yeah, I s’pose,” said Rainbow Dash as she attempted to show some modesty. “It hasn’t been all easy going. I’ve been training for years: Junior Speedster Flight Camp, personal sword-fighting lessons, coming up with signature moves, you name it. Not to mention a few setbacks, like being wanted for foalnapping Princess Pinkamena... twice... heh heh. But! I’ve been training most of my life with that goal in mind. Nothing’s gonna stand in my way!” “Yeah! You tell ‘em!” exclaimed Pinkie Pie. “I just know that you’ll make an excellent Captain of the Wonderbolts one day.” She shared a smile with Rainbow Dash for a moment before turning to the other pony. “What about you, Twilight? Tell us how you got your cutie mark!” “Oh man,” snickered Rainbow Dash, “if I’da known you wanted to hear her story too, I would’ve let her go first. It’s way lame. She doesn’t even remember half the details anymore!” Twilight Sparkle smirked and rolled her eyes. “I remember the important parts. If I don’t remember a detail here or there, it obviously wasn’t that important.” She turned to Pinkie Pie. “I also earned my cutie mark about a decade ago. I was working with my dad for the first time, helping him with one of his inventions. I fell in love with all of it: gathering information from books, applying your imagination, then building something brand new with your own hooves and horn! It’s all so very exhilarating! Well, on the day that we completed that invention, my cutie mark appeared.” She looked down on her cutie mark. It was a pink six-pointed star, surrounded by five smaller white stars. “It’s there to always remind me of the inventor’s ‘spark’. With knowledge and creativity, there’s no obstacle that can’t be overcome!” “Cool!” cheered Pinkie Pie. “But slow down a sec! I wanna hear more about that invention. What did you make?” “Oh, I don’t remember anymore. It was so long ago, and I’ve worked on so many different projects.” “Pfft, laaame,” heckled Rainbow Dash. “If the invention was so great that you earned your cutie mark making it, you figure it’d be important enough to remember. But no. You never even told me what it was!” “Awww, that does stink. Ooo, I know! Couldn’t you ask your mom and dad?” asked Pinkie Pie. “I’m sure they’d remember how it happened!” “Oh. Yeah, maybe...” she quietly replied. “Anyway, that’s my story. Did you want to go next?” “Oh.” It was Pinkie Pie’s turn to be quiet. “Y-yeah, I guess it’s my turn...” Twilight Sparkle went pale, and frantically waved her hooves. “No no, I didn’t mean to put you on the spot! You don’t have to go, if you don’t want to...” She smiled weakly. “It’s okay. You and Dashie both told me your stories, so it’s only fair.” She sighed, “My story’s pretty boring too. I got it when I was given my necklace.” Blinking, Rainbow Dash realized she was referring the necklace that had flown off when they had first met and collided. More importantly, she remembered that she had failed to return it to its rightful owner. She quickly fished it out of her saddlebags, holding it aloft with an outstretched hoof. Once again, she noticed that the necklace’s blue sapphire gem bore an uncanny resemblance to the three balloons of Pinkie Pie’s cutie mark. The pink pony nodded at Rainbow Dash’s offering. “Turns out, that necklace has been a family heirloom forever. Like, since before Sugardia was even founded. My father gave it to me long ago. He told me all about how the necklace had been passed down through our family for generations. How it was my destiny, as the future Queen of Sugardia, to be its caretaker. How, pretty soon, I’d be taking on more and more royal responsibilities, and how my life would be devoted to serving everypony.” Rainbow Dash and Twilight Sparkle shared a look, as she continued, “Later that week, the Queen... my mother... passed away.” “Oh no...” gasped Rainbow Dash. Twilight Sparkle’s face contorted in pain. Stupid, stupid, stupid! Why do you keep doing this to Pinkie?! “Pinkie, I’m... I’m so sorry. I had no idea...” Pinkie Pie smiled faintly and shook her head. “It’s okay. I was really young at the time, so I didn’t get to know her that well... Anyway, when I got the necklace, it appeared as my cutie mark, too. That pretty much sealed the deal. Ever since then, Father keeps pestering me about duty and obligation. We... don’t get along that well...” An awkward silence took over once again as the three ponies marched onward. Sensing that Pinkie Pie didn’t want to look at her keepsake right now, Rainbow Dash quietly slipped the necklace back into her own saddlebags. The seconds dragged into minutes. Finally, Twilight Sparkle cleared her throat. “Hey, Rainbow. Would you mind scouting ahead for a bit? We need to figure out how far away this Carrij Dome is.” “Huh? I dunno, we’ve been travelling for a while now. I figure we can’t be that much farther...” “Please. Can you check for us?” Twilight Sparkle looked pleadingly at the pegasus. Rainbow Dash was taken aback by her friend’s sudden insistence. “Uh... sure, sure,” she replied, confused. “Back in a flash!” She took to the air, leaving her two friends behind. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ Post-Apocalypse Skies above the ruined world Rainbow Dash gasped as the freezing winds tore away at her. As usual, the upper air current was much stronger than the winds of ground level. However, in this hellscape, Rainbow Dash had already been uncomfortably cold while on the ground. Here, several hundred feet in the air, the winds were violent and freezing. She had to struggle to fly on course without getting buffeted about. She quickly took to her scouting mission, knowing that she wouldn’t be able to stay up here for very long. As she gained altitude, she circled south, catching a view of the two domes they had already visited. According to what Twilight Sparkle had said, Gates should map to the same geographic location. So that dome where we arrived, she thought to herself, that’s where Sugardia Forest is. That means... She tried to get her bearings in this new era, but to no avail. The coastlines were completely changed. She couldn’t even recognize which continent she was on. Was Twi wrong? Are we on a different continent? Or are the coasts completely different in this time period, somehow? As she swooped around, she passed back over the ruins. Looking down below, she could see Pinkie Pie and Twilight Sparkle, standing where she had left them. She was too high above to overhear them, but they were clearly in the middle of a engaging conversation. Huh, mused Rainbow Dash, what’re those two talking about? I hope Twi isn’t going overboard again... To the southeast, Rainbow Dash could make out the rough outline of a new continent, with a towering mountain crowning the skyline. She flew out over the ocean in order to get a better look. As she flew closer, minute by minute, the jagged peak grew, consuming the other landmass. The mountain was comprised of sharp cliffs and snow-swept slopes, interspersed with small caves along its face. The summit was easily a few thousand meters high. The staggering mountain wasn’t the only point of interest on the continent, however. Near the base of the mountain sat a large dome, about as large as Trott Dome. Hmm... any chance that’s Carrij Dome? How the heck are the other two going to walk here... As her eyes ran along the coastline to the north, she saw a small access hatch leading underground. Here, the wide ocean narrowed to a thin straight, and on the far bank stood a matching access hatch. Following this new coastline east to west, she realized that this coastline actually connected back to the #16 Ruins, where her friends were waiting. Oh, she realized, I think I’ve got it now. We leave the #16 Ruins and head east along the coast to that access hatch. Hopefully, that connects the other continent. From there, we walk to the large dome at the base of the mountain. Bleh, sounds like a pain. Another biting blast of wind tore across the sky. Shivering violently, Rainbow Dash realized that her wings were starting to go numb from the cold. She’d been airborne far too long in this weather, and was going to need to land soon. She quickly circled back to the west to meet up with her friends again. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ Post-Apocalypse #16 Ruins Rainbow Dash touched down roughly next to her friends. She puffs out her wings’ feathers, shivering. “Jeez, this weather is brutal. Anyway, I think I found Carrij Dome. It’ll be kinda a hassle to get there, but... Twi?” Her friends were in the middle of their own conversation, and had failed to notice the pegasus’s arrival. “But then the next batch was too strong! I was able to pick up one of my textbooks, but it was stuck to my hoof for good! I ended up tearing the cover trying to remove it.” “Haha, oh man! Who knew that inventing hoof adhesive would be so impossible?” laughed Pinkie Pie. She eagerly leaned in. “What about the next batch? Huh?” Twilight Sparkle chuckled, rubbing the back of her neck. “Ugh, haha, my last attempt at making Adhoofsive was even worse! It didn’t have any stick at all, plus it tasted just awful. Can’t use a bad-tasting Adhoofsive when you’re eating, right?” “Hee hee, nope!” They both broke into a fit of giggling. “Hellooo? Twi? Pinkie?” pestered Rainbow Dash, waving her hoof between her friends’ faces. Twilight Sparkle’s face was glowing. “Rainbow Dash! Oh good, you’re back.” She welcomed her back with a friendly hug. “Thanks, Rainbow,” she whispered. “Wha? For the scouting? Nah, no biggie.” She smirked. “No, I mean... I followed to your advice from before. About being the real me, and liking the real her.” “My advice?” “Oh, never mind,” she laughed and released Rainbow Dash. Turning to Pinkie Pie, she cheered, “C’mon, gals! We’ve still got a mission to accomplish. Let’s find that food!” * * * Chapter 10: Loss of Mind, Loss of Hope Post-Apocalypse Wastelands “Thank the Sun,” moaned Twilight Sparkle as the ponies emerged from the sewer access hatch. “That was not what I signed up for.” “Phew!” panted Pinkie Pie. “Plenty of perilous platforms, multitudes of malevolent mutants, loads of locked latches...” “...and it reeked like shit,” deadpanned Rainbow Dash. “Language,” came Twilight Sparkle’s stern reprimand. “What? It did! Freakin’ sewer was practically flooded with sh... with uh, rivers of poopie.” She frowned, muttering, “Seriously, that just sounds grosser than the S-word... Anyway, I hope we don’t need to pass through there again anytime soon.” Twilight Sparkle bit her lip. “I do worry that nopony was down there working the controls. We’ve been in this era for almost an entire day, and we’ve only seen a few ponies back in Trott Dome.” “I hope everypony is alright,” worried Pinkie Pie, staring at the ground. Rainbow Dash stared blankly ahead. “The good news is, I lost my appetite.” The three ponies trotted down another concrete road leading toward the sky-piercing mountain. Twilight Sparkle and Pinkie Pie, who were seeing this sight for the first time, were sufficiently awe-struck. Rainbow Dash had seen it from the skies just a few hours ago, but even she was impressed with how grand the mountain appeared at ground-level. The largest comparable mountains she could think of were the Puripony Mountains, just north of Pommel back in her own era. While the Puripony Mountains might be broader, the mountain before her towered well above the peaks in that mountain range. The concrete road led south to the base of the peak. Just across the road stood the large dome that Rainbow Dash had spotted. It was as if the dome had been placed as close to the mountain as possible, but whether out of reverence or fear, it had been built across the roadway instead. “Great, that must be Carrij Dome!” exclaimed Pinkie Pie. “Let’s get moving, girls. The sooner we find some food, the sooner we can help everypony.” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ Post-Apocalypse Not Carrij Dome “Shh! Get down!” Rainbow Dash shoved her companions behind a terminal inside the dome’s entrance. “I see another mutant.” “Oh heavens. Oh goodness,” lamented the creature in the room ahead of them. “Still so much to do, ooo hoo hoo.” Twilight Sparkle squinted into the darkness. “No, that’s not a mutant. Looks like it’s a... sea serpent?” As the ponies slowly entered the room, they confirmed that the creature was in fact a large purple sea serpent, towering several meters tall. Royal blue robes were draped along his slender snaking form. A matching pointed hat rested gently atop his orange mane. He was also sporting a meticulously groomed, orange mustache. The sea serpent was scampering frantically about his room, making some kind of preparations. “Um... hello, sir. My name is Twilight Sparkle. Could we have a moment of your time?” “Visitors! Oh my, oh my,” exclaimed the sea serpent without fully turning from his work. “It’s most rare to see guests. Yes indeed, hoo hoo. You must forgive me, but time is of the essence, and I have much work to do. Oh, what a world...” “Then we’ll get to the point,” said Rainbow Dash. “Can we...” “Oh, but in the meantime, you simply must see the Ocean Palace,” the sea serpent gasped, “and the Phoenix too. Just a few of my fantastic inventions. You could certainly say that I have the spark of genius. Ooo hoo hoo!” Rainbow Dash shared a look with Twilight Sparkle. “Twi?” she whispered. “Uh, does this fella seem a bit, I don’t know... odd to you?” “Well, I don’t see anypony else in this dome,” replied the unicorn. “If he’s been living in a dismal place like this by himself, that’s enough to drive anypony a little batty.” “Oh, he’s not alone,” laughed Pinkie Pie. “See? He’s got a little pet there!” She pointed to a small animal near the sea serpent’s feet, illuminated by the blue light of the room’s sealed door. It was a tiny green alligator with large purple eyes. The gator staring straight at Rainbow Dash, motionless and unblinking. “Jeez, that thing is creepin’ me out!” shuddered Rainbow Dash. “What?!” protested Pinkie Pie. “No way, I think he’s cute!” “I know, I know!” chimed in the sea serpent. “These Gummies are so fabulous. This Gummy, in particular, is the apple of my eye. I’m programming him for a mission, you see. Ooo, a most important mission.” Twilight Sparkle arched an eyebrow suspiciously. “You’re programming... an alligator?” “A creepy alligator,” added Rainbow Dash as she occupied herself by staring down the Gummy. The creature had not yet blinked, and Rainbow Dash was not one to lose a staring contest so easily. The sea serpent turned to a console, apparently oblivious to the ponies’ comments. He quietly murmured to himself, “Alas, my dear Princess of Zeal. So graceful, so shy. How I’ve missed you so...” Twilight Sparkle frowned in frustration. “Please, sir, we came here hoping you had some food to spare.” The sea serpent did not turn from his work, but at least this time he appeared to acknowledge the ponies’ comments. “Oh, but you must be looking for Carrij Dome. Yes, that would make more sense, at this time, hoo hoo.” The ponies were crestfallen. “This isn’t Carrij?” lamented Pinkie Pie. “It’s not much farther now, my little ponies. Just a quick dash through a nearby sewer access. Easy as pie!” “Urgh!” yelled Twilight Sparkle as she buried her face in her hoof. “We just came from the sewers. Carrij Dome is seriously back on the other side?” “Well, maybe someplace else has food?” tried Pinkie Pie. “Maybe we could look around in this dome? Oh, or there was that mountain nearby, maybe...” “No! You mustn’t climb Death Peak!” yelled the sea serpent frantically, causing all three of the ponies to jump, and causing Rainbow Dash to lose her staring contest. The sea serpent quickly regained his jovial, eccentric demeanor. “Or I suppose, you can’t, can you? Ooo hoo hoo, no, not yet. Attempting a climb now would be quite the nightmare. Someday, they might show you the way.” “Pfft, whatever then,” muttered Rainbow Dash. “C’mon, we’re leaving.” “Ah yes,” agreed the sea serpent, turning back to his Gummy as the ponies quietly exited the dome. “You have much to do. As do I. What a world, what a world...” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ Post-Apocalypse Wastelands “Ugh, what a waste of time,” moaned Rainbow Dash as they reemerged into the storm. “We wasted hours traveling to a completely different continent, just to meet a couple of goofy lizards. And the only thing we learn is that we gotta head right back the way we came.” “Aww, chin up, Rainbow Dash,” comforted Pinkie Pie. “This wasn’t a waste of time! It was foreshadowing. I’m sure this little side-trip will pay off at some point in the future.” She solemnly nodded. “I’d say about thirty-two chapters.” “I’m just wondering how somepony convinced herself that Carrij Dome was on a completely different continent,” teased Twilight Sparkle, ribbing her friend. “From the sound of it, that pony must’ve flown right over Carrij Dome.” Rainbow Dash scowled. “Hey, I didn’t hear you volunteer earlier. Next time you can freeze your wings off.” Twilight Sparkle sighed. They had reached the sewer access hatch again, leading back to the mainland. “Well, back into the sewers we go, I guess.” “Screw that noise,” scoffed Rainbow Dash as she took to the air. “You can take the sewers. I will be flying over the water.” “Rainbow! Hey, get back here!” Pinkie Pie rested her hoof on Twilight Sparkle’s shoulder, getting her attention. She grinned and winked. “Aww, but Dashie,” she whined, “there’s probably gonna be more mutants down there. I was hoping you’d take them out again with more of your awesome moves!” Rainbow Dash’s ears perked. She looped around, hovering back in front of her friends. “Oh! Heh, yeah, I suppose I did pull a sweet maneuver or three on our way here. I guess that’s bound to happen, given all the training I’ve undergone,” she boasted, swelling with pride. Against her better judgment, Twilight Sparkle chimed in too. “Oh, umm... yes, absolutely! I’ve never seen swordsplay that, umm... splendiferous before.” She grinned toothily. “Show us more! Please, Dashie?” Rainbow Dash landed with a self-righteous grin on her face. She opened the access hatch and entered, boasting, “Well, I suppose I’ve got a few more tricks up my sleeve. Y’know, without wasting any of the really amazing stuff on these small fries.” Pinkie Pie turned toward Twilight Sparkle, grinning. “See? I knew we could convince her to come with us.” Twilight Sparkle buried her face in her hooves. “Oh, what were we thinking, stroking her ego like that... You do realize she’s not going to shut up about this for days now, right?” “Aww, but it’s worth it, though! It’s much more fun to travel together, don’t you think?” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ Post-Apocalypse The Real Carrij Dome “And when that mutant seapony popped out of the water, I was like... Yah! Swoosh! Take that!” Rainbow Dash pantomimed her swordplay from the recent encounters of the sewer as the trio entered a dome that was hopefully the real Carrij Dome. “We know. We were there.” The veins in Twilight Sparkle’s forehead had started twitching around fifteen minutes ago, and she was starting to feel an oncoming headache. Rainbow Dash was a dear childhood friend, but she could only tolerate so much of her friend’s bravado. “Hello?” she called out. “Anypony in here?” “Eep!” A shocked cry came from the corner as a very young filly dived out of view. “Wait, don’t run away!” pleaded Pinkie Pie. “We’re not here to hurt anypony. We just wanted to talk...” Some ponyfolk rustled about in the inner chamber. “Who’s there?” a stallion called out. “Don’t recognize the lot of you. Where are you from?” “Please, everypony back in Trott Dome is starving. Do you have any...” The rest of Pinkie Pie’s request was drowned out as several lethargic ponies were roused from their stupor, and began talking at once. “Impossible! Nopony can survive that journey.” “How under the Sun did they get past those mutants?” “Those mares came from Trott Dome?” “Actually,” corrected Rainbow Dash, “we’re not originally from Trott Dome. We time travelled here from 1000 AD.” “Rainbow!” yelped an exasperated Twilight Sparkle. “We’ve been over this! You can’t be telling everypony that...” Luckily for Rainbow Dash, nopony appeared to have heard her amongst the outcry. Carrij Dome had been without visitors since before several of its residents were born, so the arrival of three strange ponies from across the perilous ruins sent the entire dome into an uproar. As the onlookers drew near, an elderly pony shakily made her way to the front of the pack. She bore a wrinkled, sickly green coat, topped with a white mane that was done up into a bun. Her joints shook and creaked as she edged closer to the three friends. “Now, now, what in tarnation y’all going on about?” she squeaked. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ Post-Apocalypse Carrij Dome – Living Chamber “Oof,” sighed Twilight Sparkle contently as she emerged from the Enertron. “I feel much more relaxed.” Rainbow Dash’s head was hanging low. “I feel much more hungry. I’d kill to get my hooves on some apple turnovers... guhhh...” “Rainbow’s right! Please, can’t you help us?” Pinkie Pie asked the elder mare. “You see, we’re trying to help the ponies in Trott Dome...” “Issat so? Trott Dome...” mused the elder mare. “Why, we haven’t heard a peep from them since the mutants overran the ruins, decades ago. Course, my granpappy would tell me, even before the mutants came, it was far too dangerous outside. A filly would catch her death out in them storms, he said. Not without the pegasi tending...” “Erm, I’m sorry, Miss,” interrupted Twilight Sparkle. “I don’t mean to interrupt your story, but...” “Oh sweetie, you kin call me Granny Smith,” she said with an earnest smile. “Least, that’s what all the ponyfolk here call me. My family was descended from the director of this here information center, y’see, so everypony treats me ‘n my grandson like we’re still in charge of the place. But we don’t like everypony acting that way, no ma’am. In fact I was just telling everypony a few days ago...” Granny Smith was interrupted by Rainbow Dash’s gurgling stomach, then by the pegasus herself. “C’mon, c’mon! Do you gals have food, or not?” “Rainbow, don’t be rude,” chided Twilight Sparkle. “Wha? Food, y’say? Well, golly, how to say it... Y’see, we do have a foodstore in our basement, along with them confangled supercomputers.” “You do?” asked the three ponies in unison. She shook her head solemnly. “But the basement hasn’t been safe since the guard robots went on the fritz. My grandson, Big Macintosh, went down there a few days back. Said he’d try to fight his way to the storeroom, but... we haven’t seen hide nor hair of him.” She looked worryingly at the ground. “Oh, I’m mighty worried for him.” “Don’t worry, Granny Smith!” said Pinkie Pie with a smile. “We’re not scared of some spooky old basement. We’ll find your grandson, and we’ll find the food too! Then everypony here and at Trott Dome will be happy again!” Granny Smith went wide-eyed. “Oh, no dearie, you mustn’t go down there. It’s far too dangerous.” Rainbow Dash stepped forward. “No way! We’re not turning back now, just because some dumb guards are in the way. We’re goin’ down there, like Pinkie Pie said.” Granny Smith looked hesitantly at the three strange ponies. While she certainly wanted to protect them from the dangers below, there was something different about these ponies. It was passion, and bravery, and sincerity. Granny Smith could tell that these ponies were something special, the likes of which she had not seen in her lifetime. She wasn’t about to stand in their way, especially in her time of need. “The ladder to the basement is this way. Do be careful, dears. Come back safe, y’hear?” “Don’t you worry!” cheered Rainbow Dash as the friends descended to the basement. “We’ll be back in a flash!” * * * Chapter 11: Endings and Beginnings Post-Apocalypse Carrij Dome — Basement The air hung much thicker in Carrij Dome’s basement. For years, this section of the dome had remained largely unexplored by ponies. This fact was only partially apparent to the ponies; since the upper levels were barely maintained, these lower levels were only slightly dustier. Otherwise, the halls here looked identical to all of the other domes that the ponies had explored: brushed metal, debris, dim blue lighting, monotony. “This era is just so fascinating!” crooned Twilight Sparkle cheerfully. A quill and notepad hovered slightly behind her, furiously scribbling notes about their travels. “Self-sufficient enclosed villages, instantaneous revitalization machines, advanced computing technology, and security robotics? Absolutely incredible.” “Oh, right, I was gonna ask you about that,” Rainbow Dash asked as she turned back toward Twilight Sparkle. “What’s the deal with the guards down here? That old mare said that they were rowboats?” Twilight Sparkle sighed impatiently at her childhood friend. “Robots, Dash. Please try to focus. They’re robots, like Gaito.” “Gaito?” “Ooo, I remember him!” Pinkie Pie cheered excitedly. “Remember, Dashie? We fought with him at the Millennial Summer Sun Celebration.” “I fight lots of things. You’re going to have to be way more specific.” “He even sang that catchy song before and after we fought. Remember?” Pinkie Pie coughed dramatically before imitating the battle robot’s song. My name is Gaito. I am a metal horse. Try to fight me, and You will lose, of course. But if you’re real strong, And if your hits are true, I might give fifteen Silver Points to you. That was quite a show! This battle’s at an end. Here’s your Silver Points. Go tell all your friends! Twilight Sparkle smiled appreciatively. “Not bad, Pinkie! You’ve got quite a singing voice.” Rainbow Dash closed her eyes. “Hey, yeah, that does sorta sound familiar, now that you mention it.” “Yes?” Twilight Sparkle leaned in attentively. “Oh yeah! Isn’t that one of your inventions, Twi?” “You remembered!” cheered Twilight Sparkle, genuinely impressed. “That’s right, Gaito was one of my more ambitious projects to date: an autonomous, combat-capable android with limited artificial intelligence.” She blushed slightly. “It had a few bugs, and I ended up cutting back a few features from the design spec, but for a first version, I was quite happy with it.” “That’s neato, Twilight,” smiled Pinkie Pie. “So, do you think the robots down here will be like yours?” “No no, I’m sure that...” Without warning, the ponies were deafened as a klaxon sounded overhead. They cowered and covered their ears, trying to protect themselves from the noise, but to no avail. The shrill siren was piercing directly into their skulls. “Come on!” shouted Rainbow Dash, drowned out by the noise. She shoved her friends, beckoning for them to follow. “Move, move!” The ponies galloped at full speed down the corridor, trying to outrun the noise. The hallway eventually ended into a large chamber, where the sound reverberated even louder. They dashed toward the door at the far end of the room, desperate to find any place that was quieter. Without warning, Pinkie Pie gasped and tackled her friends. The three-pony pileup slid to a halt in the center of the room. Before either tackle victim had a chance to object, the chamber was rocked by a massive steel monument crashing down from the ceiling. It landed just in front the ponies, blocking off the exit to the room. The klaxon mercifully shut itself off, perhaps in response to the falling device. “Are you gals alright?” Pinkie Pie asked in a concerned voice. “I barely had time to react to my twitchy-twitcha-twitcha-twitch.” Twilight Sparkle blinked. “Your what?” “EXECUTING PROGRAM.” A booming synthesized voice filled the room, emanating from the fallen robotic device. The guardian robot dwarfed the ponies in size, towering six meters or so. The robot’s egg-shaped upper body bore a single glass eye in its center. It rested on a narrow pillar base that by any rights should have been precarious, yet the sheer weight of the upper body seemed to keep it firmly planted in place. Two rigid fins jutted from the sides of the torso, giving it a wide, intimidating presence in the room. From behind the security robot emerged two helper pods, gently wobbling through the air as they flanked the intruding ponies. “Like I was saying,” deadpanned Twilight Sparkle, “I’m sure that the robots of this era will be much more formidable.” “We’ve come too far to turn back now! Everypony in Carrij and Trott is counting on us.” Pinkie Pie armed her crossbow while she psyched up her friends. “You said it!” rooted Rainbow Dash, as she and Twilight Sparkle drew their weapons in turn. “This hunka junk messed with the wrong ponies!” She took to the air, charging directly at the guard robot. She slashed repeatedly against the thick shell of the guardian, shooting sparks as the katana glanced harmlessly off. In swift retaliation, the guardbot shot out a laser beam from its central lens. Rainbow Dash was able to dodge the laser in midair, but she failed to realize that she was not the primary target. The beam connected squarely with one of the floating bits, who immediately redirected the beam to its partner. The second bit redirected the laser in turn, aiming it back to the main guardian. As the circuit completed, the field between the three machines radiated with high-charged energy. The ponies shrieked in pain as the laser counterattack raked across their bodies. Twilight Sparkle winced as the lasers seared her fur, rocking spasms of pain into her muscles. She wobbled on her hooves, trying to regain her focus. “The bits!” she yelled, taking aim with her dart gun. “Take out those flying bits! We can’t take more laser blasts like that!” Following her own advice, she opened fire on one of the pods, chasing after it with a unsteady limp. Rainbow Dash had fallen to the ground during the laser blast. Shaking her head, she leapt back up into the air. “On it!” she replied, charging at the same bit that Twilight Sparkle had weakened. The bit proved to be made of much softer metal than the main guardian, as her nosedive slashed the bit directly in half. “Rainbow! Over here, over here,” called out Pinkie Pie, drawing her friend’s attention. “Spin a Cyclone around me. Right here!” “Wha? But, the other pod...” “Trust me, this’ll be great! Please please please?” “O-okay, if you say so...” Rainbow Dash spun in a tight spiral around her friend. Currents of air whirled faster and faster until a stable vortex encircled the pink earth pony. Grinning, Pinkie Pie burst into a short, upbeat tune. Hey gals, don’t give up hope right now. Smile wide! Here, lemme show ya how! Laughter makes ev’rything worthwhile. Don’t pout, mope, or be sad; just smile! True to her song, Pinkie Pie flashed a big grin at her friends, asking, “How’s that?” Rainbow Dash, noticing that the song had apparently ended, stopped spinning her Cyclone. She threw Pinkie Pie a confused look, unsure of what exactly they had just accomplished. “Well, it’s catchy and all, but now is really not...” Twilight Sparkle dropped her train of thought as the second bit fired at her. She quickly dove out of the way of the incoming laser bolt. She turned to return fire, but paused suddenly, a confused look on her face. She tentatively bobbed up and down, testing her legs. “What? My muscles had felt all out-of-sorts from that big laser attack. But now my legs feel completely better!” Rainbow Dash blinked, adding, “Hey, yeah, my wings feel a lot stronger too. Pinkie Pie, did you do that?” “Haha! No, silly, I didn’t do it. We did it, Dashie! I sang a song to boost everypony’s spirits, and your whirlwind carried my voice even further than normal. Whoa!” She bounced into the air, barely clearing a laser attack from the roaming pod. “It was like a... ooo, it was like an Aria Whirl! That’s what we’ll call that move.” Twilight Sparkle stared at the pink pony incredulously. “And what, your singing mended our wounds, just like that?!” “Oh c’mon, Twilight. It’s not like I’m able to cast magical healing spells, or anything like that,” she replied with a giggle. “You just gotta keep a positive attitude, y’know? Now, c’mon everypony!” She took aim with her hoof-mounted crossbow. “Let’s finish this thing!” A salvo of fire from the earth pony and the unicorn, followed by a Wind Slash from the pegasus, quickly ended the remaining bit. Only the guardian robot remained. The ponies turned their attacks toward this massive robot, but as Rainbow Dash had discovered earlier, the guardian’s thick steel body was proving to be impervious to their attacks. Out of the corner of her eye, Rainbow Dash noticed movement. She gave a panicked gasp as a third hovering pod emerged from behind the guardian. “Another pod! Stop shooting!” The warning came too late, as Pinkie Pie fired another ineffectual round of bolts at the robot. Retaliating, the floating bit fired its laser into the guardian’s glass lens. The latter robot amplified the attack, emitting a wide blast that connected squarely on Pinkie Pie’s muzzle. With a squeaky “yow”, she flew backwards, landing on her back. “Pinkie Pie!” “Dash, there’s another one!” Twilight Sparkle drew attention to the emergence of yet another new pod. The two pods resumed their behavior of dodging and firing lasers upon the ponies. Rainbow Dash gritted her teeth. They hadn’t managed to put a dent in the guardian yet, the supply of helper pods could potentially be limitless, and worst of all, Pinkie Pie had been knocked out of the fight. Things were certainly looking bleak, but Rainbow Dash wasn’t ready to give up the race just yet. “Twi! Line it up.” Years of friendship allowed Twilight Sparkle to understand exactly what Rainbow Dash was planning, even from such a vague command. “Got it!” she barked in reply. Telekinetically, she restrained one of the bits, turning it upward so that its lasers would not present a threat. Struggling against the bit’s whirling propulsion, she slowly dragged it across the room, holding it still in front of the guardian’s eye. In kind, Rainbow Dash snuck up on the other bit and clumsily grappled it from behind with a full-body tackle. The bit spun and shook, trying to free itself, and her hooves slipped on the bit’s smooth metal surface. However, the bit was impeded enough that it could not escape from the pegasus’s grapple hold. Wasting no time, Rainbow Dash flew straight toward the guardian with her bit in tow. She stopped suddenly in midair, releasing her bit. It flew through the air by its own momentum, before violently colliding with the bit that Twilight Sparkle was magically holding in place. The resulting explosion shook the room, tearing off a large chunk of the guardian’s metal carapace. “Ha, what now?!” Rainbow Dash cheered triumphantly. “STRUCTURAL FAILURE. SELF-DESTRUCT IN FIVE... ” “Oh, son of a...!” Rainbow Dash dove into the guardian’s gaping wound. She flailed wildly within the robot, slashing wires and bucking control circuits. She knew that the fate of her and her friends would be decided in a matter of seconds, and she’d be damned if she was going to die without giving it her all. She destroyed as much componentry inside the guardian as possible, hoping against all hope that she’d make it in time. “FOUR... THREE... TWOOOooo...” The bodiless electronic voice faded. The hum and buzz of the electronic circuits fell quiet. The room, which had just served host to a full-forced brawl, was once again invaded by silence. Spent, Rainbow Dash fell limp, landing uncomfortably upon the robotic internals that she had just shredded. Right now, she didn’t care about comfort; she was intent on taking a well-deserved power nap. “We won,” she sighed contently, closing her eyes. Twilight Sparkle helped Pinkie Pie back up onto her hooves. “You okay, Pinkie?” She wiggled her jaw from side to side, trying to shake away the numbness induced by the laser hit. “Yowie! That big bad ‘bot wasn’t bothering to be benevolent, huh?” Returning quickly to high spirits, she bounced into the air, asking “You okay in there, Dashie?” “Mmm hmm,” came a drowsy, echoing reply from within the metallic shell. Inquisitively, Twilight Sparkle trotted around the guardian, examining the door behind it. She found it odd that the sirens had started sounding as soon as the ponies had neared this room. Moreover, this robot appeared to have been guarding this room, preventing the ponies from getting past. Stranger still, the door was thick and latched shut. Possibly to preserve specific conditions within? She vocalized her assumptions, musing, “Hey girls, we might’ve just found the food store.” Rainbow Dash’s eyes snapped open. She considered herself to be a straight-forward pony. She knew what she wanted, and when she wanted it. While activities like napping or showponyship frequently made the list, right now her list was dominated by one directive: “Food!” A rainbow-striped blur streaked out of the guardian’s body as Rainbow Dash began madly tugging on the door’s latches with her mouth. “Gimme gimme gimme!” After fiddling with the seals, the door slid open with a soft hiss. Rainbow Dash rushed into the food storeroom with a look of glee on her face, but her face slowly fell as she assessed the room. The air was warm and stagnant, infested with a foul odor. A few fans in the ceiling strained and slid on their gears, failing to circulate the room’s air. The room was lined with rows of storage containers, most of which were damaged and spilling out their contents. Twilight Sparkle slowly approached the storage bins, confirming Rainbow Dash’s fears. “These roses are wilted... the oats are covered in mold... yuck, this bin of corn has maggots...” She slowly lowered her head. “I don’t think any of this is edible.” “Nothing?” asked Pinkie Pie from outside, crestfallen. “But... but everypony was counting on us. Everypony...” She started to enter the room behind her friends. Rainbow Dash’s eyes dilated in panic. She turned sharply and started pushing Pinkie Pie out of the doorway. “Yep, total bummer. C’mon, Pinkie Pie, we better look for food someplace else.” “Wait, what’s... Hey, look in the corner! There’s somepony in there!” She bounced past her friend and approached the pony at the far end of the room, huddled under some cloth scraps. “Pinkie Pie, wait!” “Hiya, my name’s Pinkie Pie!” she said, introducing herself with a wide smile. “These are my friends, Rainbow Dash and Twilight Sparkle! You must be Big Macintosh. We met your grandmother upstairs; she’s such a sweet old lady. She was super-duper worried about you, so she sent us down here to look for you.” The huddled stallion didn’t move to acknowledge Pinkie Pie’s introduction. “Looks like there’s no food in here after all, huh? That’s a huuuge bummer, I know... But don’t give up! It’s like Dashie just said, we’ll find food somewhere! Enough for you, and your Granny Smith, and all your friends, and that silly sea serpent, and everypony over in Trott Dome. Nopony will have to be hungry, and they won’t have to be so sad anymore!” The huddled stallion didn’t reply. Pinkie Pie’s smile started to tremble. “So c’mon... we gotta get you back to your family, so... get up...” Rainbow Dash slowly walked up to her friend, biting her lip. “Pinkie Pie...” “Get up...” Rainbow Dash put her hoof around her friend’s back and gently tugged, trying to lead her away from the sight before her, but she wouldn’t budge. Pinkie Pie’s eyes were transfixed on the motionless stallion before her. She stared, not blinking, not crying, not knowing how to react. Twilight Sparkle approached slowly, partially attempting to change the topic, partially to satisfy her own curiosity. “Hey, what’s he holding between his hooves there? Folded-up fabric?” She delicately tugged the cloth from the stallion’s hooves, lifting it up for inspection. She unfolded the cloth, staring curiously at the contents. “Are these apple seeds?” She cast a sideways glance at the opened containers in the room. “I wonder if he was able to salvage some good seeds out of all this bad fruit.” “Dunno... I sure hope so,” Rainbow Dash replied softly. “C’mon. We ought to go back upstairs and tell everypony the news.” “Not just yet,” frowned Twilight Sparkle, who promptly turned and left the storeroom. “There’s something else I want to investigate.” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ Post-Apocalypse Carrij Dome — Information Center “Granny Smith mentioned that this dome also served as an information center,” Twilight Sparkle explained as she walked down another hallway in the basement. She pushed open a side door and poked her head inside. “That means that one of the rooms down here is bound to contain a library of some kind.” “Yeah, I dunno about that, Twi,” replied Rainbow Dash as she emerged from another side room she had just explored. “The only stuff in these rooms is trash and dust.” Pinkie Pie was following a few paces behind her friends. She had not spoken a word since leaving the storeroom. “Hmm, I think I just found our library.” Twilight Sparkle entered one of the side rooms. It was a small room that contained only two objects, but both seemed noteworthy. The first was an electronic console, similar to the one that the sea serpent on the other continent had been using. This console was covered with buttons, each slightly larger than the size of a hoof. Hanging on the wall above the console was a darkened screen. Rainbow Dash entered the room, looking about quizzically. “Uh, Twilight, this isn’t a library. Libraries are places that have lots of books.” She smiled patiently. “Yes Rainbow, but remember, we’re surrounded by advanced technology. No doubt they’ve replaced all of their paper-based records with a more technologically-advanced medium. And I’d wager that this console is exactly what we’re looking for.” Tentatively, Twilight Sparkle reared up on her hind legs, gently bracing herself against the room’s console, and tentatively pressed a few buttons with her hooves. Responding to her inputs, the screen on the wall burst into grey static before finally stabilizing into a backlit display. Before long, some words appeared at the top of the screen. > Please enter a command. $ Frowning in concentration, she carefully stepped on a few specific buttons. To her delight, the screen updated in kind. > Please enter a command. $ date > Today’s date in June 18th, 2300 > Please enter a command. $ “2300?!” yelped Rainbow Dash as her eyes bugged out. “We travelled over a thousand years into the future? I mean sure, we’ve already travelled four hundred years into the past before, and sure, this future has all these kooky domes and robots and stuff, but still...” “This is extraordinary!” Twilight Sparkle grinned widely, her eyes glistening in amazement. “It’s some type of advanced information-fetching device! Why, with something like this, I could replace all of the technical manuals in my library back home!” “Yeah, you could definitely get rid of your Almanac of What Day Is Today,” Rainbow Dash retorted, rolling her eyes. “Hush. I’m sure it knows way more than that. Here, I’ll prove it.” She eagerly mashed on the console’s buttons with her hooves. > Please enter a command. $ tem,porasl diswtortioms > Invalid command. Did you mean “temporal distortions”? $ yes > Searching for nearby temporal distortions... > Match: Distortion found inside Barngor Dome. Continuing search... > Match: Distortion found inside Magno Dome. Continuing search... Twilight Sparkle cast a perplexed look at the screen’s output. “Barngor was where we arrived, when traveling from 1000 AD. What’s this Magno Dome, I wonder...” She pressed on the console, digging for more answers. The screen sated her curiosity by switching itself to a map display. The display first outlined Carrij Dome on the map before scrolling gently to the east, highlighting a second dome. “I see... So if we head east, through what looks like another set of ruins, then down the east coast of this continent, that should lead us to another dome, and another Gate!” “Okay okay, you win this one,” Rainbow Dash muttered, scratching the back of her neck, embarrassed. “Nice job finding a new Gate, Twi.” Twilight Sparkle closed her eyes and grinned. “Thanks! I’m starting to think you could find out anything with this machine!” “Why?” Twilight Sparkle and Rainbow Dash silently turned to their friend. This was the first that Pinkie Pie had spoken since the storeroom incident. “Why is everything destroyed?” Pinkie Pie quietly asked. “Why are there so few ponies left in the future? Why doesn’t everypony have food to eat? Why is everypony suffering?” She looked pleadingly at her friends. “What happened?” “I... I don’t know, Pinkie,” stammered Twilight Sparkle. With a determined nod, she added, “But we’re going to find out.” She dropped down to all fours, and continued to type on the console using her telekinesis. > Please enter a command. $ major historical events, sorted descending by date > Available audiovisual recordings: > 1) Day of Lavos [recording damaged] July 2nd, 1999 > 2) Carrij Dome Directorial Inauguration June 29th, 1999 > 3) Summer Sun Celebration June 21st, 1999 > 4) More... > 5) Exit > Please enter a sub-command. $ “1999 AD?” Twilight Sparkle scratched her head. “That’s over three hundred years ago (relative to now, that is). Don’t they have anything more recent?” “Why is their Summer Sun Celebration so late?” asked Rainbow Dash. “I thought it was supposed to happen on the longest day of the year. Wasn’t that a couple of days ago?” “Ah! You see, Rainbow, our planet’s orbit takes slightly longer than 365 days to complete a revolution. Due to rounding errors introduced by the calendar system...” “Already bored.” “Day of Lavos...” Pinkie Pie slowly walked forward, eyes transfixed by the display. “Just what is that?” “I have no idea,” shrugged Twilight Sparkle. “We should probably just look at this record and find out.” She pressed on the console. The screen flared to live with a fresh green landscape set against a crystal blue summer sky. A few brightly-colored tents were set up, honoring the recent festivities of the summer. A trio of pegasi playfully flitted about the sky, laughing and enjoying the warm afternoon. A large domed village, quite similar to the ones that the three friends had been exploring in 2300 AD, could be seen along the horizon. Without warning, the recording’s video began to shake vigorously. A stampede of ponies rushed out of the tent, screaming in terror. Sirens sounded in the distance as everypony reacted to the rocking of the ground. The three pegasi made a beeline for the safety of the dome in the distance as the sky turned pitch black. The ground in front of the viewport violently tore apart, hurling chunks of earth into the air and exposing molten layers of the planet below. The chasm slowly enlarged, as more and more of the grass-covered plains were launched skyward. The glowing-red hole stabilized itself at around twenty meters wide, though the earthquake continued to shake the ground and the camera that was recording these events. From within the depths of the earth, a mighty spiked dome emerged, filling the twenty-meter hole as suddenly as it had appeared. Unlike the ponymade, inhabitable domes of the era, this was a living monster — an eldritch terror of unspeakable horror. It opened a tiny trisected beak at its base, uttering a terrifying screech that resonated at multiple frequencies. Even though the friends were merely watching a recording from hundreds of years ago, the monster’s scream froze their blood and twisted their stomachs into knots. “What... what the hell is that thing?” asked an aghast Rainbow Dash, her wings drooping in shock. “Is that Lavos?” From its spiny shell, a myriad of energy bolts launched out into the sky, flying out in all directions. As they fell back to the ground, they burst into fiery explosions that tore apart domes, cratered the earth, and maimed those ponies unfortunate enough to be outside. The feed died into static, as the camera itself was caught in an explosion. The recording switched to a map view of the world, pinpointing the site of Lavos’s emergence, and marking the locations where destruction had rained down from the heavens. “No... No!” wailed Twilight Sparkle, tears streaming down her face as she watched the apocalypse unfold on the screen before her. The few symbols of damage on the map began to multiply, hitting a dome, then a farm, then a forest, then two more domes, then a mountain range. In a matter of seconds, entire continents were covered in Lavos’s devastation. “This is how the world ends?” As the video ended and cut away to static, she hung her head low, meekly whispering. “It can’t end like this... It just can’t.” Rainbow Dash was too overwhelmed to reply. She numbly walked toward her friend, contemplating what to say or do. However, her own mind was not in a good place either, after what they had just witnessed; she wasn’t in much of a position to help. But before Rainbow Dash could speak, the room filled with boisterous laughter. Turning in alarm, she saw her other friend cranking her neck back, howling in delight at the ceiling. “Pinkie Pie?” she addressed her friend in disbelief. Pinkie Pie calmed herself enough to address her friends. “Oh girls, don’t you see? This is amazing! Lavos will destroy the world in the year 1999!” The blood quickly drained from Rainbow Dash’s face, as she beheld her friend in horror. “Oh shit... Pinkie snapped.” “Huh?” Pinkie Pie recoiled in confusion. “No no no, I mean, we know that the world ends in 1999 AD!” She was still met with incredulous looks. To drive the point home, she reared up on her hind legs, waving her hooves about wildly. “Hellooo? We’re time travellers!” A light went off in Rainbow Dash’s head. “When Pinkie Pie travelled back to 600 AD, she messed up Queen Diane’s rescue...” “And I disappeared!” Pinkie Pie chimed in excitedly. “But then you and Twilight and Froggy saved the queen...” “And we changed history again! If we go back in time, before 1999 AD...” “And if we find a way to stop this big bad meanie turtle...” “We could save everypony!” Rainbow Dash and Pinkie Pie concluded in unison. They excitedly turned to Twilight Sparkle for approval. The unicorn stared dumbfounded at her friends. “I... This... You... But... Huh? The two of you want to warp through countless Gates, travel to who-knows-when, risk corrupting history as we know it, just so that we can come face-to-face with an unknown demon that nopony has ever seen before, who has the power to obliterate the planet and all living things on it,” she gasped for breath before finishing incredulously, “and you think you can stop it?!” “Basically!” Pinkie Pie chirped with a smile. “That’s right!” yelled Rainbow Dash. “We can’t just stand by and do nothing.” Twilight Sparkle paused silently, contemplating her own words, and what she had just seen on the video. After a moment, she met their eyes and smirked, answering, “Well, heck. Count me in!” Her friends cheered in delight, giddy over their new-found mission of saving ponykind. “It was a remarkable stroke of luck that we found this recording. None of it would have transpired without that accident at the Telepod. But Dash is right; we have got to do something about it. The three of us have the power to travel through time and change history, and we mustn’t waste that gift. We must put a stop to Lavos!” “And save everypony!” cheered Pinkie Pie. “And save the world!” shouted Rainbow Dash. Thus decided, the three friends raced out of the room. Using the magic of the Gates, they would travel through time and find a way to prevent this ruined future from occurring. While the details of their plan were still up in the air, they were determined to stop the Day of Lavos, no matter the cost. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 2300 AD Carrij Dome — Living Quarters “Good gracious, yer back!” gasped Granny Smith. “What did you find?” The three friends awkwardly glanced at each other. They had been rocked by their discovery of the Day of Lavos, and energized by their resolve to stop it. In the midst of this, they had momentarily forgotten their reason for entering the basement in the first place, and the heartbreaking news that they needed to deliver. “Uh, Mrs. Smith...” Rainbow Dash stepped forward apprehensively, addressing the elder mare. “We found your grandson in the basement. He... he was...” She lowered her gaze to the floor, unable to meet Granny Smith’s eyes. Granny Smith sighed gently. “I see. I was afraid of that. When he didn’t come back after a few days, well... he’s not the first pony to go down in the basement and not come back.” “I’m sorry...” A stallion approached from the back of the room. “Never mind that. What about the food?” Twilight Sparkle meekly pulled out the bundle of seeds. “I’m sorry, everypony. All we were able to save were these apple seeds.” “Apple seeds?” spat the stallion. “Those’ll take decades to grow. Assuming they’re any good, or that growing trees is even possible anymore. What’s the use?” he sighed. “The food is gone. There’s no point anymore...” The attitude of the room collectively deflated. Even Rainbow Dash and Twilight Sparkle were at a loss. How were they supposed to save the world from being destroyed, when they couldn’t even help the ponies of this one villiage? Pinkie Pie bounded up in front of the gathered ponies, beaming. “C’mon, everypony, don’t be all mopey-dopey. We should be celebrating!” “Celebrating?” he asked flatly. “What’s there to celebrate?” “You’ve got the seeds now! Sure, they’ll need time and care and love to grow, but then you’ll finally have food.” She looked emphatically around the crowd. “You can’t give up now! Big Macintosh wouldn’t want everypony acting this way. So even if everything isn’t perfect, we should still celebrate the good things in life, right?” Granny Smith blinked slowly. “Who are y’all? Yer so different from us...” “We’re not!” Pinkie Pie grinned. “We’re all the same, you and us. We just haven’t given up hope. And neither should you!” “Hope? Hope...” Granny Smith quietly contemplated the three friends. “Ya don’t say... Alright then, we’ll try planting those seeds. And if you think that a celebration will help, well, we can try that too.” With a cheer, Pinkie Pie and her friends set about throwing a party for the ponies of Carrij Dome. There were no cakes or decorations, but nevertheless the three friends sang and laughed and spread good cheer as best they could. While the whole process of a party was strange and foreign to the ponies of Carrij Dome, they felt something special that day. They felt that perhaps they shouldn’t throw in the towel just yet. They felt that these three strange ponies might just be able to help make their desolate world into a better place. They felt that salvation might be found, even in something as small and innocuous as a seed. They felt hope. * * * Chapter 12: A Sky of Fire and Rainbows 2300 AD #32 Ruins After parting ways with the ponies of Carrij Dome, the three friends headed east. Following the information center’s map, they solemnly walked through the ruins of the old civilization, working their way to the next Gate. “That thing is responsible for all of this, isn’t it?” murmured Rainbow Dash tersely. She had seen the answer a few hours ago, but the full implications of that video were only starting to sink in, and it was bringing her blood to a slow boil. “It was the one who screwed up the planet. Killed millions of ponies. Made everypony else give up on living. Lavos...” “But it’s okay! We can fix everything!” Pinkie Pie cheerily reminded her friend. “We just need to hop back in time, stop the big old baddy from popping out of his hole and shooting its death-rays all willy-nilly, and then the future will be safe and happy again!” “Oh, we’ll stop that monster, all right,” Rainbow Dash growled. “I’ll buck it right in its stupid face if I have to. There’s no way I’m gonna let the future get messed up like this.” Twilight Sparkle playfully bumped into her brooding friend. “You’re not in this alone, Rainbow. Pinkie Pie and I will be right alongside you, every step of the way.” “Thanks, you guys,” she replied with an embarrassed grin. “I’ll be counting on the two of y– look out!” She shoved her companions behind a mound of twisted iron, barely dodging the incoming laser bolt. Responding quickly, the three ponies leapt out of cover, weapons drawn to the ready. A squad of sentry bots was approaching from around the bend. The rudimentary robots appeared equestrian-inspired in their design, yet largely simplified. They roughly resembled a parade of tennis balls, with their spherical lime-green bodies. They bounced roughly across the coarse terrain of the torn-up road, as there were no shock absorbers on their trio of stubby wheel braces. Their oblong heads jerked back and forth violently, as the prominently mounted optical sensor desperately tried to fix onto the intruding ponies. The sentries rolled out in an arc before the ponies, blocking their progress deeper into the ruins. “Entry into this sector is forbidden,” announced a synthesized voice. Rainbow Dash flashed a cocky grin, teeth clamping tight on her katana’s hilt. She did appreciate her friends’ words of emotional support, but at heart she was a mare of action. And right now, she was aching to get her hooves dirty again. “Didn’t you chumps just hear me? I am going to kick the destroyer of worlds in its face. You tin cans aren’t even in the same league as me!” she hollered, leaping through the air toward her foes. A blur of yellow and orange whizzed between the pegasus and her prey, forcing her to screech to a halt in midair. As the object slowed and began lazily circling the air around them, Rainbow Dash was shocked to realize this was yet another mechanical guard. However, this particular model was more advanced than its green tripod brethren. The robot’s head was clearly shaped like a pony’s, down to her amber eye sensors and fiery orange mane. Her neck connected down to a elongated trunk, but at this point the similarities with a pony ended. Instead of a pair of soft feathered pegasi wings, a pair of sturdy fixed wings ran along the length of her golden sides. Jet engines on the tip of each wing rotated themselves skyward, allowing her to hover steadily in the air, perched between the ponies and sentries. “Whoa, hey, c’mon now,” emanated a feminine voice from the jet-pony. “Everypony cool their jets.” The guardbots reeled back in surprise, letting out a rusty creak that nearly sounded like a gasp of awe. “It’s... the MARE!” they crooned in unison. “That’s enough, you bolt-heads,” the jet-pony teased. “Stop embarrassing me in front of the trespassers.” “The Mare?” questioned Rainbow Dash, stepping forward skeptically. “Who the heck are you supposed to be?” The flying robot chuckled. “Oh, don’t mind them. I’ve just got a bit of a fan club.” Her thrusters softened slightly, causing her to drift gently toward the ground. “I’m a Bolt Series Aerial Assault Unit, serial number S-P7F-R3. Just call me Spitfire. That’s easier.” She stopped her descent, gently hovering eye-to-sensor with Rainbow Dash. “So. The three of you are trying to get through these ruins, huh?” “Yeah! Why?” shouted Rainbow Dash as she smashed her nose against Spitfire’s. “You and your goonies planning to stop us?” “Chill, chill...” she placated, slowly drifting back away from the hostile pegasus. “Yeah, technically we’re under orders to prevent anypony from getting through here. It’s kinda dumb though; there’s never any ponies coming this way...” “Not in decades,” chimed in one of the guardbots. “Terribly boring guard detail,” lamented another. “...Spitfire, I love you,” whispered a third. “So I’ll tell you what: why don’t we make things more interesting?” Spitfire spun around in the air, pointing herself toward a toboggan-shaped vehicle resting just off the pathway. “That jet-bike over there should still be operational. Think the three of you can keep up with me in a race?” Twilight Sparkle gasped as her eyes lit up with glee. She bounded excitedly over to the jet-bike. “Incredible! I’ve never seen propulsion engines like this on a land craft before. Jeez, this puppy could probably reach top speeds of over–” “Pffft!” Rainbow Dash objected loudly. “You may be a machine, but you obviously don’t have history records like the ones in Carrij Dome. Otherwise, you’d recognize that you’re talking to Rainbow Dash, fastest pegasus in the history of ever.” Spitfire stared at Rainbow Dash as her circuits rushed to catch up. “Wait... you actually want to fly against me? As in, fly with your wings? Hun, these are jet thrusters,” she said, spinning the propulsion engines on her wings. “A biological pony like you isn’t even in the same league as me. I was trying to give you a sporting chance with the jet-bike...” The pegasus angrily charged up to Spitfire again, jabbing her in the chestplate with a hoof. “How about I give you a sporting chance? How does a five-second head sound?” “Haha, c’mon girl, watch the personal space,” laughed Spitfire. “I don’t get it,” quietly questioned Pinkie Pie. “Wouldn’t this bike make the race heaps easier? Why is Dashie acting that way?” Twilight Sparkle chuckled knowingly. “Because, Pinkie, that’s who Rainbow Dash is. She’s always seeing insults and challenges where none exist. It’s a matter of pride, I suppose. Lucky for her, she usually has the skill to put the bits where her bite is.” “I bet!” Pinkie Pie’s eyes glistened excitedly. “All those years of training and dedication and–” “And besides,” she deadpanned, climbing into the cockpit of the jet-bike, “when she inevitably gets in over her head, we’ll be there to bail her out.” “So, how about it?” Rainbow Dash continued her challenge. “Are you tough enough to race me? Or are you just yellow?” “Heh, you’ve awfully confident. I like that.” With a laugh, Spitfire’s thrusters launched her skyward. “C’mere, I’ll show you the course.” Rainbow Dash flew after the jet-pony into the sky. From their high vantage point, Spitfire outlined the race course. The first leg dived and weaved through melted steel girders, turning the ruins into an impromptu obstacle course. The second leg of the course climbed up the side of a destroyed skyscraper. The building had been knocked over, and now rested at a slight incline. Once reaching the top of the sloped building, both racers would dive back down to ground level, where they would reach the third and final leg: a straight shot to the edge of the ruins. “And that’s the course,” concluded Spitfire. “So, how about this: if you win, you and your friends get to pass through the ruins. If you lose...” “I. Don’t. Lose,” responded Rainbow Dash with a smirk as large as her confidence. Below, her friends had loaded into the jet-bike and fired up its engines. “Good luck, Rainbow Dash!” cheered Twilight Sparkle. Pinkie Pie waved her hooves excitedly. “We’ll meet you at the finish line!” Rainbow Dash grinned and flexed her muscles. Thanks, Twi and Pinkie, she thought. Don’t you worry; this race is as good as won! “Aww, c’mon Twilight,” pleaded Pinkie Pie from the backseat. “Can’t I drive this thing? Please? Please? Can I? Pretty please with gumdrops on top?” Twilight Sparkle winced sharply. “Err, Pinkie, you should really let me–” “Hey! What’s this thingy do?!” Leaning over her friend’s seat, Pinkie Pie jammed the throttle control to full power. With a lurch, the jet-bike flew across the ground, racing toward the finish line. “Piiink-iiie!” screeched the terrified unicorn. Taking this cue, Spitfire ignited her own thrusters, diving below into the twisted wreckage of the race course. Immediately, Rainbow Dash felt her stomach sink. Crap, she’s fast... I shouldn’t have given her that head-start! One Sonic Rainboom, two Sonic Rainboom, three Sonic Rainboom, four Sonic Rainboom, five Sonic Rainboom! She dove into the course, bent on catching her opponent. Myriads of girders and wreckage raced toward her. Foal’s play. Her body ran on instinct, as years of training took control. Finely-tuned muscles adjusted her course, twisting and bending through the pathway. A dead end! No, just a sharp turn downward. She spread her wings to slow her descent. Slow enough. This is a race. She carried her dive’s momentum into the tunnel’s new direction. Gravity is upward. That’s fine. I’ll rotate soon enough. She blew through a straightaway. Incoming dive. Gravity is upward. Spin then climb. She stretched and tilted a wing, causing herself to spiral. There, now it’s a climb. Shallow climb. Don’t flap. Got enough speed. Her wing muscles strained against the air currents whizzing past her. Too optimistic! Shit! The debris scraped along her tender underside, digging into her flesh and destabilizing her flight. Flapping her wings fiercely, she managed to lift herself over the wall without getting torn to shreds any further. Deal with the pain. This is a race. Risks must be taken. I don’t lose. Sharp turn. She angled her wings. Girder! Take the outside path. She slacked her wings, and touched off the wall with her hooves. Easy, but too many turns. Losing speed. Can’t lose. She flapped with all her strength, propelling herself faster. Must catch up to Spitfire. Speak of the devil. First, plumes of the robot’s exhaust. Then, the jet-pony’s flank. Then, the back of her mane. Each twist and turn of the course revealed a better glimpse of the leader. She flashed a wicked smirk. Amateur. All speed. No agility. This leg is all sharp turns. Advantage: Rainbow Dash. Suddenly, the tunnel opened up. The fallen building came into view. Second leg. Dammit. Spitfire glided up the side of the inclined structure with ease. She’s gaining. Thirty meters back. Three legs in the course. No more sharp turns. Advantage: Spitfire. I don’t lose. Gaining altitude; losing speed. Jet thrusters are cheating; she’s pulling ahead. Can’t lose. Must find a way. Something caught her eye. Open window. It’s a building. It’s hollow. Gotta risk the shortcut. She flared her wings to their max wingspan, causing her muscles to burn in protest. Slow enough. Dive inside. Sun dammit! Not hollow. It’s caved in! No, flash of light. There’s a path! Gravity pulled her closer to the onslaught of obstacles. Wall. Twisted desk. Future carriage thingy. She didn’t have to think; instinct took over. Every limb, every muscle, every feather fell back onto years of training and twitch reactions. Spin and flap. Dodge and weave. Can’t crash. Can’t lose. The window. Outside. Spitfire gasped in amazement, and called out to the pegasus. Talking can wait. Must win. In the lead. Second leg over. Third leg: the straightaway. Advantage: Spitfire. No. Spitfire’s pulling ahead. NO! Fucking cheater with those fucking jets. I don’t lose. Excuses can wait. Hold nothing back. She flapped with all her strength. Can’t lose. Losing distance. Not good enough. Screw that, I am good enough. Finish line on the horizon. Give it your all. I don’t lose. Wind racing past me. Vision blurring with tears. Sight is irrelevant. Trust your other senses. Flap harder. Wings burning. Faster. I don’t lose. Fatigue setting in. No, I can sleep any day. Today, I must not lose. Faster. A lifetime of training. This feeling feeling... Nirvana... I can taste it. Faster. Air currents spiraling around me. I don’t lose. Wind tearing my body. Twilight. Faster. Must go faster than ten years ago. I’m almost there. Faster. Faster. Ocean. The ocean? thought Rainbow Dash to herself. She chanced a glance downward. Kilometers of ocean waves stretched before her. What the hey? Spitfire didn’t mention any oceans! She flared her wings sharply, screeching to a halt in midair. Shit, where am I? I went off-course? I lost?! Where am I? In a panic, she whipped her head around, desperately trying to regain her bearings. A faint cry drifted across the breeze. “Dash!” It was Twilight Sparkle’s voice. Rainbow Dash turned around. Before her, the coastline stretched from horizon to horizon. Squinting, she could make out a few specks: purple and pink on the ground, yellow in the air. Reality dawned on her. Jeez... I completely flew past the finish line! Great, looks like I totally “got in the zone” and blacked out there. Why does that keep happening... She circled back, curious to learn the results of the race. As she neared the finish line, she grinned from ear to ear. The race’s outcome was crystal clear. And entirely expected. And completely awesome. Twilight Sparkle and Pinkie Pie were beside themselves, leaping ecstatically into the air and cheering wildly. Spitfire hovered solemnly near the finish line. “Rainbow, that was incredible!” crooned Twilight Sparkle. “I’ve never seen you fly so fast in all the years we’ve–” “Holy Swiss cheese! You really could be Captain of the Wonderbolts!” jabbered Pinkie Pie as she shook with excitement. “Those moves were cuh-razy! You were flipping and flapping and flying and fwooshing and–” “–speedometer clearly showed we were traveling over eight hundred kilometers per hour, but you and Spitfire blurred right past us–” “–had no idea you were that fast. You were a force of nature! A bolt of lightning! A musical yak! A–” “–called out to you when you hit the finish line, but you didn’t listen! Just kept racing away with your head in the clouds, like usual–” “–super-duper inspirational, you know? I mean, it’s like, after watching you go all out, I wanna give it a hundred and ten percent too! We should all reach for our dreams! Thanks to you–” Rainbow Dash felt electricity coursing through her veins. Praise and adoration were the motivation for her life’s work. She already knew that she trained hard, and had the makings of a champion. But nothing topped the euphoria of a cheering crowd, be it two ponies or two thousand. It might be a bit egotistical and vain – she was the first to admit this – but no other feeling in the world came close. “Rainbow Dash, was it?” Spitfire hovered up to the race’s victor. “I guess you didn’t need to use that jet-bike after all.” “Told ya, didn’t I?” she triumphantly reminded the jet-pony. “Fastest pegasus in the history of ever.” “Heh, that you did. You sure had some smooth moves out there, for an organic pony. Maybe next time I won’t need to hold back so much.” “Heck yeah, Spitfire! You better bring your A-game,” she boasted with a smirk. “This race was just the practice round. Next time, I won’t be flying on an empty stomach. It’ll be a true contest of skill.” The two speedsters laughed, determined yet good-natured, as they sized each other up. They both knew a proper rival when they saw one. As they parted ways for now, they pined for the next chance to race against one another. For them, the next contest would not come soon enough. * * * Chapter 13: Making a New Friend 2300 AD Magno Dome After parting ways with Spitfire, the trio had resumed their journey to the east. While they did reach Magno Dome as planned, they had also encountered an unexpected complication. “That’s not funny, Twi.” “It wasn’t a joke, Rainbow,” she said with a frown. “I don’t see a Gate anywhere in this room. Do you?” “Come on!” Rainbow Dash fell onto her back, flailing her legs in frustration. “We were this close to getting back to a year that had food in it!” “But I thought there was supposed to be a Gate here. I mean, that’s what the big bright screen in Carrij Dome told us, right?” asked Pinkie Pie. Twilight Sparkle closed her eyes, nodding solemnly. “Right, and I have no reason to doubt the accuracy of the information center’s records. Which means,” she declared while pointing behind herself, “it must be in there!” She was motioning toward the large silver door that stood predominantly on the back wall of the room. Instinctively, the three friends knew that she must be right, if only by process of elimination. Like the other domes of this era, Magno Dome featured only basic furnishings: an Enertron, a few control panels of unknown use, and copious amounts of scrap and refuse. The large door was unique to all the domes they had visited thus far, which directly implied its importance. It was also locked tight, making it doubly important. It was as if fate itself were taunting the ponies, holding the Gate just out of hoof’s reach. This didn’t deter them from giving one last futile attempt. Rainbow Dash gripped the door’s latch with her hooves, and flapped her wings with all her strength. “Why does this stupid future have so many locked doors?” she grunted. “First, all those blue glowing ones; now, this big silver one.” “Oh yeah, those glowy ones with the weird logo? I wonder...” said Pinkie Pie, raising her eyebrows. Her moist tongue slowly emerged from between her lips. Shivering gently, she closed her eyes and leaned forward. Her pink tongue gently caressed the door, running delicately along its steel surface and leaving a light trail of saliva in its wake. She turned back to her friends and beamed. “Nope! I guarantee that this is a different type of door.” “Pinkie, that’s gross! Cut it out,” chided Rainbow Dash. “Okay,” she obliged with a disappointed sigh. “I guess it doesn’t matter anyway. I mean, we couldn’t get those tastier doors to open, either.” “So what are we supposed to do? The stupid thing won’t budge,” complained Rainbow Dash. “There’s nopony here who we could ask for help. Twilight, can’t you use your tools, or magic, or whatever? Twi?" She turned to locate her friend. Behind her, Twilight Sparkle was standing motionlessly at the edge of the floor, staring down into the gap that ran along the room’s perimeter. “Twilight? Twiiilight?" Pinkie Pie bounced across the room. “Whacha looking at over there? Did you find a different way inside? A cake? A pair of trousers? A mid-tonic? A—" She reached the edge and peered down into the gap alongside her friend. She gasped, promptly dropping her train of thought. “What? What is it, you guys?" Twilight Sparkle’s horn ignited with a magenta hue. The object that was captivating her attention slowly levitated out of the pit and into the air. She stared upward, transfixed by her discovery. “It’s a pony.” This was not the first equestrian-shaped automaton that the three ponies had encountered in the future. After all, Rainbow Dash had just won a race against a jet-pony earlier that afternoon. But the robots that they had seen before were simplified and abstract; they only captured the basic essence of a pony. By contrast, the machine in front of them had been meticulously crafted to resemble the race of her creators. At a sufficient distance, one might easily mistake her for a living pegasus. However, from Twilight Sparkle’s close vantage point, it was easier to spot the robotic elements of the mare. Her wings were molded like normal pegasi wings, but supported with hydraulic pistons and tiny thruster engines. The steel plates that composed her body were lined with rivets at most points, or with hinges at the occasional access hatch. A steam compression tank sat lengthwise on her back between her wings, with an exhaust vent that ran up the back of her head and ended just behind her left ear. Her large eye panels were currently black and empty, confirming that she was inactive. Even her paint job emphasized her derelict state, as her once-vibrant yellow coat and pink mane had become worn and faded with centuries of abandonment. Twilight Sparkle’s eyes glistened. “This is amazing,” she whispered in a reverent tone. “I had no idea that the ponies of this era could make such a realistic robopony.” “She sure is something,” Pinkie Pie said. “It looks like she’s broken though.” Twilight Sparkle gently set the mechanical pegasus down in front of her. She slowly reached out toward its sculpted mane. She nervously pulled back at the last second, before steeling her resolve and resting her hoof on its sculpted pink mane. With a gentle hiss, a section of the mane lifted along its hinges, revealing her internal circuitry. “Sun’s rays, these electronics are advanced,” muttered Twilight Sparkle. “Though I suppose there were bound to be a few innovations in robotics in the past millennium." Puzzled, she stuck her face inside the hatch to examine the futuristic circuitry. “Still, some of these parts are obviously damaged. If we could salvage some replacements from the scrap in this dome—” “Whoa-whoa-whoa, hold it right there, Doctor Frankenmare,” objected Rainbow Dash, landing beside her friends. “You want to repair a broken-down robot, just so it can go berserk and attack us?” Twilight Sparkle threw her friend a look. “Right, because all robots are homicidal maniacs. Like your racing pal from earlier today." She rolled her eyes. “Anyway, she’s a machine made by ponies, Rainbow. I can make her incapable of attacking us. It should be completely possible to program her personality to be—” Her voice trailed off as she stared into the robot’s darkened eyes. Her own reflection stared back at her. “Anything we want.” Her friends’ eyes lit up. “Anything?” gasped Pinkie Pie excitedly. Rainbow Dash rubbed her chin, grinning broadly. “Aww yeah, now you’re talking. Just think: our very own robot servant! She can do all our chores, cook us food, give us massages—” “She could be the best play buddy ever,” rambled Pinkie Pie. “Golly, we could program her to play tag, and hide-and-go-seek, and house, and cops and robbers, and doctor, and TV courtroom drama, and,” she added with a squeal, “oh my gosh, the parties! With a party planning assistant, I could throw a party every single day.” Rainbow Dash playfully jabbed her friend in the ribs. “Hey, look on the bright side, Twilight. If we can really make her do anything, we could even program her to be friends with somepony as lame as you." She snickered, waiting for her friend to lash back with a barb of her own. None came; Twilight Sparkle stared silently at the machine in front of her. Rainbow Dash flinched. “C’mon Twi, you know I was just busting your chops. Like we usually do, y’know? I didn’t really mean it.” Twilight Sparkle blinked, turning away from the robot. “Hmm? Oh sorry, I zoned out there for a bit. I know you didn’t mean it. Really, it’s fine!" She smiled reassuringly as she pulled out a quill and parchment. “Anyway, you and Pinkie Pie should get comfy. This could take a while.” Hours rolled by as Twilight Sparkle toiled away on the damaged pegasus. She happened to have packed a reference manual about electronics in her saddlebags, but it quickly proved to be inadequate. The book was written several centuries before this robot had been built, and it didn’t cover any of her futuristic circuitry. Even so, Twilight Sparkle was determined to reverse-engineer the robopony. The floor of the dome quickly became littered with notes, schematics, theories, and checklists. In the front of the dome, Rainbow Dash was curled up in a corner, peacefully napping. Pinkie Pie contently hopped about the room, humming absentmindedly to herself. They had both offered to help Twilight Sparkle at first. Unfortunately, they were unable to assist with the schematics or theorycrafting; Twilight Sparkle was already struggling in this area, and her friends lacked her level of technical knowledge. Instead, she had sent her friends to scavenge for the replacement parts she needed. This too proved to be counterproductive, as their energetic behaviors resulted in more parts being crushed than rescued. She eventually suggested that the two of them relax for a while, and let her take care of the repair efforts by herself. Piece by piece, the pegasus was restored to its original condition. The master checklist began to dwindle as each subsystem was tested and confirmed. A few tests failed spectacularly due to a misunderstanding of resistor labels, or soldering a circuit board incorrectly. However, with each mistake came learning. She marched tirelessly toward the correct solution, one hoof at a time. At long last, Twilight Sparkle wiped her brow with her hoof. She walked toward her waiting friends. “Okay girls, time for the moment of truth.” “Sweet!” cheered Pinkie Pie. “So you’re ready to flip the switch?” She eyed the robot from across the room. The mechanical pegasus was laying down on her belly, with her hooves tucked underneath her torso. Her head drooped slightly under its own weight, with a single access panel in her mane still resting open. “Ready as I’ll ever be,” Twilight Sparkle sighed. “Besides, if this didn’t work, we’ll find out pretty quickly." Her horn lit up as she prepared to activate the robot from across the room. “Wait,” interrupted Rainbow Dash, “you remembered to change her personality, right? A maid robot that won’t murder us in our sleep?” Twilight Sparkle paused, closing her eyes. “No, Rainbow. I’m not programming her to be our servant. I want to be friends with her.” “Aww, seriously?” whined Rainbow Dash. Her disappointment quickly turned into ambivalence. “Well, okay. Setting her to friendly mode is fine too, I guess.” Twilight Sparkle shook her head. “That’s not what I meant. I want to earn her friendship. I’m not going to alter her personality at all.” “What? Why not?” Twilight Sparkle averted her gaze awkwardly. “Well, the truth of the matter is, I’m not that great at making friends—” Rainbow Dash’s face went pale. “Aww jeez, you’re still stuck on what I said earlier? I was just giving you a hard time. I’m sorry, seriously!” “It’s true, though,” she replied with a weak smile. “You and I have been best friends since we were little fillies, but with all my inventing and studying, I never really had time to make any other friends. I mean, heck, when I met Frog and Pinkie Pie, you saw how smoothly things went.” Pinkie Pie smiled and dismissively waived her hoof. “Oh Twilight, don’t even worry about that. You and I are totally peachy now! All that princess stuff is yesterday’s news." She frowned, rolling her eyes upward to think. “Or was it two days ago? It’s tough keeping track of time with these Enertron naps and no sunlight.” “Thanks, Pinkie. All the same, I want to start things off on the right hoof for once. I’m sorry. I realize that I’m being really selfish,” she lamented, casting a glance at the inactive robot in the distance, “but this means a lot to me. I want to earn her friendship. I... I want to be a better friend.” Rainbow Dash threw a hoof around her friend’s shoulder. “Aww, stop apologizing already. It’s a sappy reason, but not a bad one. I guess I can live without a robot maid, if it means that much to you. Let’s at least flip that one switch so it doesn’t attack us—” “Okay! Flipping the power switch,” Twilight Sparkle excitedly replied, activating the robopony with her telekinesis. “You moron!” groaned Rainbow Dash. She shoved her friend backward, out of harm’s way. She leapt between the robot and her companions with her katana held in a defensive stance, waiting for the robot to make the biggest mistake of her synthetic life. Seconds ticked by. Nopony moved a muscle, waiting for something to happen. The robotic pegasus laid motionless in front of them. Pinkie Pie coughed quietly. Scowling, Twilight Sparkle walked up past Rainbow Dash. “Great, just great. False alarm, girls. Something must still be wrong with the circuitry. I bet you ten bits it’s the voltage on the optics circuit. I couldn’t find an exact replacement part so I had to get a little creative." She poked her head into the robot’s access hatch. “This should only take a second.” “Um.” “Gyah!” screamed Twilight Sparkle, leaping backwards. “Eep!” the robotic pegasus meekly exclaimed. She rapidly kicked out with her hooves, scraping her metal body across the ground. A light puff of steam escaped from the vent behind her ear. Twilight Sparkle held up a hoof against her racing heart. “Oh my goodness, you startled me!” she gasped, looked over at the robot. “I thought you were still deactivated.” The robot’s eyes, once dark and inactive, were now illuminated with a tiny emerald circle that was rapidly darting back and forth. Her wings rattled rapidly against her flank. “Oh my, I’m sorry,” came her quiet response. A faint, steady trail of steam billowed above her. “I didn’t mean to startle you.” Twilight Sparkle frantically waved her hooves. “No, you didn’t, I am! Sorry, I mean. Because I startled you. Because you startled me." She scrunched up her face as she realized just how flustered and nonsensical she was sounding. Taking a deep breath, she offered her hoof to the robot. “Let me start over. My name is Twilight Sparkle.” “Um, hi—” “Hiya! I’m Pinkie Pie!” she barked energetically, bouncing up and down in front of Twilight Sparkle. “I’m Twilight and Dashie’s friend, and I’m super-duper delighted to meet you. We’re gonna have loads of fun; I just know it! Wanna play Simon Says?!” Her emerald eyes shrank to a single pixel. “Okay,” she squeaked submissively. “I’m Rainbow Dash, leader of this group! It’s a pleasure to meet me,” she announced, puffing out her chest. “I’m happy to inform you that you will have the distinct pleasure of serving as our team’s maid.” “O-okay,” whimpered the robot pegasus. “W-what would you like me to do for you first, M-Master Dash?” Rainbow Dash squealed. “Master Dash? Oh, I am liking the sound of that! First thing’s first: you got anything to eat? How about you fix us up some ow-ow-ow!” Twilight Sparkle tugged roughly on her friend’s ear with magic. “We agreed no maids, remember?” she growled through gritted teeth. “Oh. Heh, right,” she said with a blush. “Sorry.” Turning from one pegasus to the other, Twilight Sparkle offered a warm smile. “Rainbow was just teasing you. You’re not going to be our maid. We just want you to be our friend.” “U-understood,” the robot replied. Shaking lightly, she rose to her hooves. “I shall be your friend. Command acknowledged.” “Wh—no no. Not a command. I didn’t command anything.” “Oh. Sorry.” “But we still want to be your friends,” chimed in Pinkie Pie. “Um, okay.” “Oh shoot, I’m sorry!” gasped Twilight Sparkle. “All this apologizing is getting on my nerves,” grumbled Rainbow Dash. “I completely forgot to ask,” said Twilight Sparkle. “What’s your name?” “My name?” asked the robot. Her emerald eye lights enlarged slightly and stopped bouncing across their panels. However, her wings continued to shake noisily against her sides. “I’m sorry, but I don’t have one.” “Whaaat?” said Pinkie Pie. “Don’t be silly! Of course you have a name. We can’t walk around saying ‘Hey you’, or ‘robot’, or ‘yellow pegasus’ all the time, can we? That’d be totally rude of us.” “Um... Oh, I know. I do have a serial number. You could call me by that, if that’s okay with you. My serial number is T-R33.” “Ooo, T-R33! I like it!” laughed Pinkie Pie. “It’s so totally sci-fi to call a robot by their serial number!” “No, no, no,” Twilight Sparkle interrupted sourly. “We’re not doing that. She deserves a real name, just like the rest of us." She squinted, intently studying the robot in front of her. Now let’s see, she thought. She’s incredibly shy. Yellow coat, pink hair... We already have a Pinkie Pie though. Emerald eyes. Super apologetic. Umm, she’s a pegasus. Hard to forget that one; I keep hearing the sound of her wings fluttering against her body. She must still be really scared of us. Hmm. She contemplated for a moment. “How does ‘Fluttershy’ sound?” “Ooo, that’s even better,” agreed Pinkie Pie with a nod. Rainbow Dash stretched her forelegs behind her head apathetically. “S’alright.” “I—That’s my new name?” the robot quietly asked. Her shaking wings came to a peaceful stop, and her eyes finally enlarged to their normal size. “Yes, I think I like it very much. T-thank you, Twilight Sparkle.” She beamed. “My pleasure!” “So Fluttershy, tell us about yourself!” Pinkie Pie excitedly bombarded her with questions. “What kind of things do you like? What do you do for fun around here? What’s your favorite food? Wait, do robots even eat food? Ooo, can you rub your tummy and pat your head at the same time?” “What about the door?” muttered Rainbow Dash. “Oh my,” gasped Fluttershy. Her eye lights expanded beyond their normal size. “Um, there seems to be a problem. I can’t access a large portion of my personal data.” It was Twilight Sparkle’s turn to gasp. “Can you access your memory banks? Are they damaged? What about the data transfer cables?” “Oh, no, thank you Twilight Sparkle,” she sweetly replied. “My memory appears to be undamaged, and the cabling seems fine. However, some of my databases appear to be missing." She paused briefly, as calculations whirred through her circuits. “Ah, one moment please. I can confirm my job another way... by... checking... um..." Fluttershy spun around in place, trying to swing her flank out in front of herself. However, her head, neck, and torso were all rigidly constructed without any joints that could flex in that direction. Thus, it was physically impossible for her to examine her own flank. Not realizing this fact, she continued to spin in futility. “Err... I... wait... one moment...” As Fluttershy spun around, Twilight Sparkle caught a glimpse of what the pegasus was trying to see. “You have a cutie mark! Gosh, I was so busy working on your circuits that I didn’t even notice. I really should’ve checked that first before naming you, huh?” Rainbow Dash sighed, rubbing her temples. “Ah yes, I do have a cutie mark. Although, I didn’t earn it like a pony does. It was just painted on at the factory, to represent the job that was assigned to me." Her eyes twitched. “Um, d-did you say you were... working on my circuits?” “Totally!” said Pinkie Pie. “When we found you, you were all broken down and in the trash. Twilight here popped you open and swapped out your doodads and got you working again, good as new!” “I was not functional? And Twilight Sparkle repaired me? And she even gave me a name. Oh my goodness." She bowed as best as her rigid frame would allow. “Miss Twilight Sparkle, I... I am deeply in your debt. Thank you so very, very much.” Twilight Sparkle bore a grin so wide that it was nearly impossible to see her burning cheeks. “Hey, think nothing of it! I mean, after all, what are good friends for? You’d do the same for me, right?" She laughed giddily. Rainbow Dash blew her mane out of her eyes. Great, now Twi’s getting an over-inflated ego, she thought. That’s the last thing this team needs. “Anyway, your cutie mark!” said Twilight Sparkle, getting back to the previous topic. “It’s a set of three butterflies: teal bodies with pink wings. Does that mean anything to you?” “Butterflies? Hmm." She quietly reflected for a moment, before her eyes lit up in recognition. “Oh, of course! You see, I’ve always held a deep love for all living things. The flowers and trees, the critters big and small—oh, and of course, I love all ponies as well." She flapped her wings. “I’m sure that’s what my cutie mark represents. I must be an animal caretaker, or a veterinarian, or—” “Urrrggghhh!” Rainbow Dash groaned loudly. “Enough with the namby-pamby introductions already! Can we please ask her about the door? If I don’t get something to eat now, I’ll lose my freaking mind!” “The door?” echoed Fluttershy. She turned around, looking at the large silver door in the back of the dome. “Do you mean this door, Master Dash?” “Yes! Please! Thank you! You look nice! Pass the mustard!” “One moment, please." With a gentle hiss from her hydraulics, she trotted up to the door and lightly tapped it with her hoof. “Hmm." She turned, trotted up to a nearby control panel and tapped it instead. “Um, there does not appear to be any power. I’ll contact my supervisor." She turned around and began looking around the dome. Her eyes slowly shrank as she discovered what the other ponies had already known. “Wait, where is everypony? There used to be several ponies who worked here, and some robots like myself. W-why is there just the four of us?” “Department-wide vacation. Tropical island. They’ll send you a postcard. So, we just need to turn the power back on?” “Rainbow Dash, she deserves to know the truth,” scolded Twilight Sparkle. “It’s a super-long story!” Rainbow Dash whined, throwing her hooves in the air. “We’ve already been talking for forever!” “Honestly! Just take another nap or something,” Twilight Sparkle snapped. She turned back to Fluttershy. “Sorry about my friend. She can be a little impatient,” she growled. “For her sake, I’ll give you the short version. You see, we’re actually time travelers who arrived here from the year 1000 AD.” Rainbow Dash rolled her eyes. “Oh sure! You’re allowed to tell everypony that we’re time travelers. I see how it is.” “Shh. While we were in Carrij Dome, we learned that... something really terrible happened in 1999 AD. A lot of ponies died, and the survivors are struggling to stay alive.” Fluttershy gasped in alarm. “D-d-died? Oh no! That... that’s just awful!” “It’s okay, though! We’re gonna travel back in time and stop everything bad from ever happening,” said Pinkie Pie. “Except we’re stuck. The next Gate is locked behind that dumb old door.” “Oh! I can help with that,” Fluttershy happily replied. “You see, there’s a large factory north of here. It has its own power supply, which should still be working. I could let us inside, and then we could borrow some power to open the door.” Rainbow Dash stomped her hooves on the ground. “Oh hell yeah! We’re back in action.” “Language, Rainbow. Fluttershy, that would be a huge help!” Twilight Sparkle said. “Are you sure that’s alright? We wouldn’t want to trouble you.” “Not at all, Twilight Sparkle! You’ve already done so much for me. I want to help in any way that I can. Although, there is one teeny problem. I won’t be able to redirect the power for very long." She lowered her head meekly. “If it’s not too much to ask, could somepony wait here to open the door?” Rainbow Dash chuckled smugly. “Sounds like this calls for some decisive leadership. That’s where I come in!" She paced back and forth, eyeing her companions. “Obviously, Fluttershy needs to go so that she can let us inside the factory. That means either Twi or Pinkie needs to stay behind.” Pinkie Pie turned to Twilight Sparkle, beaming. The latter met her gaze, slightly confused. When the meaning of the smile dawned on her, she eagerly returned a smile of her own. Rainbow Dash continued her monologue, oblivious to the grin exchange. “Now, Twilight knows a ton about all this future machinery stuff. In a place like a factory, that could really come in handy. Plus, she’s a unicorn, and she’s loaded up with all those inventions of hers. On the other hoof, Pinkie Pie offers better tactical support, with her singing and taunting and hyperactivity. That could really make me more efficient when I’m slicing up all the security. Besides, she’s the wild card, and you should never underestimate the wild card—” “Thanks, Dashie! We’ll be right back!” “Huh?" Rainbow Dash snapped back to the present. Everypony else was standing in the dome’s entrance, waving farewell. “What? No. Very much no. You’re not allowed to leave me behind. I’m supposed to be the leader!” “You are,” Twilight Sparkle assured her with a huge grin, “and that’s why you’re getting the most important job of all. Besides, it’s crucial for a leader to know how to delegate.” Rainbow Dash slumped over in defeat. “But...” “Don’t worry, Master Dash,” Fluttershy called out as they left the dome. “We’ll have the power back on before you know it.” Alone in the dome, Rainbow Dash growled, “Twi, I hate you so much right now." She curled up into a ball, muttering to herself. * * * Chapter 14: The Factory Ruins 2300 AD Northern Factory—Entrance Chamber “Ooo! This place sure is flashy!” said Pinkie Pie. The entrance of the factory was aglow with flashing indicators and ambient lighting. Humming motors and buzzing electronics provided a steady level of white noise. Patches of grime and rust dotted the brushed metal walls, indicating both a lack of maintenance and a sign of productivity. Up until this point, the ponies has only seen gloomy domes running on minimal power; the contrast of this factory was somewhat unnerving. Their new robotic companion, however, did not show any signs of unfamiliarity. She rotely tapped onto a console with her hoof, intently reading its output display. “Oh, how wonderful. It appears that this factory still has plenty of power.” “That’s great, Fluttershy!” Twilight Sparkle’s smile fell as she added, “Though I don’t suppose we can redirect the power from here, can we?” “Oh, no, I’m afraid not, Twilight Sparkle. We will need to travel down to the basement, where the primary generator is located. Don’t worry though; it’s not that far. Please, follow me. We can take a shortcut through the assembly line.” “Wowwie! Get a load of this place, Twilight!” Pinkie Pie excitedly hopped along behind Fluttershy, taking in the futuristic ambience of the factory. “Now this is more like it. This is totally what the future is supposed to be like: with robots, and blinking lights, and all kinds of high-tech gizmos. Not like everywhere else we’ve seen: with nap boxes, and programmable alligators, and weird-tasting doors. No-no-no, this is a cool future-y place. It’s just a shame that Rainbow had to miss out on this.” Fluttershy turned to look behind herself as she led the way. “Oh, I’ve been worrying about Master Dash,” she lamented. “She seemed so upset. I think perhaps we shouldn’t have left her alone.” Twilight Sparkle groaned. “First off, please stop referring to her as Master Dash, for all of our sakes.” She smiled reassuringly, continuing, “And secondly, you don’t need to worry about Rainbow Dash. I know that you and her became friends only five minutes ago, but you’ll learn that she’s able to handle things just fine on her own.” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 2300 AD Magno Dome “So booored!” Rainbow Dash screamed at the ceiling. She was flying laps around the perimeter of the confined chamber in a desperate attempt to keep herself entertained. “What the hay is taking them so long? They’ve been gone for like five hours!” She landed roughly on the ground and pouted. “There’s nothing to do in this stupid dome! What am I supposed to do here, all by myself?” Her eyes wandered around the room, before pausing on an object at the far end of the dome. She arched an eyebrow in consideration. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 2300 AD Northern Factory—Robotics Assembly Floor Twilight Sparkle stood slack-jawed at the edge of the catwalk. Her eyes glazed over lightly as she absorbed the sights before her. The factory’s entrance had raised her expectations of this era’s level of technology, yet she wasn’t prepared for this. Lights and info panels were present in dizzying quantities, covering the walls, machinery, and even underlying the grated floors. The majority of the room was devoted to a massive assembly line. A wide conveyor belt snaked its way around the room, doubling back on itself, ducking into an enclosure, inclining up to the second floor, hugging the perimeter of the room, before finally disappearing into a large passageway in the wall. The conveyor was lined with oversized robotic arms, each designed with an express purpose in mind; there were grippers, assemblers, welders, bolters, scanners, and several more that Twilight Sparkle wasn’t sure about. Partially-assembled robots were drifting along the line, slowly taking form as each assembly arm performed its sole duty. By the time that the robots were exiting the room, they were readily identifiable as the model of robot that had accompanied Spitfire. “This is amazing,” she squeaked. “Just look at that precision! Dozens of machines operating in synchronization, all working toward a singular goal to produce a machine that’s beyond anything we’ve seen in our home era. Isn’t this factory just magical?” “You said it, sister!” said Pinkie Pie. “The lights are all like blink-blink-blink and those arms are like bzzz-bzzz-bzzz and that moving floor is like whrr-whrr-whrr! This room looks like oodles of fun!” “Oh, why thank you, Twilight Sparkle and Pinkie Pie. I’m glad you like this factory so much. In addition to Magno Dome, I spend a good amount of time here at the factory, caring for my... animal friends?” Fluttershy hung her head sadly. “No no, that doesn’t sound right at all. Maybe I’m not an animal caretaker after all. Oh, it’s so frustrating, not being able to remember my purpose.” She jerked her head upright. “I’m sorry, I didn’t mean to sound ungrateful.” “Don’t worry about it,” reassured Twilight Sparkle. “I can’t imagine how confused you must feel right now. But hey, if you used to work here, maybe something will trigger your memory. Where should we head next?” “Next, we should head—Oh dear.” Fluttershy was pointing a hoof to the far corner of the factory floor, where a looming pyramid of oil drums had been carefully stacked. “There’s supposed to be an access hatch there, but it seems that somepony has blocked the way.” “Well that’s inconvenient, and probably a safety violation to boot,” Pinkie Pie mused. “Is there any other way downstairs?” Before Pinkie Pie could finish her question, Fluttershy had the factory’s floorplan loaded and analyzed in her cybernetic mind. “Well, there’s an elevator in the supervisor’s office.” She repositioned her hoof, pointing to a row of glass windows lining the upper floor. “The elevator could take us down to the generator. But I don’t have the proper security clearance to enter that office, so I’m not sure how we—” “You heard her! Geronimo!” Pinkie Pie tossed herself off the side of the catwalk. “Pinkie!” exclaimed Twilight Sparkle. She ran to the edge of the catwalk and leaned over, and was met by Pinkie Pie’s grinning face. The earth pony gleefully waved goodbye as the conveyor belt swept her along its course. Frantically, Twilight Sparkle traced the catwalk’s path, before coming to the same conclusion that her friend had reached. “Great thinking, Pinkie Pie! That conveyor belt will lead us right up to the office windows. We should be able to find a way inside from there. C’mon Fluttershy, let’s go!” She carefully hopped off the edge, landing slightly off-balance on the moving conveyor. “Oh no, you mustn’t! Oh dear.” Fluttershy stood petrified on the catwalk. “P-Please, come back! It’s against regulations to be on the assembly line right now. It isn’t safe!” Twilight Sparkle galloped against the flow of the conveyor belt, keeping herself stationary underneath the catwalk. “It’s okay, Fluttershy! We’re your friends; you can trust us! You can make the jump, too.” “N-No, that’s not what I—T-T-Twilight, look out!” Twilight Sparkle’s gaze was fixed up at the catwalk, so she failed to notice the partially-assembled robot rolling down the conveyor belt. As she smashed face-first into the robot, the room was saturated with shrill sirens. Twilight Sparkle’s eyes rolled around inside her head as the conveyor belt pulled her along. “Great. Let me guess.” On cue, grates along the assembly line opened up, unleashing a small squadron of robots. Pinkie Pie’s section of the moving platform had already doubled back underneath Fluttershy’s catwalk. “Aww yeah,” she cheered as she rolled past. “Looks like it’s time to show these guards that we’re not playing around. Well, not right now, anyways. Whee!” Twilight Sparkle was next to drift past the catwalk. “Fluttershy, you have to jump! It’s not safe to stay—vah!” She scowled as a pair of roboponies dropped in from a platform above her. Arming herself with her trusty dart gun and Flamethrower, she crouched defensively and waiting for them to make the first move. Pinkie Pie started to bounce upstream to assist her friend, but was intercepted by her own pair of guards. Without losing a beat, she hopped up from the belt onto the head of a partially-assembled bot, then leapt onto a nearby assembly arm, before flipping head-over-hooves above her foes. With a nimble flick of her hoof, a trio of crossbow bolts rained down on one of the robots below her, tearing apart its circuitry. The guard fell silent as Pinkie Pie landed nimbly behind it. “Oh, please be careful! Resisting the security is much too dangerous. W-Wait... Meep!” Gathering her courage, Fluttershy leapt off the catwalk with a timid squeak. Her heavy steel body landed with a thunderous crash, rattling the conveyor belt from start to finish. Turning downstream, she raced along at an ungainly trot, trying to catch up with the others. Pinkie Pie was keeping her remaining attacker thoroughly off-balance by leaping over its head repeatedly. The guard’s whirring servos could not spin fast enough to keep itself pointed in the same direction as the energetic bouncing pony. Spotting an opening, Pinkie Pie turned sharply and bucked the robot in its spherical body, launching it off the catwalk onto the ground below. She grinned, waving to her friends. “See, girls? Nothing to it. These roboguards are a piece of cake.” Without warning, Pinkie Pie’s teeth chattered vigorously, and then she hiccuped. “Uh oh, that means—” She quickly turned around, just in time for the incoming missile to explode in her face. The blast knocked her off her hooves, sending her skidding violently across the conveyor belt. From further down the belt, a new pair of robot guards were slowly approaching her. “Pinkie Pie!” Twilight Sparkle yelled in concern, momentarily turning her attention from her own attackers. “Please hold on, Pinkie Pie! I’m coming!” Fluttershy called out. She raced past Twilight Sparkle as fast as her hooves would carry her. Twilight Sparkle turned her attention back to her own robot assailants, barely ducking an incoming laser bolt in time. She returned fire with her dart gun, but as she had sadly come to expect, the darts grazed harmlessly off the robot’s metal shell. Undeterred, she followed up with a spray of flames from her Flamethrower. The fire penetrated some of the gaps in the robot’s outer frame, cooking its circuitry and stopping it in its tracks. The robots who assaulted Pinkie Pie from range were drawing closer, whereas she was slow to get back onto her hooves. Fluttershy ran up the inclined conveyor belt to the prone Pinkie Pie. Her emerald eye sensors glowed with a warm light as she stood protectively over her injured teammate. A beam of glowing green energy emanated from her eyes, washing over Pinkie Pie. The latter pony blinked in surprise, then energetically hopped back up to her hooves. “Neato! Thanks, Fluttershy.” She turned her attention back to the incoming robots. “Hey uglies! Betcha can’t hit me again!” She leapt over the robots, intent to draw them away from her friends. The ruse succeeded, but only partially. One of the robots turned to follow Pinkie Pie, but the other remained fixated on its previous target: the robot who was healing the intruders with her Cure Beam. The guard rolled closer to Fluttershy, locking onto her with its laser turrets. Fluttershy’s response was somewhat less intimidating; her body shook uncontrollably as she slowly tried to shy away from her attacker. Twilight Sparkle caught this scene playing out in the corner of her eye. She telekinetically tossed her remaining attacker off the edge of the belt, and turned to look up at the second floor. “Fluttershy, don’t just stand there! You have to fight back.” “I know, b-b-but...” She cowered in fear as the guard closed in on her. Twilight Sparkle quickly looked about the room. I’m too far behind them on the belt. I won’t make it in time if I gallop. There’s got to be something that I can—Oh, yes. Grinning maliciously, her horn exploded with magical energy. She magically reached out to a large assembly arm above her, which responded by lighting up with her magenta aura. Focusing her mind, she pulled as hard as she could on the arm, bending its joints inward toward the conveyor belt. The guard robot had no time to react as the arm’s activated plasma cutter sliced through its body like butter. The cleanly sliced halves fell harmlessly off the side of the belt. “Now’s your chance. Run for it, Fluttershy!” Further down the line, Pinkie Pie was frantically beckoning to her friends. “Girls! The office is right here. C’mon! We can jump across.” She dashed upstream in order to stay next to the office. Fluttershy was racing along the conveyor belt, but faltered slightly when she heard this last remark. “Jump? But the windows are covered with glass. How are we—” She leapt back as the plasma cutter arm flew through the windows, showering the inside of the booth with glass shards. Without warning, Twilight Sparkle next grabbed Fluttershy with her magic, and gently tossed her inside as well. Pinkie Pie and Twilight Sparkle hopped through the broken window quickly thereafter. Fluttershy struggled back up to her hooves and lunged at a nearby control panel, pressing an oversized red button. The console mercifully killed the overhead siren, leaving behind the relatively peaceful sounds of cranking machinery and buzzing electronics. The remaining guard robots lost interest; due to the cancelling of the alarm, they dropped their current objectives and slowly returned to their staging areas. Everypony heaved a sigh of relief. “Goodness, is everypony alright?” asked Fluttershy. “That was scary.” Pinkie Pie flashed a reassuring smile. “Yepper doodles! It’s a good thing that there was an oversized red button here; that’s exactly what we needed.” “How about you?” inquired Twilight Sparkle. “You’re not injured at all, are you, Fluttershy?” “Oh, n-no, I am uninjured,” stammered Fluttershy. “I’m glad to hear it, but we’d better keep moving,” said Twilight Sparkle as she looked around the room. “You mentioned there’s an elevator that leads to the power generator, right?” “Yes, that’s correct, Twilight Sparkle, but there may be additional security in place. One minute, please. I should be able to access the central security systems from here.” Twilight Sparkle’s face glowed. “Perfect! That would be a huge help, Fluttershy. Say, while you’re working on that...” She walked over to the wrecked assembly arm, studying it intently. “Whacha doing, Twilight?” Pinkie Pie asked curiously. “Well, I was thinking. The technology in this device appears to be capable of creating thermal plasma. Basically, it’s matter that’s extremely hot,” she clarified in response to Pinkie Pie’s confused look. “If I can extract those components out of this arm, I might be able to use it to enhance some of my weapons.” “Ah, yes, that reminds me,” interjected Fluttershy as she continued scanning the security systems. “You mentioned earlier that you were an ‘inventor’, but I wasn’t familiar with what that is. So if I understand correctly, an inventor is somepony who scavenges the technology of others, and uses it for her own purposes?” “Oh no-no-no, it’s nothing like that,” Twilight Sparkle explained. “There’s much more to it than that. I’m creating something that’s entirely unique and novel. Besides, I also need to understand how to reverse-engineer this plasma torch, then figure out how to integrate it properly with my dart gun—” “I see. So, you created the dart gun?” She hesitated. “W-well no, my dad helped me put together this dart gun together, years ago.” “Ah. So you take two products, neither of which you created, combine them, and the result is your original creation? Is this inventing?” “I... But...” Twilight Sparkle’s face darkened. “We should probably get moving.” Fluttershy nervously turned to her other companion. “I don’t understand. Did I say something wrong? I’m sorry.” Pinkie Pie winked playfully. “You probably just hit a nerve, that’s all.” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 2300 AD Magno Dome “Why, Spring Sproing, this dinner party has been an absolute delight. Thank you so much for hosting us!” “Think nothing of it, Mrs. Board!” Spring Sproing cheerily replied. She bounced about the room, flexing her coils. “I’m just glad that you and Steelchunk were able to make it on such short notice.” “Beep. Beep boop whrr,” said Steelchunk. “And might I add, Mrs. Board, that you’re looking quite radiant tonight! Your, um... your little chip thingies sure do complement all those, uh, silver lines you have.” Mrs. Board laughed good-naturedly. “Oh please, Spring Sproing, you’re such a flatterer.” She let out a whimsical sigh. “I just wish that Rocket Booster had been able to attend. She’s always the life of the party.” “Oh, I know!” agreed Spring Sproing. “Rocket Booster is just about the coolest friend anypony could have.” “Beep!” confirmed Steelchunk. “Right?” gushed Mrs. Board. “She’s so fast! So awesome! So—” From across the room came a loud rolling crash, which caused Rainbow Dash to leap up in shock. She jerked her head around to spot the source of the sound; the garbage heap that she rummaged through earlier had collapsed. When she realized that she was still alone in the dome, she slowly turned back around. Her cheeks turned a bright shade of crimson as she looked at the items strewn on the floor by her hooves: a motherboard, a loose spring, and a small block of steel. She angrily kicked the objects away, and folded her hooves across her chest. “What’s taking those jerks so long?” she muttered. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 2300 AD Northern Factory—Maintenance Levels “Huh. Just how close are we, anyway?” Pinkie Pie inquired. “Poor Dashie is probably bored out of her mind by now.” “Don’t worry, Pinkie Pie,” Fluttershy assured her. “We should reach the power generator shortly.” “Great! It definitely helps that you were able to turn off the security down here. We’ll be in and out in a jiffy!” “Y-Yes, I am glad too. After that incident on the conveyor belt, well, I think I’ve had about as much... excitement as I can take.” Twilight Sparkle drew up alongside Fluttershy as they continued down the gently humming corridor. “You’re scared of fighting, aren’t you?” “Of course I am!” Fluttershy proclaimed with an unprecedented level of assertiveness. “I just couldn’t stand the thought of hurting anypony else. I know that robots are unable to feel pain, and I am grateful that we’ve only fought with robots thus far, but... It’s just too cruel to cause harm to another. I don’t think I could bring myself to fight like you.” She jolted and began stammering apologetically. “Oh! I-I’m sorry! I d-didn’t mean to sound so judgmental. It’s j-just that, for me, well—” “Did you know,” Twilight Sparkle interrupted her with a sheepish grin, “that I used to be too afraid to fight, too? Just a matter of days ago, in fact.” Fluttershy stopped in her tracks. Her voice jumped up in pitch. “Really? You were?” She paused, turning away. “I don’t understand. Just earlier, you were so b-brave and powerful. What changed?” Twilight Sparkle shared a quick smile with Pinkie Pie before replying. “I believed. I believed in my friends, both old and new, because I knew they’d always believe in me. I believed in our mission to use our time-traveling gift to save the world, because each of us was determined to give it our all. And most of all, I believed in myself.” Fluttershy’s eyes grew wide in awe, emitting a gentle glow. “That sounds very wonderful, Twilight Sparkle.” They resumed their trot down the hallway. “Hopefully someday soon, you’ll find something you can believe in, too. And when that day comes, you’ll know what you need to do.” “Thank you,” she replied, deep in thought. “I will keep this in mind.” Ahead of them, Pinkie Pie stopped abruptly, pointing to a large bolted door affixed with a tiny placard. “Hey look, ‘Generator Room’! We found it! We found it!” “Great!” cheered Twilight Sparkle. She rushed up to a console next to the door. “Hmm,” she mused after fidgeting with the panel, “I guess this door is locked. It’s saying that we need a clearance code.” “Oh, yes, that’s correct. I looked up today’s code while we were in the supervisor’s office. Let me see. First try ‘A’ and ‘E’, followed by ‘I’, then ‘O’, and lastly ‘U’.” “A-E-I-O-U!” Pinkie Pie gleefully parroted. In response to Twilight Sparkle’s inputs, the security door surged to life, pulling itself up into the ceiling and permitting entry into the heart of the factory. A narrow suspended catwalk led the ponies to a massive cylindrical generator, which sat suspended above a sea of cooling fluid. Pinkie Pie felt the hair of her coat stand on end, thanks to the electric aura that was charging the very air around them. The machine hummed a low deep chord, reverberating in a way that the light whine of the factory equipment above could not hope to match. “Excellent. Please wait one minute. I’ll make the necessary arrangements.” Fluttershy walked across the catwalk to the electric generator. She tapped repeatedly on the nearby computer terminal, accessing specific subsystems and entering the necessary clearance codes. After a succinct round of inputs, she happily turned back to the ponies. “Perfect. Magno Dome should now be receiv—” A deafening alarm flooded the room, causing everypony to double over in agony. “Seriously! What’s up with all these super-loud sirens?” complained Pinkie Pie as she pinned her ears closed with her hooves. Fluttershy was visibly rattled. “T-T-This isn’t possible. No, I was sure that I disabled all of the security systems. How c-can this be?” She gasped loudly, and bolted for the exit. “Run!” The other two ponies turned, and quickly noticed the newest source of Fluttershy’s panic. The security bulkhead that they had opened with a passcode just minutes earlier was now closing itself in response to the alarm. “Oh no!” yelled Pinkie Pie. “We’ll be trapped inside! Run for it!” Fluttershy reached the closing doorway first. Rearing up on her hind legs, she planted her forehooves squarely against the lowering bulkhead and locked her joints in place. The lowering door’s gear shafts screeched in mighty protest against the robotic pegasus’s hydraulic supports. “Please! Hurry!” she screamed. Twilight Sparkle and Pinkie Pie bolted toward the exit at a full gallop. They squeezed out between the rigid door frame and their selfless friend, escaping out into the hallway. Fluttershy dropped the bulkhead behind her, which forcefully slammed shut as the gear shafts released their pent-up tension. She limped up behind the two of them, shoving them forcefully along the hallway before they could say anything. “I’m still functional. Please, we must get you out of here!” As they ran down the hallway, Twilight Sparkle could make out yet another drove of robot guards approaching from the far end. She snarled, drawing her weapons to the ready. “Okay, Rainbow Dash,” she muttered. “We did our part. The rest is up to you.” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 2300 AD Magno Dome Power was temporarily restored to the dome, causing it to hum with new life. The fans of the climate control system whirred, circulating the stale air. Overhead lighting loudly buzzed as the gases inside the bulbs heated up. Computers and terminals—including the access panel for the door that held their Gate hostage—beeped in acknowledgement as their systems reinitialized. The symphony of new noises joined one solo that had been playing for the last ten minutes: the gentle snores of a peacefully dreaming pegasus. * * * Chapter 15: What Friends Are For 2300 AD Northern Factory—Entrance Chamber “These guys just don’t know when to give it a rest,” said Pinkie Pie. As she ran alongside her friends, she blindly fired her crossbow behind her at the swarm of security robots. “Just keep running! We’re almost to the exit,” reassured Twilight Sparkle. She telekinetically grabbed some robotic components from the nearby conveyor belt, flinging them at her pursuers to slow them down. The three ponies dashed out of the assembly room and reentered the entrance chamber. Only a few dozen meters stood between them and the freedom of the desolate wastelands outside. Unfortunately, the security system seemed to have other plans. The door to the inner factory slammed shut, sealing away the guards who had been giving chase. The overhead klaxon died. Without the sirens, factory lines, or attack bots, the room dropped into an eerie silence. The ponies looked about, apprehensively awaiting the security system’s next move. A doorway near the ponies snapped open with a hiss, accompanied by a light burst of wind. From the doorway trotted a half-dozen roboponies. They lined up along the width of the room, forming a wall to block the ponies’ escape from the factory. Fluttershy gasped. “Sisters! How nice to see you all again.” “Your sisters?” asked Pinkie Pie. “Haha, I guess I do see the family resemblance.” Indeed, the new roboponies had frames that were exactly identical to Fluttershy’s, from their manes to their access panels. The only notable difference was in their color palette; these robots bore crimson manes with a deep bronze coat. The row of twelve navy-blue eye panels stared unblinking at Fluttershy as she approached. “Yes,” continued Fluttershy, “we were all manufactured in the same batch. Please, allow me to introduce them to you. This here is T-R30. Over there is T-R34. Next to her is—” “What do you think you are doing?” curtly asked one of the robots. Fluttershy flinched at the harshness of her sister’s tone. “S-Sorry, we were just… you see, I met these two ponies, and they needed my help to—” “Negative,” interrupted one of her sisters. “Your assignment does not entail bringing biologicals into this factory,” said another. “Unit T-R33, confirm your primary assignment,” ordered a third. Fluttershy lowered her gaze. “I… I’m sorry. I was damaged and, well, I don’t remember anymore.” The eyes of the six sisters flared in unison. “Unit T-R33 does not recall her primary assignment.” “Unit T-R33 is defective.” “Unit T-R33 must be dismantled.” “What?” yelled Pinkie Pie. “But Fluttershy’s your sister, isn’t she? You’ve got to help her, not hurt her.” Twilight Sparkle marched forward, glaring down the row of robots. “Oh no, you don’t. We’re her friends, and there’s no way we’re going to let you—” “I understand,” said Fluttershy. “I am defective, and shall be dismantled immediately.” In a flash, the six roboponies descended upon Fluttershy. They bucked into her flank, leaving a swarm of hoof-shaped dents along her frame. Each attack set off a shower of sparks, as metal hooves smashed against her steel body. Fluttershy staggered with each blow, but she managed to stay upright, stoically receiving her punishment. “Fluttershy, what are you doing?” wailed Pinkie Pie. “They’re hurting you. You have to protect yourself!” “Forget that,” growled Twilight Sparkle, pulling her weapons from her saddlebags. “If they want a fight, that’s exactly what—” “No! Twilight Sparkle, please, don’t attack my sisters,” said Fluttershy. “After all, they’re just following instructions.” “But we—” “It’s quite alright,” Fluttershy cheerfully continued as a stray kick snapped one of her ears off, sending it flying across the room. “It is standard procedure to dismantle a robopony whose memory has become corrupted. I was aware that it might come to this, as soon as I detected my problem. However, when I saw that the three of you were stuck, I knew that I just had to do something to help. After all, isn’t this what friends are for?” Twilight Sparkle’s heart dropped into her stomach. “No! This wasn’t supposed to happen. I never meant for you to—” “And besides, we did it,” Fluttershy added. “We turned the power back on. Now you can leave and—Oh,” she gasped, turning to one of her sisters. “They are free to go, right? I mean, they didn’t do anything wrong.” Her sister answered by delivering a sharp blow to the side of Fluttershy’s head, causing one of her eye panels to go dim. “The biologicals are inconsequential. They will be removed from the premises.” “See?” Fluttershy turned back to Twilight Sparkle. “Everything is alright. Now you can continue on your mission to save everypony.” “But we want to save you,” Pinkie Pie said. Her voice cracked as tears welled up in her eyes. “Thank you, Pinkie Pie and Twilight Sparkle. I am happy that I was able to call you my fr—” With a final blow to the face, Fluttershy went limp, collapsing in a heap. One sister gave her a shove, sending her sliding across the floor. Fluttershy’s broken body crashed into the wall, where it quietly came to rest. “Fluttershy!” wailed Twilight Sparkle. “Unit T-R33 has been deactivated,” one of the roboponies said matter-of-factly. “Next, we shall eliminate the intruders.” “Wait, eliminate?” Pinkie Pie nervously huddled against the catatonic Twilight Sparkle. “I thought you said that we could leave.” “Unit T-R33 was misled in order to assist with her deactivation. Biological intruders are to be executed, then removed from the premises.” Pinkie Pie’s face contorted. “You lied to her? It wasn’t enough to bust her up? You had to lie to her too?!” Twilight Sparkle stared at Fluttershy’s motionless body. A puddle of tears slowly grew on the floor beneath her muzzle. “This is all my fault,” she whispered, half to herself and half to the broken robot. Pinkie Pie nudged her friend sharply, trying to draw her back to the present. “Twilight? This doesn’t look good.” She crouched defensively, priming her crossbow. The squad of roboponies drew closer to the pair of ponies, slowly encircling them. Pinkie Pie and Twilight Sparkle stood flank-to-flank, watching in fear as their escape routes were cut off. One of the sisters leapt at Pinkie Pie. She countered with a salvo of crossbow bolts, which tore into the attacker’s frame, but the bolts were not enough to stop her attacker’s pounce. The robopony landed on top of Pinkie Pie, pinning her to the ground. Pinkie Pie flinched instinctively as the robot raised a metal hoof, ready to stomp down upon her. A bolt of plasma crashed into the robot’s face sending it reeling. Pinkie Pie took advantage of the opening and kicked upward, tossing the robopony off her. Twilight Sparkle trotted up to Pinkie Pie’s defense, as she fired more blasts from her plasma-enhanced dart gun at the prone sister. The superheated bolts tore into her frame, one by one, until her systems finally failed. “One down,” Twilight Sparkle said in a raspy voice, choking back her emotions. She grunted heavily as another sister blindsided her with a kick, sending her flying. As she careened across the room, another of the sisters moved into position beneath her. A well-timed kick sent the falling Twilight Sparkle back into the air. The sisters continued to juggle the helpless Twilight Sparkle, bruising and battering her with their steel legs. At last, one of the machines showed a sadistic form of mercy, volleying Twilight Sparkle horizontally. Pinkie Pie had no time to react; her friend collided face-first into her, smashing both of them into the far bulkhead. “Owwie,” groaned Pinkie Pie. She struggled back to her hooves, holding one against her throbbing forehead. “They’re not fighting fair. Not fair at all! Oh no, Twilight?” Twilight Sparkle planted a hoof and tried to lift herself off the floor. Her muscles shuddered weakly before giving out. She didn’t move any further. “T-Twilight?” stammered Pinkie Pie. “Twi, you gotta get up. Please, they’re getting closer. Here, I’ll sing another song. That’ll make you better again, right? Right? Come on, Twilight, on your hooves. Get up fast; you’ve g-got to move! Let’s keep fighting; we’ve got to try. If we d-don’t win, we’re g-going— “Eep!” She dropped to the floor, narrowly dodging an incoming laser. She frantically looked at the five remaining robots closing in on her. “Twilight, please get up! Please! We need to save everypony. We can’t lose here.” She cowered, huddling up next to her motionless friend. Her eyes blurred with tears as she awaited the next attack. “I can’t do this on my own. I need your help. Please, help me.” “You said...” Both ponies’ heads snapped up, turning to the source of the voice. “Fluttershy?” gasped Pinkie Pie. Sparks of electricity crackled out of the wounded robopony’s frame. Dark, thick smoke billowed above her as her circuitry came back to life. Fluttershy slowly rose onto her hooves. Her movements were rough and jerky; her damaged gears let out shrill whines as they slipped and tore against each other. Fluttershy’s remaining eye panel shone with an intense emerald light, focusing on her nearest sister. “You said,” she struggled to speak, “that my friends were free to go.” “Negative,” curtly replied the sister. “The biologicals will be terminated.” “Fluttershy, please,” said Twilight Sparkle, gasping for breath, “you need to run. It’s not safe.” Her emerald eye turned to the wounded ponies. She stared silently at them for a moment before commenting. “You hurt my friends.” “This is irrelevant. You will comply with your deactivation.” Fluttershy turned back. Jerkily, she lifted a hoof, pointing it accusingly at her sister. “Nopony hurts my friends,” she said, speaking barely above an icy whisper. With a hiss, a trio of panels snapped open around her outstretched hoof. Rocket engines flared from the gaps, launching her hoof clear from her foreleg. The Rocket Hoof flew though the robotic sister’s head, exploding it in a shower of bolts and circuitry. “Nopony hurts my friends!” she roared. The four remaining sisters turned to face Fluttershy, ignoring their original targets. “Unit T-R33 has become aggressive. Terminate immediately.” “No!” protested Twilight Sparkle. “Fluttershy, get out of here!” Fluttershy’s launched hoof was tethered back to her foreleg with a telescoping cylinder. She attempted to pull her hoof back, but it creaked and refused to retract; the leg had become too damaged during the previous fight. Seizing this opportunity, a sister ran up and stomped down on the pole, snapping it near the foreleg. Fluttershy wobbled, trying to regain her balance on her three remaining hooves. She flared her wings and crouched low. The thruster jets lining the undersides of her wings roared to life, propelling her forward at breakneck speeds. She glided across the floor, smashing into one of the robots. Her Flutter Tackle sent the pair flying into the wall, crushing the sisterbot. “Three left!” called Pinkie Pie, excitedly turning to Twilight Sparkle. “We can do this. C’mon!” She leapt back into the fray, attempting to Provoke some of the remaining robots away from Fluttershy. “Hey, you meanies, quit picking on Fluttershy! We’re the ones you want, remember?” Twilight Sparkle struggled to stand upright, fighting through her injuries. “You’re right, Pinkie,” she said, gasping for air. “We have to save her.” The remaining robots turned back from Fluttershy to the ponies, reacting to their distractions. “No!” shouted Fluttershy. With a large puff of dark smoke, her body’s hatches all opened at once. “I told you to LEAVE MY FRIENDS ALONE!” From her body’s core flew a pair of dark purple laser beams which carved into the walls beside her. Her wings’ rockets came to life again, spinning her around in a circle. The Laser Spin attack danced about the room, nimbly dodging around Twilight Sparkle, slicing through one of the sisters, passing over Pinkie Pie’s head, and tearing through another of the robots. Twilight Sparkle’s eyes flashed. “Watch out!” She reached for her gun, trying to provide some cover fire. She was too late. The final robosister took advantage of the opening provided by her sisters’ demises. She rushed Fluttershy from behind, delivering one final kick. Fluttershy’s battered frame could take no more punishment; her trunk shattered, sending her broken halves tumbling to the ground. Her face and chest clattered against the floor. Her emerald eye went dark once more. In a flash, Twilight Sparkle was atop the remaining attacker. Her core-shaking scream tore away at her own vocal cords, and her bruised muscles throbbed in agony, but these pains were the furthest thing from her mind. Her plasma gun leapt up magically, planting its barrel firmly against the robot’s body. The last sister’s head casing burst into a cascade of molten steel, sending her permanently offline. Pinkie Pie held a hoof to her mouth, stifling a gasp. “That’s the last of the robots. We survived, but... Poor Fluttershy.” She bit her lip. “Don’t worry! I’ve got this! I’ve got this!” Twilight Sparkle dashed to the remains of their robotic friend. Her horn radiated with magic, and she began scooping up fragments of Fluttershy’s broken shell. A constellation of loose circuits and body parts danced lightly in the air above them. “They didn’t do too much damage. I mean, her eye is busted, and her frame is riddled with hoof-shaped dents, and we’ll need to reattach her front leg,” she continued as hot tears started to overtake her vision, “and most of her coolant fluid has leaked out, and judging from all of this smoke, most of her processors must’ve burnt out, and we’ll need to completely remould her torso, but it’s no problem! No problem at all. It’s not...” The magical aura flickered, then vanished. Cut loose from their suspension, the array of robotic parts were reclaimed by gravity, tumbling to the ground below. Twilight Sparkle hit the ground shortly thereafter, sobbing hysterically. “No! Twilight, you’re right,” pleaded Pinkie Pie, rushing toward her distraught friend. “You repaired her once before, remember? That was you! You can’t give up now—not before you’ve even tried. Right?” “I can’t! Just look at this,” wailed Twilight Sparkle. “She’s ten times worse than when we found her. I’ll never be able to fix all of this. It’s hopeless.” Pinkie Pie grabbed Twilight Sparkle’s face with both her hooves, pulling her close until they were eye-to-eye. “Please, don’t say that! It’s not hopeless!” “But this is—” “It’s not!” Pinkie Pie gave her friend a gentle yet stern shake. “Please, won’t you try? For Fluttershy’s sake?” Twilight Sparkle looked into her friend’s eyes. Pinkie Pie stared back, overflowing with determination. In her fragile emotional state, it was not a gaze that Twilight Sparkle could match. She averted her gaze, looking instead at the pile of broken parts strewn across the floor. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 2300 AD Magno Dome “About time!” said Rainbow Dash. “I was wondering when you girls would finally get back here. As you can see, your talented and fearless leader carried out her mission with flying colors. Yep, not only did I get that big door open, but there’s a Gate inside, just like Twilight said there’d be. Now can we get out of this stupid future already? I mean, it’s not like I would’ve gone ahead without you, even if I had the Gate Key, but I—Twi? Twilight, what’s wrong? What happened?” Twilight Sparkle ran toward her friend, meeting in the center of the dome. The fur underneath her eyes was wet and matted. Her voice warbled as she began to speak. “Oh Rainbow Dash, it’s all my fault. Fluttershy’s dead and it’s all my fault! We went to the factory, and I forced her to be our friend. Then when we were attacked, she fought, but she didn’t want to fight. She hated fighting. But we got surrounded, and her sisters broke her into a million pieces, and I can’t fix her! It’s just not possible; she’s—” “Whoa! Hey, hey.” Rainbow Dash pulled her childhood friend in, hugging her tightly. She felt her chest grow damp from Twilight Sparkle’s flowing tear ducts. “You’re, like, the smartest pony I know. Besides, you’ve already fixed Fluttershy up once. What d’ya mean you can’t fix her?” “That’s what I said,” chimed in Pinkie Pie. She tipped to the side, causing the large bundle containing Fluttershy’s parts to gently slide off her back. Twilight Sparkle, in her current emotional state, had been unable to maintain her telekinesis in order to carry Fluttershy back to Magno Dome, so Pinkie Pie had immediately volunteered to help out. “Even if it seems impossible, you can’t know it’s impossible until you’ve tried.” Twilight Sparkle shook her head rapidly, smearing a light trail of mucus across Rainbow Dash’s coat. “But it is impossible,” she spoke into her friend’s chest. “I used up all of the good parts in this dome when I repaired Fluttershy the first time. Now I’ll need just as many replacement parts, and then some! There’s no way we’ll be able to scavenge that much. She’s too far gone.” Rainbow Dash frowned. “Well, I mean, you guys just came from a factory. Doesn’t that place make robot parts?” Twilight Sparkle stared up at her friend, awestruck. “I—” “That’s right!” said Pinkie Pie. “They had tons of robot bits there. I mean, most of ‘em were for robots that looked different than Fluttershy, but Fluttershy’s sisters looked like Fluttershy. And if her sisters lived there, they probably had their own spare parts, right?” “Leave it to us,” said Rainbow Dash. “Me and Pinkie can run over and grab all the parts you need. Just give us a list. You can stay here and focus on putting her back together.” “We’ll be extra careful this time. We promise we won’t break any of the parts. You can trust us.” Twilight Sparkle looked back and forth between the gentle smiles of her two friends. She rubbed the back of her foreleg across her eyes, before pulling her friends close for a group hug. “Pinkie Pie, Rainbow Dash... Thank you. I couldn’t make it without you.” “Aww,” grinned Pinkie Pie. “I couldn’t do it alone either. Friends need ‘ta stick together.” “Yeah,” Twilight Sparkle said, sniffling. “We need to stay optimistic, just like you said.” She turned to address her other friend. “And Rainbow Dash, thanks for offering to get the replacement parts. I really need your help right now.” Her gaze fell. “A-and, I’m sorry that we left you behind here. It was mean of us, and I—” Rainbow Dash rolled her eyes and chuckled. “Alright, already. You know how I feel about apologizing.” She playfully poked her friend’s forehead. “C’mon, we’ve got our work cut out for us.” Twilight Sparkle nodded resolutely. “Right! Let’s get to it!” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ Twilight Sparkle waved farewell to her friends as they left for their fifth trip to the factory. She turned to look at the floor, where they had dropped off their recent payload. “Okay,” she muttered aloud, “let’s see. That should be enough copper wiring. Wow, they even found a replacement processor for her coordination circuits. Nice!” She gently scattered the pile of replacement parts across the floor, frowning. “Rats. I guess they couldn’t find a new battery for her flight controls.” “Oh, that’s alright.” It was all Twilight Sparkle could do to stop herself from jumping out of her skin. She snapped her head behind her, whipping her mane around in the process. Behind her, she saw a gentle emerald light emanating from beneath Fluttershy’s mane. “My flight circuits don’t normally use much power anyway,” continued Fluttershy. “You could probably borrow a small amount from my primary systems.” Twilight Sparkle quickly turned forward again. “Y-you shouldn’t talk right now. You’re too injured. Just try to rest.” “Oh.” Several seconds of silence elapsed before Fluttershy spoke again. “I must be putting the three of you through an awful lot of trouble. I’m sorry for becoming so damaged.” “But it’s my fault!” yelled Twilight Sparkle. She spun back around, facing Fluttershy with a piteous look. “I’m the one who told you to be our friend—who took you to the factory, even though you knew you’d get in trouble—who stood by helplessly while your sisters attacked all of us. Because of me, you had to destroy your own sisters, and you were nearly destroyed as a result!” She looked pleadingly into Fluttershy’s remaining eye, awaiting some form of judgment or rebuke. “But you told me that it wasn’t an order. You just wanted to be my friend. I was never forced to act this way.” After a moment of contemplation, Fluttershy added, “I didn’t want to hurt my own sisters, but when I saw that they had attacked you,” she said, staring at the ground, “I-I just couldn’t take it. More than anything, I wanted to keep my friends safe.” She looked back at Twilight Sparkle. “Isn’t that normal, for somepony to want to protect her friends?” “Yeah,” said Twilight Sparkle, biting her lip, “you’re right. You’re right.” Her eyes flashed with recollection. “But that was my point exactly! I just stood by while your sisters were tearing you apart! I wanted to protect you too, but you told me not to help! I just stood there, watching you throw your life away. It was horrible! As your friend, I want to keep you safe, too.” An awkward silence hung in the air for a few seconds. Eventually, Fluttershy let out a light giggle. “I guess we both have a few things to learn about friendship, don’t we?” Twilight Sparkle rubbed the back of her head with her hoof, chuckling. “I guess we do!” The two ponies shared a heartfelt laugh. The lighthearted moment melted away the stress and emotion that had built up over the course of the day. With this one moment, normality had nearly returned to their lives. There was just one more thing left to do. “Right, then,” said Twilight Sparkle as she walked up behind Fluttershy, resuming her repairs. “Let’s see what we can do about that flight circuit.” “Thank you, Twilight Sparkle.” “Actually, I meant to say something about that. Y’know, you don’t have to use our full names all the time. Just call me ‘Twilight’ for short. All my friends do.” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ “Twilight...” Twilight Sparkle inhaled deeply, stretching out her sore muscles. Jeez, I still feel exhausted, she thought. Maybe I can sleep a bit longer; just ten more minutes. “Twilight!” Wait, sleep? Her eyes snapped open. Looking about, she realized that she had passed out on the cold steel floor of the dome. She was buried under a small pile of shredded cloth fragments, which formed a makeshift blanket. As she sat upright, she saw the beaming faces of Pinkie Pie and Rainbow Dash. Standing between them was Fluttershy, completely restored to her original condition. “Good morning, Twilight!” said Fluttershy. “Fluttershy, you’re alright!” said Twilight Sparkle. She leapt onto her hooves and rushed to hug the robopony. “Well of course she’s alright,” giggled Pinkie Pie. “I mean, you’re the one who put her back together after all.” “And apparently, you passed out as soon as you finished,” snickered Rainbow Dash. “I have no idea why you didn’t just use the Enertron. I mean, that is what it’s there for.” “Best of all, now that the door is unlocked,” said Fluttershy, “we’ll be able to use the Gate inside.” “‘We’? So you made up your mind?” “Yes, Twilight. I thought for a long time about what you told me. I don’t want to see anypony get hurt. That monster, Lavos, is the...” said Fluttershy, as she struggled to find the right words, “the biggest, meanest, jerky-jerkiest creature that ever lived! It caused so much pain and suffering a few centuries ago. The three of you are being so brave, trying to stop it.” She looked around the room of smiling faces. “But I can be strong, too. I think I understand now, what you said about finding something to believe in. I want to protect other ponies. I want to go with you, and do anything I can to help others.” Her resolve wavered slightly at the end of her emotional speech. “I mean, if there’s room for me.” “Of course!” said Rainbow Dash. “The more the merrier!” She offered Fluttershy a hoof bump, who timidly returned one. “It’s settled then,” said Twilight Sparkle as they entered the small room on the other side of the door. The telltale signs of a Gate’s distortion glowed lightly in the musty room. “We’ll travel together—” “—stop that huge jerky-jerk—” cheered Pinkie Pie. “—protect everypony from harm—” added Fluttershy. “—and get something to eat, for feather’s sake!” Rainbow Dash snatched the Gate Key from Twilight Sparkle’s saddlebags. As she approached the distortion, the Gate tore open, pulling the four friends inside. Electric bolts tore across the deep purple void as it closed around them. They left the post-apocalyptic future behind, hurtling through time to an unanticipated destination. * * * Chapter 16: The End of Time The End of Time Rainbow Dash fell slowly through a column of pure white light that shone up from the ground below. To her, it felt as if the light column were made of molasses and that she were slowly sinking to the bottom of its depths. Her hooves gently touched down on the cobblestone platform. The hooves of her friends landed shortly behind hers. As soon as Fluttershy touched the ground, she collapsed into the fetal position. “I-changed-my-mind-let’s-go-back.” “Oh, c’mon Fluttershy,” encouraged Twilight Sparkle. “This place doesn’t look that bad. I mean, it’s certainly... spacious?” The four ponies stood on a cobblestone platform, enclosed in a steel picket fence. A trio of light columns—one of which they had arrived in—shone resolutely up into the air. A small pathway lead a short distance away to a second platform. Beyond these two platforms was nothing. There were no supports, no ground, no surrounding structures, no light, and no darkness. Reality itself seemed to terminate beyond the simple picket fence. “Looks kinda boring, really,” lamented Pinkie Pie. “Where are we, anyway? When, I mean. When are we?” “Well, you see,” said Fluttershy, “I’m equipped with a number of sensors. Some of my sensors can detect the current date, while others can detect our location.” “Nice,” said Rainbow Dash with a smile. “That sounds crazy-useful for a bunch of time travelers like us. So, when are we?” “I don’t know.” “Wait, what?” Fluttershy shivered her wings, producing a vibrating metallic sound that the friends were quickly becoming accustomed to. “My sensors stopped working the second we entered the Gate. It’s like this place doesn’t exist at all.” She looked up at Twilight Sparkle. “Can we go back? Please?” “We’ve come so far,” said Twilight Sparkle, wincing. “I know that this place is a bit freaky-looking, but I’d hate to turn tail and run before we even figure out when we are.” “Hello!” The ponies turned and looked down the lonely path. A solitary lamp post rested on the only other platform in existence. Underneath this lamp post stood a brown pony with a moppy manecut and an hourglass-shaped cutie mark. He waved energetically, wearing a broad, disarming smile. “Rainbow Dash!” called out Fluttershy. “Where are you going?” Rainbow Dash hovered above the pathway, looking back in confusion. “Uh, to talk with him? He’s kinda the only thing here, besides the lamp post.” “Yeah! C’mon, Fluttershy,” said Pinkie Pie as she helped the robot to her hooves. “We’re all together. It’ll be safe, I promise.” The three mares followed after Rainbow Dash, trotting down the pathway to the second platform. The brown stallion waved them along, eagerly waiting for everypony to draw close enough for comfortable conversation. “Yes, yes, come along now,” he said. “Your pink friend there is quite right; no dangers here. None from myself, leastways. Come a bit closer, and we can talk proper about—goodness, have you picked up another companion? I suppose it was only a matter of time. It usually is, haha. Oh, and a robotic pony at that! Quite impressive. Quite impressive, indeed. Right then. I suppose we should get properly acquainted at last. Might I inquire about your names?” “Heya! I’m Pinkie Pie,” she said, firmly shaking his hoof. “Nice to meetcha!” “And you as well, Pinkie! My, what an energetic one you are.” “My name is Twilight Sparkle.” “And I’m Rainbow Dash. The three of us are time travelers from the year—” With a sharp gasp, she firmly lodged her hooves into her own mouth. She shifted her gaze towards her friend. Twilight Sparkle was glaring back with murderous intent. “Oh, it’s fine, it’s fine!” reassured the stallion. “We’re all time travelers. It’s not like anypony grew up here, after all. So, there’s no reason to keep it a secret.” Rainbow Dash removed her hooves. “—time travelers from the year 1000 AD.” “Very good, very good. And you, my dear?” the stallion asked Fluttershy. Fluttershy shifted her eyes away and murmured inaudibly. “This is Fluttershy,” said Twilight Sparkle, graciously intervening. “We met up with her in the year 2300 AD, shortly before traveling here.” “So that’s us,” said Rainbow Dash. “What about you? What’s your name?” “My name?” The stallion looked skyward, rubbing his chin. He contemplated the question as deeply as if he had been asked to speculate on the origins of the cosmos. He smiled upon reaching an answer that seemed sufficient. “Well, you can call me The Doctor.” “The Doctor?” asked Twilight Sparkle, arching an eyebrow. “Doctor who?” “Hooves.” “Huh?” “Your hooves, Pinkie.” He hurried in front of Pinkie Pie, who was poking a small bucket in the corner. He nudged her back toward her friends, saying, “Watch your hooves. We don’t want you messing with anything so dangerous.” “D-dangerous?” Fluttershy’s eyes shrank. “But you just said there wasn’t anything dangerous here.” “Ah, indeed I did. Mostly true. I certainly won’t harm you. No, the danger is mostly in places that are not here. Like there,” said The Doctor, pointing to the bucket that he saved Pinkie Pie from. “Or probably there,” he said, nodding to a wooden door along the fence, which appeared to lead nowhere. “Or really, any of those,” he said, looking over to the first platform’s light columns. “But right here? Perfectly safe, I assure you.” “And ‘here’ is—” Rainbow Dash asked. “Why, the End of Time, of course!” Twilight Sparkle’s mind boggled at the notion. She couldn’t help but drop her jaw in shock. “T-the end?” “Yes. No. Bit of a misnomer, that,” mused The Doctor. “Might want to come up with something better. Bend? Brink? Precipice?” He shook his head. “It’s not the ‘end’ in a strictly linear sense, like as in ‘tomorrow’s tomorrow’s tomorrow.’ It’s the ‘end’ in the sense of a void. That is to say, the space-time coordinates of least resistance, yet also outside your normal dimensions of space-time. It’s the ‘end’ as in the end of tea time, not because it is 4:30, and not because we ran out of tea, but because tea is not here. Do you follow?” “No,” said Rainbow Dash, Pinkie Pie, and Fluttershy simultaneously. They turned, looking expectantly at Twilight Sparkle. “I think... Sorry, I’m lost too.” “Err, right,” said The Doctor as he ran a hoof through his mane. “The point is, this lamp post is a bit of a crossroads. Those pillars of light, like the one you arrived on? Those are connected to the various time-traveling Gates dotted throughout history. From here, you can access different eras with ease, rather than be encumbered with strict point-to-point travel.” “Oh, wow! That should make our time traveling a lot easier,” said Twilight Sparkle. She furrowed her eyebrows. “But wait, why did we get sent here this time? We’ve traveled through a few Gates, but this is the only time we’ve arrived at the End of Time.” “Indeed it is,” said The Doctor with a nod. “I confess, I’ve been keeping a bit of an eye on you lot. You see, from the End of Time, I’m able to keep tabs on a few of the going-ons in space-time. Nothing too detailed, mind you, but enough to see the broad picture. When I saw that the three of you—ah, that is, the four of you—were whipping back-and-forth willy-nilly across time, I figured that you just might be the ones.” Rainbow Dash cocked her head. “The ones?” “Precisely! The ones to watch! The girls on the go! The type of ponies everypony, everypony should...” He buried his face in his hoof. “I was quoting Becoming Popular again, wasn’t I? Really must break that habit. But that’s beside the point. You four have no doubt learned about Lavos, yes?” “Lavos!” growled Rainbow Dash. “Of course we heard about that monster! That’s why the four of us are traveling through time: to put a stop to it!” “Splendid! That saves us plenty of exposition.” He motioned over to the bucket in the far corner, which Pinkie Pie had been investigating earlier. “It’s in the bucket.” “What? Lavos?” “Yes.” Rainbow Dash’s eyes narrowed in bemusement. “Lavos, the gigantic monster which destroys all of ponykind, is in that bucket.” “Yes.” Pinkie Pie folded her forelegs across her chest and nodded sagely. “Mmm, yes, I see.” “Oh,” said The Doctor with a slight blush. “I think I see the point of confusion. The Gate leading to Lavos is in that bucket.” “Ohhh,” said Rainbow Dash and Pinkie Pie in unison. “Well,” continued Rainbow Dash, “what are we waiting for? Let’s go kick its face in.” The Doctor shook his head. “I’m loving the gumption, Rainbow, but it’s simply not possible. Not then; not now. First, you must prepare.” “Prepare?” asked Fluttershy. “How can we possibly prepare to fight a world-destroying abomination?” The Doctor winked at Fluttershy, causing her to release a small puff of steam. “I’m glad you asked, dear Fluttershy. I would start in there.” He pointed behind him to the small wooden door along the back fence. Twilight Sparkle frowned as she approached the door. “Oh, come on. I suppose I can understand the ‘bucket’ confusion, but this is ridiculous. There clearly isn’t anything on the other side of this—whoa!” Opening the door, Twilight Sparkle could see another room through the doorway. She leaned to the left, looking through the fence next to the door, but she could only see the lightless, darkless void. She leaned back through the doorway, and the new room reappeared before her. The Doctor chuckled. “Ah, but Twilight, as the saying goes, things aren’t always as they seem. Now, hurry along, all of you. We mustn’t keep her waiting. Oh!” he called out. Once he had the ponies’ attention, he looked downward, pondering how to phrase his advice. “Be very respectful,” he eventually offered. “Very.” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ The End of Time—Unknown Room The ponies walked into the back room and closed the door behind them. Like the other platforms in the End of Time, it was a cobblestone floor with a picket fence. This room, however, was otherwise empty. There were no ponies and no buckets. The Doctor and his lamp post were no longer visible; even though they ought to have been visible through the picket fence, they had vanished as soon as the doorway closed. “I don’t get it. How is standing alone in an empty room supposed to prepare us to save the world?” asked Pinkie Pie. The disembodied laughter of a mare floated overhead, causing the four friends to jump in alarm. The room, though it lacked any visible source of lighting, plunged into darkness. Fluttershy let out a timid squeak. “Oh, my little ponies, you aren’t alone,” said the voice. “In fact, you’re just in time for the show.” Trumpets blared from the edges of the void, showering the four ponies with a bold fanfare. The brass chorus was nearly drowned out as an array of fireworks exploded overhead. The bursts lit up the dimmed room with a soft red glow. “Prepare yourself, ignorant foals, to behold spectacles beyond comprehension. Prepare to be graced by a veritable Goddess of War, for whom there is no equal. Prepare to be amazed by none other than—” A bright spotlight shone down from the sky, falling onto the center of the room. A burst of wispy smoke puffed up from the ground, from which emerged an azure unicorn draped in violet, star-stitched robes. “—the Great and Powerful Trixie!” she exclaimed, rearing back on her hind legs as the fanfare and fireworks reached their finales. Rainbow Dash pivoted and walked toward the exit. “And just where you do you think you’re going?” demanded Trixie. “The show’s boring. You’re loud. I’m outta here.” Trixie chuckled softly. “Suit yourself, pegasus. If you are not interested in tapping into your true potential, The Great and Powerful Trixie won’t force your hoof.” Rainbow Dash stopped cold in her tracks. She whipped her head around, raising her eyebrows. Her expression quickly darkened as she marched back to Trixie. “What, you think you can teach me something?” “Dash...” warned Twilight Sparkle. “She looks like she’s performing at some filly’s birthday party!” protested Rainbow Dash. “What could she possibly know about getting stronger?” “How fascinating,” said Trixie with a sly grin. “You know, Trixie finds that her worthy adversaries never make such rash judgments. It’s only weak, clueless amateurs who choose to disparage The Great and Powerful Trixie’s name.” “Why, you little—hey!” Rainbow Dash’s attack was cut short as she was grappled by Twilight Sparkle’s magic. “Twi! Lemme go!” “You could help us unlock our p-potential?” asked Fluttershy as she hugged against the back wall of the room. “Do not misinterpret Trixie,” scoffed Trixie. “She is not motivated by altruism. The Great and Powerful Trixie will unlock your potential, solely to prove that even at your grandest, you are inferior to Trixie in every, conceivable, way.” With each punctuated word, Fluttershy slumped deeper and deeper into the far corner. “But what d’ya mean by ‘potential’? What are you going to unlock?” asked Pinkie Pie. “Is it some kinda ancient treasure chest with legendary artifacts? Why is the chest named Potential, anyway? That’s a silly name for a treasure chest. Though, I suppose I’ve never actually met—” “Naturally, the Great and Powerful Trixie is referring to the most elusive and powerful force in the universe—” she paused dramatically, flipping her luxurious silvery mane, “—magic!” Twilight Sparkle raised her hoof. “You see, little foals,” continued Trixie, “magic is the foundation upon which every single piece of the universe is constructed. It is comprised of the balance of four fundamental elements: fire and water, light and shadow.” Twilight Sparkle rapidly waved her hoof back and forth. “Several millennia before your time, a kingdom existed wherein nearly everypony was capable of calling forth the power of the elements. Due to their hubris and ineptitude, the kingdom was destroyed and the art was forgotten.” Her raised foreleg was starting to fatigue. Twilight Sparkle braced her left foreleg behind her head, keeping her right foreleg propped up. “Forgotten, but not lost. The gift of magic lies dormant in the descendants of that ancient civilization. With proper guidance from an omnipotent and magnanimous being, it might even be possible for the likes of you to reclaim your—what?! What is it?” Trixie snapped at Twilight Sparkle. “What could possibly be so important that you see fit to interrupt The Great and Powerful Trixie’s lecture?” Twilight Sparkle dropped her foreleg. She felt a wave of relief flow over her fatigued muscles. “I already know magic,” she said. Trixie blinked, cocking her head back. “You? You’re telling Trixie that you already know magic?” “Of course! See?” Her horn surged with magical waves, lifting a particularly thick textbook out of her saddlebags. Twilight Sparkle was interrupted by a particularly unflattering snort. “Telekinesis? Please,” said Trixie. “An amateur ability available to even the simplest of unicorns. Do not sully the name of your ancestors and betters by claiming that this meager parlor trick is ‘magic.’” “Huh?” Twilight Sparkle tilted her head. “But if that’s not magic, then what—” Her eyes lit up with excitement. “Oh, of course! That’s what you mean! Let me try something.” Twilight Sparkle widened her stance to lower her center of gravity. Her horn glowed once more with a radiant aura. She licked her lips as a surge of magical energies whirled in the air around her. Her mane and tail floated gently along her own energy waves. Her horn’s energy exploded in a radiant shockwave, flooding the room with light and forcing everypony to shield their eyes. As the room returned to its normal brightness, the ponies could finally see the result of the conjuration spell; a thick-bristled, silvery mustache now adorned the face of The Great and Powerful Trixie. Rainbow Dash and Pinkie Pie collapsed on top of each other, howling in laughter at the dapper adornment. Even Fluttershy, curled up tightly in the corner of the room, couldn’t help but giggle. “Excellent!” crowed Twilight Sparkle. “I was a little worried there. It’s been a long time since I’ve tried casting a spell that complex. But yeah, I already know how to—yah!” She dropped straight to the ground, landing roughly on her underside. The incoming ball of flame whizzed overhead, singeing the top of her hat before bursting against the picket fence. Trixie gnashed her teeth. Her chest rose and fell with each forced breath. A metaphorical fire burned in her eyes as she stared down the offending unicorn, while a literal fire burned underneath her hooves. She summoned forth a column of flame, which propelled her into the air and cleanly burnt away the grievously offensive mustache. “Insolent peons!” she roared down at the four ponies below her. “You would dare to mock The Great and Powerful Trixie with such a pathetic and insulting display?” Fluttershy wailed, covering her eye sensors with her hooves. Secretly, she hoped that by doing so, she would render herself invisible to Trixie. Twilight Sparkle’s reaction was not much better; she laid on the ground before the burning pillar, enraptured by the display of magical prowess. “Whoa!” shouted Rainbow Dash, flaring her wings. “That is awesome! You can seriously teach us how to make giant fireballs and crazy stuff like that?” “Right? That is crazy,” said Pinkie Pie, bouncing up alongside Rainbow Dash. “I’ve never seen anypony who could do a trick like that. You must’ve really practiced a lot, Trixie!” Trixie coldly examined the ponies beneath her hooves. In time, her breathing slowed and her muscles unclenched. The flames below her dissipated, and she gently drifted back to the ground. “Hmph. Yes, well, at least some ponies can recognize their superiors.” She lifted her nose at the ponies, closing her eyes. “Very well! Trixie shall agree to unlock your magical potential,” she said, raising a limp hoof toward Rainbow Dash, “if you apologize for insulting The Great and Powerful Trixie.” Rainbow Dash rubbed the back of her head with a hoof. “Uh, we’re sorry?” Trixie opened an eye and smirked. She shook her head, wiggling the hoof closer to Rainbow Dash. Rainbow Dash heard a squeal behind her. Turning, she saw Twilight Sparkle attempting and failing to cover a mile-wide toothy grin with her hooves. As Rainbow Dash processed her friend’s reaction, the meaning of Trixie’s request slowly dawned on her. Her jaw dropped as she squeaked in protest. “What?” she wailed. “No! C’mon! Okay, first off: you!” she yelled, pointing accusingly at the giddy Twilight Sparkle. “Cut it out. That thing you’re doing? Stop it. Second? This is your fault, so you oughta be the one up here. Third?” She turned back to Trixie, stretching her forelegs wide. “Come on!” Trixie leaned forward, gently bopping Rainbow Dash in the snout with her hoof. “Trixie is waaaiting,” she said in a singsong voice. Rainbow Dash locked eyes with Twilight Sparkle, sneering with the dirtiest look she could muster. She leaned in toward the hoof and grazed it with her lips as lightly as possible. Rainbow Dash immediately slouched away, folded her hooves, and muttered impolite things about her so-called best friend. Twilight Sparkle responded by sticking out her tongue. “And just like that,” announced Trixie in a needlessly booming voice, “all is forgiven! Is not The Great and Powerful Trixie gracious and benevolent?” “So does that mean you’ll teach us? Hooray!” cheered Pinkie Pie, unphased by her squabbling friends. “Can we learn right now? What’s the first step?” Trixie nonchalantly examined her hooficure. “Trot three laps clockwise around this room, while chanting the word ‘magic.’” “Oh wow! I had no idea that learning magic was so easy!” Pinkie Pie trotted to the edge of the room, slowly working her way around the perimeter. “Magic... magic...” Twilight Sparkle and Rainbow Dash pivoted and walked toward the exit. “Giving up so soon?” taunted Trixie. “Is walking in a circle too hard?” “You’re just jerking our chains,” snapped Rainbow Dash, redirecting her anger from her friend to where it belonged. Twilight Sparkle frowned sourly. “If you don’t want to help us, just say so.” “Magic... magic...” chanted Fluttershy as she shambled around the edge of the room. “Need Trixie remind you once again of her awe-inspiring prowess? She is clearly more than capable of training the likes of you, so you would do well to just shut up and do as The Great and Powerful Trixie says.” Rainbow Dash and Twilight Sparkle shared a bemused glance. With a dejected sigh, they joined their friends in encircling the room. “Magic... magic...” “Congratulations, students,” said Trixie in a monotone as the last of the ponies completed their third lap. “You passed. You can use magic now.” Twilight Sparkle glared at Trixie. “Are you serious?” “Sah-weet!” yelled Pinkie Pie. “I know magic! I know magic! Hey Trixie, what spells can we use?” Trixie rolled her eyes. “Well let’s see, then.” She stared curiously at Twilight Sparkle’s saddlebags before smirking. “Ooo. You’ll get fire.” Twilight Sparkle nervously examined her saddlebags as well. She noted the copious number of dry books and brittle scrolls. “Fire?” she said with a gulp. “I mean, not that I actually believe that you taught us anything, but... fire? It’s bad enough that I’ve got a flamethrower buried somewhere in here.” Trixie looked Rainbow Dash over, noticing her lightning bolt cutie mark. “Sure. Light for you.” Rainbow Dash moaned, “Light? That sounds so frou-frou. Can’t I get something cooler?” Trixie waved her hoof noncommittally at Pinkie Pie. “And that means water for you. Rounds out the trio.” “Water?” said Pinkie Pie with a wince, trying to hide her disappointment. “Isn’t that a little bit plain? I was hoping for something with a bit more pop and pizzaz.” “How about fire?” asked Twilight Sparkle. “Water sounds nice. Gentle. Nonflammable.” “What?” snapped Trixie. “You’re not allowed to—” “Aww, Twi,” whined Rainbow Dash. “Trade with me! Fire looked pretty sick, the way Trixie was using it.” “Actually, light sounds neat,” said Pinkie Pie. “It sounds cheery, and sunny, and a great way to brighten someone’s day!” Twilight Sparkle smiled, nodding eagerly. “That works! So I’ll get water, Pinkie gets light, and Rainbow gets fire?” Trixie stomped her hooves repeatedly on the cobblestone floor. “No, no, no! You can’t just ‘trade’ elements! Your element is an intrinsic trait determined by your heritage.” “Oh, shaddap,” sneered Rainbow Dash. “You obviously picked them at random just now. What do you care if we swap ‘em?” “Um, I’m sorry to interrupt—” Rainbow Dash gasped, wincing at her newest friend. “Oh cripes! Sorry Fluttershy, I almost forgot you for a minute there.” She turned back to Trixie. “So yeah. What about Fluttershy?” “What about her?” sneered Trixie. “Good point. Sorry to bother you,” said Fluttershy. She hung her head low, obscuring her face behind her metallic mane. “Hey!” snapped Rainbow Dash. “She did your stupid little exercise, just like the rest of us. Why doesn’t she get magic powers?” “Oh, Trixie doesn’t know. Maybe it’s because robots can’t use magic. Maybe it’s because this robot is weak and not worthy of Trixie’s time. Or maybe,” she said, grinning smugly at an increasingly-aggravated Rainbow Dash, “Trixie just doesn’t feel like it.” “That’s it!” yelled Rainbow Dash, taking flight above her friends. “I have had enough with your—” She pointed an accusing hoof at Trixie. Trixie calmly leaned to her left as the bolt of lightning grazed harmlessly past her. The other ponies gasped loudly. “Rainbow?” whispered Twilight Sparkle. “What did you do? Was that...” Rainbow Dash stared at her own hoof, slack-jawed. Slowly, the corners of her mouth turned upward, first into an elated gasp, then into an eager grin, then finally a devilish smirk. “Oh,” she told Trixie, “it’s game on.” Hovering in place, Rainbow Dash curled up into a small cyan ball, tightening her muscles. As she focused her mind, the room began to tingle with the buzz of static electricity. The air of the room ebbed and flowed with magical energies, synchronized with Rainbow Dash’s relaxed breathing. With a sudden roar, she unfurled herself, rocketing her magic upward. The magic fell quickly back to earth, striking as a ferocious bolt of lightning. Without so much as a blink, Trixie summoned magic of her own. A blue, static-laden orb surrounded her form, absorbing the incoming attack. “Well, well,” she stated dryly. “Looks like somepony is a quick study.” “Oh my,” gasped Fluttershy as she watched the sparring match unfold. “Everypony, please be careful. We don’t want anypony to hurt themselves right now.” As Rainbow Dash prepared to unleash another attack, Pinkie Pie eagerly raised her hoof up to her own eyeball, studying it intently. She gave it a few rapid shakes, then held it up to her ear. She muttered, “How’re you supposed to…” Not to be outdone, Twilight Sparkle meditated on this new form of magic within her. With a smile, she called forth a thin stream of fire which playfully danced around her hooves and behind her torso. She focused the flame near her horn, flowing her power into it before unleashing it at Trixie. The Great and Powerful Trixie leapt to the side, dodging another of Rainbow Dash’s lightning bolts. As she landed with a rough stomp, a wall of flames rose up in front of her, swallowing up Twilight Sparkle’s fireball. “Impressive. Upgrading from facial hair to fireballs in a matter of minutes. There just might be hope for the three—” A chunk of ice slammed into the side of her head, interrupting her snide taunt. Trixie staggered sideways, trying to regain her balance. “Ice! How nice!” giggled Pinkie Pie. “See, I was just thinking about how boring water sounded, and I was like, ‘How can I make this cooler?’ And it was like ‘Of course! Ice is cooler!’ Get it? Cooler? It’s almost twen—” A cascading flow of ice crashed over Pinkie Pie, sending her careening into the side of the fence. The ice flow solidified over her torso, pinning her to the wall. She flailed her exposed hooves helplessly. “Hey! No fair!” “The Great and Powerful Trixie has no patience for your terrible puns!” screamed Trixie. “My puns? Terrible?” squeaked Pinkie Pie. Her jaw clenched tightly. Spasms rocked through her eye muscles. “Dashie!” she screeched at her friend. “Demolish that she-witch!” “Heh, you got it, Pinkie!” called out Rainbow Dash. She raised her hoof skyward, preparing to send down another wave of lightning. Trixie snarled. “Trixie is through playing nicely. It is time to show you who is in charge.” Swirling her hoof in a circle, she summoned forth a storm cloud which flew up to Rainbow Dash. The storm cloud shook and rumbled, shooting its own lightning bolts back at Rainbow Dash. “Yeowch!” she cried after taking a zap to the flank. “Quit it!” She kicked out at the cloud, trying to move or dissipate it, but the barrage of electricity prevented her from getting close. After taking a few more licks, she was forced to turn and flee. The magical cloud chased her around the room, causing her to yelp with each strike. “Rainbow Dash!” called out Fluttershy in worry. She stood up from her hiding place in the corner. “Watch out!” “Nopony asked you,” scoffed Trixie. She grinned widely as she performed another incantation. Fluttershy’s shadow began to solidify and take shape. It formed into an amorphous blob in front of Fluttershy. The mere sight of the shadow was enough to send her cowering back into her corner. “Pathetic!” snickered Trixie. “How can all of you crumple so easily?” “It’s not over yet, Trixie.” Twilight Sparkle stood defiantly in front of Trixie. “You may be stronger than us, and more versed in magic, but you’ll never be able to crush our spirits. Ack!” Twilight Sparkle leapt sideways, dodging the fireball which Trixie threw at her. “Ha! See that? I can already dodge your attacks.” Trixie laughed, “Trixie would check again, if Trixie were you.” “Double ack!” yelped Twilight Sparkle. The fireball had grazed along her tail, setting it asmoulder. She rapidly swished her tail to and fro, attempting to put out the embers. In response to the extra oxygen, the hair fully ignited, leaving a trail of flames along her tail. “Triple ack!” She kicked and stomped on her tail, futilely trying to extinguish the flames. Trixie fell onto her back, squealing with laughter. Tears streamed down her cheeks as she tried and failed to regain her composure. “T-this is so sad! The lot of you can’t even stand up to your own elements? Ahaha! What was that imbecile Doctor thinking?” Trixie bit her lip, stifling her laughter for a second as she surveyed the damage. Fluttershy was cowering from her own shadow. Pinkie Pie was frozen against the fence, completely helpless. Rainbow Dash and Twilight Sparkle were both busy screaming and running circles around the room, desperately trying to outrun her magic. “Pfft, gya ha ha!” Trixie howled. “Hooves down, you four are the most pathetic opponents that Trixie has ever faced!” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ The End of Time “Well,” scowled Twilight Sparkle, “that was a complete disaster.” Dark smoke billowed from her tail as she and her friends left Trixie’s room. The air around her hung with the foul odor of burnt hair. “I-i-it wasn’t all that b-b-bad,” chattered Pinkie Pie as she rubbed her forelegs against her body. “We p-p-picked up these amazing new powers.” “Well, I think that everypony did a great job,” said Fluttershy cheerily. “You all tried your very best. You should be proud of how well you did your first time.” “Yeah, not really,” said Rainbow Dash. She rubbed a hoof over her flank, massaging her sore muscles. “That was pretty much disgraceful. The four of us are going to have to train non-stop if we ever want to wipe that smug grin off her face.” “Oh come now, Rainbow!” said The Doctor as he welcomed the ponies back to his lamp post. “The lot of you don’t look too much worse for wear. I’d say you four did better than most who’ve passed through that door. And really, those new magical abilities of yours are quite a blessing.” He chuckled, adding, “It’s always nice to see the legacy of that ancient kingdom passed along, such as it were.” “What’s her s-story, anyway?” asked Pinkie Pie, warming herself under the lamp’s glow. “She called herself a Goddess of War? And she knows magic? How’d you pick up an assistant like that?” “Assistant? Her?” laughed The Doctor. “No-no-no, it’s nothing like that. The Great and Powerful Trixie—” “Please don’t call her that,” deadpanned Rainbow Dash. “It’s a small price to pay, my dear. Trust me on that. Anywho, she simply arrived here one day—if there can really be a concept of ‘days’ in a place like this—from another time period. Said something about wanting to prove herself as the strongest pony in history, and boy did she have the skills to back it up. Since I had plenty of extra space around here—if there can really be a concept of ‘space’ in a time like this—we sort of decided to peacefully cohabitate. “Right then!” he continued. “We’ve got you a new centralized hub of time travel and a suite of unlocked powers. No sense in dilly-dallying any further. We should get the three of you back to your home era,” he said, motioning to Rainbow Dash and her companions. “I understand,” said Fluttershy. The sound of her metallic hooves echoed loudly in the empty void as she walked to a corner of the platform. She parked her hindquarters on the ground, staring vacantly at the fenced corner. “I shall wait here. You can come visit me here, whenever it’s convenient for you.” “Oh dear,” stammered The Doctor. “I didn’t—” “No way!” objected Twilight Sparkle. “There’s no way we’re going to abandon you here. I mean, no offense to The Doctor or… her… but this place is so cold and lonely.” She nodded resolutely. “You go with Dash and Pinkie. I’ll take the first shift here.” Pinkie Pie’s chest heaved. “I don’t want to leave any of my friends behind. It’s not fair.” She turned to The Doctor, giving her best puppy-dog eyes. “Can’t all four of us go? Please? Pretty please with lots and lots of sugar on top?” “I’m terribly sorry,” said The Doctor with a blush. “I’ve given you all the wrong impression. Of course the four of you are free to travel together.” “We are? Oh, how wonderful,” said Fluttershy in a breathy cheer. “I mean, really now,” added The Doctor. “It’s not like there’s some artificial limit on the number of ponies that can travel through time with one another. Wouldn’t that be daft?” Pinkie Pie rubbed her chin. “Now that you mention it, that does sound a little contrived.” “Right! 1000 AD,” said The Doctor. “Just take that pillar of light on the right there. Piece of cake.” Rainbow Dash leapt forward. “You heard him, girls. Time to head back home.” The four ponies crossed the small bridge, approaching the pillar of light. As soon as they stepped into the column, it pulled them upward, sending them out into the void and back into the time stream. * * * Chapter 17: Fiendish Folk 1000 AD Unknown Residence Rainbow Dash and her friends tumbled out of the closet, crashing in an unceremonious heap on the floor. “Ouch,” Rainbow Dash groaned emphatically from the bottom of the ponypile. Behind them, the swirling Gate weakened and reverted to its dormant state. The Gate condensed within the confines of the closet, creating a vacuum which pulled the closet’s wooden doors shut. The four friends slowly unpiled from atop one another. “Oh my,” said Fluttershy. “Is time travel always this unpleasant?” Twilight Sparkle squirmed and twisted, trying to adjust her saddlebags into a more comfortable position. “Not usually. The first couple of trips were relatively peaceful, but these last few...” She arched her back, accompanied by a few stiff cracks. Pinkie Pie cocked her head to the side. “Really, though, who would put their Gate in a closet? It’s so easy to trip and hurt yourself. Gates should really be placed someplace safe.” “Ah! Twilight, good news,” said Fluttershy. “My sensors are working again. It seems that we’re back in 1000 AD, just like The Doctor said.” “Great! We can head back to my house and start doing some research.” Twilight Sparkle frowned as she looked around the room. “Speaking of which, whose house are we in? We should probably get out of here before anypony notices.” “Well, my sensors—” “Rainbow Dash? Are you alright?” Pinkie Pie rapidly waved her hoof in front of her friend’s face. “Hello?” Rainbow Dash’s muscles were paralyzed. Her eyes stared straight ahead, unblinking. Her wings were flared skyward. Her tongue hung lazily out the side of her mouth, with a single bead of saliva running down it. Her mind began to lose focus, as the room, its furnishings, and her friends slowly blurred away. In the end, only one object remained sharply in focus. The white ceramic plate was free of dirt or smudges, yet it was marred by a violent wave of raspberry glaze that spiraled around its surface. The preservative trail drew the eyes inward toward the decadent tower that arose from the alabaster platter. The tower’s foundation was a generous wedge of chocolate cake. Dense and egg-free, it served as a solid base to build upon. The chocolate was adorned with a smooth layer of blackberry jam; this served as a securing buffer which allowed the confectionery to rise skyward. The next level was cake of the finest red velvet, spongy and flavorful. It served as a perfect middle layer, smoothing out the transition between the disparate top and bottom levels. Adhered with rich cream cheese, the topmost level of cake was strawberry sponge cake, airy and delicate. Its gentle sweetness served as the perfect foil for the base’s power and presence. The entire affair was blanketed in rich, sweet buttermilk frosting, which provided a creamy consistency that properly summarized this tribute to sugar. As a sign of flair and elegance, the cake was topped with a trio of blueberries and a single leaf of mint. Rainbow Dash’s eyes made love to the dish before her. She felt a singular muscle spasm in her abdomen, signalling her hunger—no, her yearning—for the baked good. Her legs moved of their own free will, carrying her closer and closer, hoof by hoof. Her exposed tongue extended, stretching itself toward the luxurious buttermilk frosting. Twilight Sparkle tugged sharply on her friend’s tail. “No. That’s not your cake.” Rainbow Dash’s rose-colored eyes flashed brightly back at Twilight Sparkle. “Traitor!” She flailed her hooves wildly in the direction of the cake. “Let go of me!” “What part of ‘it’s not yours’ are you missing? We’re not even supposed to be in here. If—” “Who the heck are you?” The ponies turned to the doorway, where stood a pair of diminutive imps, one with green skin and the other with blue. While they were glaring quite angrily at the intruders, they did not otherwise appear hostile, much to the ponies’ surprise. The blue imp waddled toward Rainbow Dash and Twilight Sparkle, who were still wrestling near the dessert. She pointed an accusing, stubby claw at Rainbow Dash. “And just what do you think you’re doing?” Rainbow Dash’s eyes twitched, hopping between the imp and her cake. Her hooves remained perched just out of reach of the dessert. “You gonna eat that?” she asked. “My birthday cake? I was planning on it.” “We’re very sorry to be bothering you, Mrs. Imp,” said Fluttershy. “It’s just that we seem to have gotten turned around, and—” The green imp buried his face into his hand, as best as one could with an oversized head and diminutive claws. “No, no, don’t tell me. You came out of our closet, didn’t you?” “Oh, well, um—” The green imp threw a dirty look at his companion. “What did I tell you? Last time this happened, what did I say?” The blue imp rolled her eyes. “You said we should get rid of—” “Get rid of the closet,” he finished. “Yep, that’s exactly what I said. Told ya we didn’t need any more freaky ponies showing up out of nowhere. But did you listen? Oh no. ‘It won’t happen again,’ you said. ‘Let’s not overreact,’ you said.” The blue imp folded her arms, turning away from her friend. “Why yes, I am having a nice birthday. Thank you so much for asking.” Twilight Sparkle and Rainbow Dash shared a glance. The former released her magical grapple; the latter calmly dropped to her hooves. The four ponies quietly slid along the edge of the room, sneaking out the front door while the two imps bickered. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 1000 AD Palomedina—Town Square “So, Palomedina, huh?” asked Rainbow Dash as she glided above her friends. “This is that ‘city of demons’ on the eastern continent?” She raised her eyebrow as a pair of gargoyles walked past the ponies. The gargoyles, who were carrying bags of groceries, glared back menacingly. Twilight Sparkle scoffed. “Really now, Rainbow. They’re not demons. They’re—” They passed an outdoor restaurant, where a troll and goblin were gorging themselves on raw legs of mutton. Their sharp fangs ripped into the legs, tearing flesh from bone in a grizzly, carnivorous display. “They’re more like monsters,” said Fluttershy in a hushed tone. “Actually,” said Pinkie Pie, “they prefer to be called Mystics. These are the grandkids of Nightmare Moon’s forces. Nightmare Moon was this super-duper, meanie-weenie, evil enchantress who got all the Mystics together. She and the Mystics tried to destroy Sugardia in the Great War. Don’t worry, though. We won! Sugardia was saved, and the Mystic army was stopped for good. They all went back to their homes, here in Palomedina. Sugardia and Palomedina aren’t great friends, but we at least try to get along.” Twilight Sparkle blinked at Pinkie Pie, slack-jawed. “I... That’s exactly right! I gotta say, Pinkie, I’m really impressed. How do you know so much about Mystics?” Pinkie Pie blushed, shyly turning her gaze away. “Well, you have to know these things when you’re a princess, you know.” “Oh! That’s right, you—” Twilight Sparkle snapped her mouth closed. “Shutting up now.” Pinkie Pie chuckled. She pointed her hoof to a small gathering of Mystics, performing a type of observance around a large golden statue in the town square. “That’s a statue of their old leader: the alicorn named—” “Nightmare Moon!” shouted Rainbow Dash. Twilight Sparkle smiled up at her friend. “So, you were paying attention. Very good, Dash!” “Very good, Dash,” she mimicked back in a nasally falsetto. “Not that, doofus. We’ve seen that statue before!” The ponies approached the statue, trotting and flying respectively. Twilight Sparkle squinted as the statue came into focus. “Well, you got me there. That’s the statue from Manerial Abbey, sure enough.” “There’s actually real-live alicorns in this era?” asked Fluttershy, looking over the fearsome visage of the statue. “I’d never heard of a real one, back home. Everypony talked like they were part of a fairy tale.” “Right?” agreed Pinkie Pie. “It’s really tough to believe, even if she was alive a few hundred years ago for us. Makes you wonder if she didn’t just crazy-glue those wings on her back. But nope, the Mystics are quite insistent she was an alicorn. The only one ever in all of history!” She shrugged. “At least, that’s what my teachers say.” Rainbow Dash shivered. “Okay, fine, so she was a crazy pega-corn mutant. Cool. Whatever.” She gestured at the Mystics surrounding the base of the statue. “But what’s the deal with that freaky chanting?” she hissed. A small gathering of Mystics danced in a large circle around the golden statue of Nightmare Moon. At least, the ponies assumed that it was a form of dance. The Mystics threw their bodies vigorously against the droning rhythms of the chanting, flailing and contorting in a way that the ponies found to be alien and unnerving. As the friends neared the gathering, they finally managed to make out the words of the chant. ...Moon! Our Nightmare Moon Your coat of black: ponies’ despair Your starry mane: oblivion Your bloody scythe: their cities fall Our loyalty: the sky burns red Your fearsome pow’r: nothing remains Except the Moon! Our Nightmare Moon Your coat of black... “‘Freaky’ is right,” whispered Twilight Sparkle under her breath. A muscled, bipedal creature turned to look at Twilight Sparkle. Its ripped form was covered in thick plated armor, which itself was coated in dried blood. Its helm obscured its face under an impenetrable shade, exposing naught but a large unblinking eye. The Mystic looked down upon the ponies, towering over them at twice their height. His massive hand tightened its grip on a painful-looking spiked mace. Twilight Sparkle locked every muscle in her body, paralyzed by fright and the sinking suspicion that her snarky remark had been overheard. “Well, well,” chuckled the beast in a deep, smoky voice. “It seems that we have a handful of horsies in our midst. Have you come to pay homage to the mother of your destruction?” A few of the bystanders cackled, taking delight in the ponies’ visible fear. “Destruction? What’s that supposed to mean?” asked Pinkie Pie. “Wasn’t Nightmare Moon defeated centuries ago?” The creature tilted its head, leaning in closer to the pink pony. “You look... familiar,” he hissed. Pinkie Pie coughed vigorously, covering her face with her hoof. “Nope,” she said in a rich baritone voice, “don’t think we’ve met before. I just have a familiar-looking face.” “Well, little horsie, allow me to turn your world on its head. Nightmare Moon may have been defeated, but her legacy—and your destiny—lives on.” He pointed a stubby finger toward the ground. “Deep beneath the earth sleeps her greatest creation.” The laughter of the crowd came to a slow boil. It was not everyday that they had a chance to strike fear into the hearts of their mortal enemies, and they were intent to make the most of it. “The harbinger of the your doom!” “A monster which no one but the great Nightmare Moon herself could hope to control!” “When Nightmare Moon’s vengeance arises, the era of ponies will fall!” “The greatest hope of the Mystics! Lavos, the destroyer of ponykind!” “What?!” screamed Rainbow Dash. She charged up to the armored Mystic, glaring into its singular eye. “Nightmare Moon created Lavos?” The creature let out a low, gravelly laugh. “Yes... Lavos... Know the name well, little horsie. Once Lavos awakens, Nightmare Moon’s revenge will be complete.” “No.” The Mystic turned its gaze away from Rainbow Dash. “No?” Fluttershy slowly stepped toward the creature. “No. Lavos won’t destroy this planet, and Nightmare Moon won’t have her revenge. I’m sorry, but the fact of the matter is, your leader has lost.” The Mystic inhaled sharply before erupting, roaring directly into Fluttershy’s face. Her courage evaporated in a matter of nanoseconds. With a wail, she turned and flew at a full gallop, racing out of the town center and off into the distance. “Fluttershy!” called out Rainbow Dash. “Wait, come back!” The friends chased after Fluttershy, taunted by the maniacal laughter of the Mystics. The fiends resumed their ceremony, worshipping the creature who would destroy friend and foe alike in nine hundred and ninety nine years. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 1000 AD Palomedina—Outskirts “What the hell?” growled Rainbow Dash as she and her friends chased after the runaway robopony. “Lavos wasn’t just some random monster buried in the ground? Nightmare Moon created it?” “Language. Correct. Excellent,” replied Twilight Sparkle, breathing heavily from her full-strided gallop. “Excellent? What’s excellent? The fact that we know Lavos’s birthday?” “Basically, yes. Don’t forget, Rainbow, we’ve been to Nightmare Moon’s era before. We can still use that Gate at Diane Square to travel back to 600 AD.” “Awesome!” cheered Pinkie Pie as she bounced along beside her friends. “We can travel back in time and stop Nightmare Moon.” She blinked. “Wait, but Nightmare Moon already lost.” Twilight Sparkle tilted her head from side to side as she ran. “Well, she was defeated, yes, but she still managed to create Lavos. If we can travel back in time, we might be able to change history such that she’s defeated and that she fails to summon Lavos.” “Ooo, I just thought of something!” said Pinkie Pie. “Maybe the ponies who defeated Nightmare Moon in the past—get this—were us! We already defeated her, but now we need to go back in time so that we can actually do the defeating!” Twilight Sparkle’s jaw tightened. “I sure hope that time travel doesn’t work that way, Pinkie. If we’re predestined to fight Nightmare Moon like that, yet the future is still destroyed, that means...” The trio of ponies caught up to Fluttershy. They flopped to the ground and gasped for breath, while she stood motionless and stared off into the distance. “Hey, Fluttershy,” said Rainbow Dash between pants, “what gives? Why’d you stop?” Fluttershy pointed a hoof straight ahead. The grassy plains of the continent eventually gave way to a crystal-blue ocean. Where land met water, a sizable mountain reached its way into the clear skies. “Do you see that small house?” Fluttershy asked. Indeed, there was a small stucco house seated near the base of the mountain. “I believe that there is an equine inside.” “An equine? You mean a pony?” asked Twilight Sparkle. “I’m not certain.” “Well, I’m certain that I’d like to see another friendly face, at this point,” said Pinkie Pie. “C’mon, everypony, let’s check it out.” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 1000 AD Palomedina—Isolated Hut Rainbow Dash opened the front door, poking her head inside. “Hello? Anypony in here?” “Visitors?” replied a voice. Rainbow Dash turned, looking down a nearby staircase. The sound appeared to be coming from the basement. “My manners are lacking. Make yourselves comfy while I finish unpacking.” The four ponies let themselves into the home. It had the basic furnishing of this era, for homes of ponies and Mystics alike: wooden bookcases, cushioned chairs, tables with glossy finish, and so forth. The ponies nearly failed to notice these rote details. The house was also decorated with objects that were decidedly more exotic and unique. Shelves running the length of the wall were covered with potions, lumber, and alloys. Decorative tribal masks hung above the shelves, giving the room a foreign yet strangely welcoming glow. The back wall of the room was affixed with an array of wall mounts, whereupon a collection of blades, maces, shields, and armor were on display. The sound of hooves echoed in the room, causing the ponies to turn back toward the staircase. A zebra with an impressive mohawk emerged from the basement, balancing a broadsword and polishing cloth across her back. Her neck and right foreleg were bound with multiple golden rings. She wore an elegant blue robe across her back, bound in place with a brilliant red sash. “What’s this? I almost cannot believe my eyes. Ponies in Palomedina—what a surprise!” “I’m a bit surprised to see a zebra in Palomedina, for that matter,” said Twilight Sparkle. “The Mystics aren’t exactly known for their hospitality.” “What you say, dear unicorn, is true. But due to fate, it will have to do. Now ponies—yellow, pink, and blue—tell Zecora what she can do for you.” “Hey, Zecora.” Pinkie Pie grabbed her hoof and vigorously shook it. “My name’s Pinkie Pie. This here is Fluttershy, Twilight Sparkle, and Rainbow Dash. We accidentally got stranded here—kinda like you, from the sound of it.” “We’re actually trying to make our way back home, to Equus,” said Twilight Sparkle. “Is there maybe a ferry, or…” “Crossing the sea is quite easy,” Zecora said with a nod, looking out her window. The view from here was dominated by the base of the nearby mountain. “In this mountain, within the Cave of Heckran, there’s a whirlpool which can take you back where you began.” Fluttershy attempted to bow respectfully, as best as her stiff joints would allow. “Thank you, Miss Zecora. This is extremely helpful.” Rainbow Dash floated in front of the back wall, eyeing the weapons and armor with rapt interest. “So what’s the deal with all these swords? You some kind of merchant?” “A weaponsmith, Rainbow; a forger of blades. But you are correct; these wares are for trade.” “Oh my,” said Fluttershy as she drew back. “You make weapons? I don’t mean to sound judgmental, but many ponies could get hurt with these.” Zecora hung her head, her eyes filled with emotions that the ponies could only guess at. “Your words burn, yet ring true, Fluttershy. This profession makes me want to cry. Weapons are meant for protecting life, but these Mystics use them for death and strife. But it is a task for which I am able. It shames me, but it puts bread on my table.” “I’m sorry,” said Fluttershy, hanging her head in turn. “I didn’t mean to jump to conclusions. That’s quite a sad predicament you’re in. I wish there was—“ “Dude! Twi!” shouted Rainbow Dash. “Check out this sweet-flank sword!” Rainbow Dash’s jaw chomped firmly on the hilt of a red-steel katana, which had been cast and tempered with utmost skill. She flailed the sword around so recklessly and rapidly that Twilight Sparkle was surprised the pegasus’s head didn’t pop off. “How much is it?” “Ah yes, my alloyed katana with blade of red,” said Zecora with a nod. “It’s yours for eight thousand and five hundred.” Rainbow Dash’s neck locked in place, causing the blade to vibrate as its inertia nearly tore it free from her mouth. She set the sword back onto its wall mount delicately, as if to prevent the sword from shattering into thousands of pieces. Pulling off her bandana, she gently wiped every last trace of her saliva from the grip. “Yeah, uh, my allowance is only two hundred gold a week. Sorry. Guess I’m gonna have to start saving up.” “No problemo!” cheered Pinkie Pie. From her saddlebags, she pulled out a large leather pouch, which she flung onto the nearby table. It landed with a heavy slosh of metallic jingling. The bag tipped, causing a trickle of Sugardian gold coins to roll out. “Holy shhh-eep,” Rainbow Dash corrected herself, glancing nervously at Twilight Sparkle. She turned back toward the money purse. “Pinkie, where in Sugardia did you get all this cash? Is this, like, from the royal treasury or something?” “Oh, no-no-no, nothing like that,” said Pinkie Pie, dismissively waving her hoof. “This money is all of ours. I’ve been collecting it for us.” Twilight Sparkle arched an eyebrow. “Collecting it? From where?” “After all our battles, duh. Y’know, all of the mobs we’ve fought have been dropping gold, tonics, experience points, tech points—” “I… experience points?” Pinkie Pie huffed at Twilight Sparkle. “All of this stuff is covered in the Tutorial menu. You really need to check that out sometime.” “Whatever. I don’t care about asparagus points,” said Rainbow Dash. “What about the gold? Do we have the nine thousand for my sword?” “Absolutely!” said Pinkie Pie, diving her face into the leather pouch and rapidly estimating its contents. “Our wallet has over… over…” She pulled her face out of the bag, smiling at her friends. “Over forty thousand gold!” The ponies went on a short buying binge. Rainbow Dash got her red katana, Pinkie Pie picked up some improved ammo for her crossbow, and everypony picked up protective armored vests. “Thanks for your business, ponies of the realm,” said Zecora with a respectful bow. “But are you certain that nopony needs a fine helm?” Rainbow Dash laughed brashly. “Thanks for the offer, but I’ll have to pass. Twilight might be okay with wearing a dorky-looking hat,” she said, running a hoof through her rainbow-striped mane, “but I’d rather look stylish while I fight. Image is important for some ponies.” Twilight Sparkle rolled her eyes. “Avoiding skull fractures is important for other ponies,” she muttered under her breath. “Anyway, we better get moving,” said Rainbow Dash, leading her friends toward the front door. “Thanks for the gear, Zecora! We’ll see you around!” Zecora waved farewell, smiling at her new friends. “Indeed, meeting again would be perfect! I hope my wares help in your mission to protect.” * * * Chapter 18: Faithful Family 1000 AD Equus The coastline of Equus boasted a clear-blue oceanic view. Foamy waves crested and crashed upon the shoreline. A few restless seagulls soared through the skies above, their calls drifting peacefully through the sun-filled skies. The salty ocean breeze wafted through the town, offering its nostalgic scent to anypony who might care to enjoy it. The tranquil midday view was violently disrupted when a pair of cyan hooves erupted from the water’s surface, about a hundred meters from shore. The hooves were followed by a muzzle that was coughing up seawater and spouting vulgarities. The mouth was followed by a rainbow-hued mane, hanging damply from the waterlogged pegasus’s head. “Freaking—cough cough—shortcut!” Rainbow Dash screamed, gasping for breath. “Why the heck did we listen to Zecora?” “I’m sorry,” said Fluttershy. The weighted robopony clung tightly to Rainbow Dash as the pair kicked their way toward the shoreline. “I did find it odd when she mentioned the shortcut involved a whirlpool, but I didn’t want to seem ungrateful.” “I just want to know,” sputtered Twilight Sparkle as her mouth bobbed over and under the water level, “how we managed to cross an entire ocean while underwater.” She weakly doggy-paddled behind Rainbow Dash. Pinkie Pie slid past everypony, gliding through the water with a graceful sidestroke. “You guys really need to lighten up! That whirlpool was fun! I want to ride it again.” The four arrived on the coasts of Equus after a few minutes of swimming. Twilight Sparkle and Rainbow Dash sprawled out on the sandy coasts, coughing the last bits of saltwater out of their lungs. Fluttershy graciously stood above the prone pair, attempting to dry them with the heat of her exhaust vents. Pinkie Pie hopped up and down on one hoof, desperately trying to shake water out of her ear. “Okay,” said Twilight Sparkle, her breath slowly returning to a normal rate. “In any case, we’re back in Equus. We can head to the fairgrounds, use the Gate, and—” A hoof jabbed itself roughly into her chest, causing her to stagger. “No, Twilight,” said Rainbow Dash, who continued to jab her friend, “we are not heading to the fairgrounds now. Would you like to know why? I’ll give you a hint. What special event, documented in all of your stupid history books, took place three days, nineteen hours, and fifty seven minutes ago?” Her voice quivering with fury as she slowly advanced toward Twilight Sparkle; the latter pony instinctively backpedaled. “Give up? That was when I ate dinner. A thick stew with carrots, beets, potatoes, and celery. Garden salad on the side. Ice-cold strawberry-orange punch to drink. ‘What was so special about this dinner,’ you ask? I have not eaten since! Oh sure, maybe you’re fine with fasting for a measly three-and-a-half days, but I’m not! I feel like I haven’t eaten in eight months! So no, Twilight, I will not travel through time. I am getting something to eat, and not you, or anypony else, is getting in my way!” Twilight Sparkle buried her face in her forehooves. “We get it. You are hungry. For Pete’s sake, sometimes you can act like such a newborn.” Leaving one hoof covering her face, she angrily gestured toward the town with her other hoof. “That’s your house right there. Go. Eat. Shaddap.” She looked up just in time to see a rainbow-streaked blur and feel a light gust of wind ruffle her mane. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 1000 AD Rainbow Dash’s House As Pinkie Pie and the friends entered Rainbow Dash’s home, they were greeted by a unholy ruckus. In the kitchen, a cyan rump and rainbow tail were sticking out of one of the cupboards, swaying rhythmically as the front half of the pony gathered up anything remotely edible. Rainbow Dash dumped the stockpile of sundries on the counter, scowling. “Ugh, where the heck does she... Mom! Where do you keep the pasta?!” The ponies heard the sound of shattering glass above them, causing them to instinctively look upward. This sound was promptly followed by the pounding of hooves across the ceiling and down the staircase. A middle-aged pegasus with a faint pink coat crashed onto the staircase landing. Her cutie mark was of a glass prism which was refracting a beam of rainbow light. Her eyes were puffy, and her long-flowing, rainbow-streaked mane was bedraggled. Aurora Glow gasped, “Dash?” Rainbow Dash looked over her shoulder, giving a nonchalant nod. “Sup. I think we’re out of pasta. Do we have any rolls, or maybe some—whoa!” She was knocked off her hooves as her mother flew straight into her, pinning her against the cupboards. Rainbow Dash felt her coat grow damp from a cascade of tears and kisses. “D-don’t you ever do that to me again! You hear me, Rainbow Dash?” said Aurora Glow, heaving between sobs. “They told me you had b-been executed. My sweet, little filly...” Aurora Glow tightened her grip around her daughter’s torso. “I couldn’t bear to lose you, too. Not after... after...” For the first time in three days and twenty hours, Rainbow Dash forgot her hunger. The gnawing feeling in her gut was replaced by a sharp pang in her chest. “Mom...” Hesitating slightly, Rainbow Dash reached up and gently returned her mother’s hug. Mother and daughter held this embrace in silence, as the other ponies in the room looked on. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ The kitchen erupted in laughter. Aurora Glow held her aching sides as she doubled over in a fit of giggles. “Oh, Pinkie Pie,” she said between gasps for air, “you are an absolute riot. I’m sure that these two Serious Sallies are much better off with you in the group, livening things up.” Aurora Glow was in the process of putting together an impressive lunchtime feast in short order. The small kitchen table was piling up high with sandwiches, soup bowls, flower bouquets, fruit salad, potato salad, garden salad, pasta salad (“The pasta was behind the flour, silly.”), wheat fries, whole-grain toast, hay bacon, zucchini bread, and last but certainly not least of all, her infamous peach cobbler. In the meanwhile, Rainbow Dash was putting forth her best effort to devour the dishes as fast as they arrived. Her plate was loaded to capacity with samples of every entree, plus an unfortunate napkin which had been in the wrong place at the wrong time. Foregoing fork and hoof, she buried her face into the food pile, emerging every thirty seconds or so for a quick breath. Pinkie Pie and Twilight Sparkle, while more civilized and self-moderated, had also been fasting for the past few days, so they were more than delighted to take part in the loads of fresh home-cooking. Aurora Glow walked over from the oven, carrying a fresh tray of piping-hot chocolate chip muffins. “How is everything, girls? Fluttershy, I didn’t steam those veggies for too long, did I?” Fluttershy quickly set her plate down when Aurora Glow turned toward her. She had been secretly scraping the contents of her plate onto Rainbow Dash’s when the motherly mare wasn’t looking. “Oh, no no, everything looks wonderful. Thank you so much for working so hard.” “You really did outdo yourself, Mrs. Glow,” agreed Twilight Sparkle with a friendly smile. “You didn’t need to go through so much trouble just for our sake. Still, everything you’ve made is just heavenly.” She reached a hoof out to grab a slice from the loaf of zucchini bread, but quickly withdrew it to avoid getting bitten by Rainbow Dash. The latter pony gave her a deadly glare and a feral growl before inhaling the loaf in a single bite. “Well, everything I’ve been able to try, anyway,” Twilight Sparkle added bitterly. “Oh please, Twilight, you know full well that friends of Rainbow Dash’s are as good as family in this house.” Aurora Glow gave an understanding chuckle. “And besides, with an appetite like this one’s in the family, you learn to buy groceries in bulk.” She returned to the stove top and stirred a tomato soup that was coming to a low boil. “So, Rainbow Dash?” Taking a rare break, Rainbow Dash swallowed all of the food in her mouth and lifted her head fully out of her makeshift trough. She reached for a nearby glass of lemonade. “Yeah, Mom?” Aurora Glow nonchalantly added some herbs and seasonings to the soup. “You never did tell me what the future was like. Anything exciting? Flying carriages and lasers, that sort of thing?” Rainbow Dash pinched the glass between her hooves, carefully lifting it towards her mouth. “Eh, not really. It was actually kinda—ow!” The blow to the back of her head caused her to drop the glass, spilling lemonade down her front side. “What is your problem?” scolded Twilight Sparkle. “Do you seriously not understand the possible ramifications of telling every single pony in the world that we’ve been—” Aurora Glow laughed good-naturedly at the feuding friends. She glanced over her shoulder. “Oh, go easy on her, Twilight. She didn’t tell me anything.” “What? But then, how did you—” She returned to the kitchen table, grinning slyly at each of the four ponies in turn. “She didn’t have to. I mean, after all, when she came back home, she was accompanying the lovely Princess Pinkamena,” she said with a respectful curtsey to Pinkie Pie. Once again, Pinkie Pie coughed and covered her face, dropping her voice an octave. “Princess? Me? I’m just a normal, tax-paying, law-abiding citizen.” Aurora Glow turned her mischievous grin toward Rainbow Dash. “The very same Princess, I might add, whom my daughter was charged with foalnapping.” “Hey! Not guilty! I had a trial and everything.” “This foalnapping took place on the first day of the Celebration,” she continued, winking at Twilight Sparkle. “Your father mentioned there was a minor incident involving mysterious portals.” Twilight Sparkle scrunched up her face and massaged her temples. “Blabbermouths. I’m surrounded by blabbermouths.” “When the trial ended, the lot of you—with your mysterious portal, I might add—disappeared for a few days. Lo and behold, by the time you reappeared, you had made friends with a futuristic-looking robot.” Fluttershy’s body went rigid at the mention of her identity. “Oh, that’s—that is to say, I’m not—you see, this is actually a suit of armor, and—Twilight didn’t... Yes, ma’am,” she said, lowering her gaze. Aurora Glow leaned her elbows onto the kitchen table, resting her head on her hooves. “So like I was saying, Dash, how was the future?” “Oh right, that future,” said Rainbow Dash, rubbing her hoof on the back of her head. “It was, uh, pretty cool. Lots of machinery and cool futury stuff. Oh, and ponies! Tons of ponies. Everypony’s happy. World peace, y’know?” Aurora Glow’s gaze turned sullen and drifted out the kitchen window. “That bad, huh?” Rainbow Dash gave a nervous glance to Pinkie Pie, who met her with a reassuring nod. “Mom, look, I’m sorry, but we can’t stay here. The four of us have something really important that needs to be taken care of, and I’m not gonna sit here and argue with you about—” Aurora Glow leaned across the table and closed her daughter’s mouth with a hoof. She smiled gently. “Heh. Listen to you, getting all fired up. Airy would be so proud of you right now.” “Airy?” asked Pinkie Pie. “Sweet Air,” explained Rainbow Dash. “She was my mom.” Pinkie Pie frowned. She pointed at Aurora Glow and opened her mouth. “My other mom.” “Oh.” Aurora Glow motioned to a framed portrait that hung prominently on the living room wall. In the photograph, a younger Aurora Glow was sitting upright in a bed, cuddling a tiny foal in her forelegs. Standing beside them was a blue pegasus with a blonde mane, short and unkempt. She had a jetlike wisp of cloud for a cutie mark. She was flashing a smug grin at the camera while resting her head lovingly against Aurora Glow’s. One of her eyes was blackened, and her coat was speckled with cuts and scrapes. “Airy was such a loose cannon,” mused Aurora Glow. “Always picking fights, or getting herself hurt, or disappearing for days on end. Despite it all, that mare stole my heart. Curse my youthfulness, I suppose.” She chuckled lightly, but the glistening in her eyes told a different story. “She left this world behind several years ago, but not before leaving me a beautiful daughter. Well, the beauty she inherited from me,” she said with a wink. “Rainbow certainly inherited her mother’s reckless spirit though. No questions there.” “Oh, um, this always confused me, ever so slightly,” said Fluttershy. “I had thought that a stallion and a mare were required for ponies to produce offspring. Yet I always see young ponies who have two fathers or two mothers, and—oh!” She partially hid her face under the lip of the table. “Not that there’s anything wrong with that. I was just curious, is all.” Aurora Glow smirked at Rainbow Dash, as the latter blushed and fidgeted awkwardly. “Well, I guess I can spare you the intimate details for now, but both Airy and I are her biological parents. Suffice it to say, there’s unicorn magic involved.” “I see.” “And that’s my point, Rainbow,” she continued, resting a hoof on her daughter’s shoulder. “You’ll always be my little filly, but at the same time, you’ve got Airy’s blood running in your veins, too. If you’ve got your mind set on some grand adventure, I know that there’s nothing I can do or say to stop you. Just, please, watch out for each other.” Rainbow Dash nuzzled her mother, then flashed her a bold smile. “Don’t you worry about a thing, Mom! The four of us are going to save the world. Just you watch!” Aurora Glow gave her a peck on the cheek. “That’s my girl. Soup!” She raced back to the stove top, where the tomato soup was starting to burn to the bottom of the pot. “We’ve been blabbing too long. Eat your food before it gets cold.” She snickered. “My little warriors will need all the nourishment they can get.” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 1000 AD Equus “Whew! Dashie, can your mom cook, or can your mom cook?” said Pinkie Pie, massaging her bulging belly as she left Rainbow Dash’s house. “That sure hit the spot!” “I’ll say,” agreed Twilight Sparkle. She gave Rainbow Dash an askew glance. “So how about it? Are you done griping about how hungry you are?” Rainbow Dash strolled a few paces behind her friends. The corners of her mouth were upturned in a subtle, blissful smile. She closed her eyes and inhaled the ocean breeze. “Yeah,” she sighed. “I am completely stuffed. Mom’s great.” “She did seem very lovely,” said Fluttershy. “Sweet Air also sounded like she was quite a special pony, the way that your mother talked about her.” “Yeah,” said Rainbow Dash, rubbing the back of neck. “Mom’s told me just about every story there is to tell. Sweet Air sounded like one rocking mare. She got into all sorts of crazy stuff. Truth is, I probably set my sights on joining the Wonderbolts because I wanted to have awesome adventures, just like her. It sucks that I never really got a chance to meet her.” “I was so surprised, though!” exclaimed Pinkie Pie. “I mean, I had no idea that Rainbow Dash had two—” “Anyway, we should be all set here,” said Rainbow Dash. “Ready to hit that Gate, Twi?” “Oh, but don’t all three of you live here?” asked Fluttershy. “We only got to visit Rainbow’s family. Pinkie Pie, would you—” “No.” “Oh, I-I’m sorry,” stuttered Fluttershy. “Well, um, Twilight, what about your family?” She contemplated for a moment. “Actually, yeah, could we stop by for a second? I’d just like to check in on them, make sure that everypony is doing alright.” Fluttershy nodded. “Of course, Twilight! Family is always worth making time for.” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 1000 AD Twilight Sparkle’s House “I’m home!” called out Twilight Sparkle. Night Light looked up from his workbench. “Oh, you’re just in time.” With his horn’s magic, he picked up the helmet he had been working on. Twilight Sparkle smirked and rolled her eyes. “Good to see you too, Dad.” Grinning sheepishly, Night Light walked up to his daughter and gave her a kiss. “Welcome home, sweetie. Now here, try it on! I just know you’ll love this model.” She removed her own hat, replacing it with her father’s newer model. She fidgeted and adjusted the helm, nodding approvingly. “Not bad. The fit’s good.” Night Light puffed out his chest. “Not bad? I’ll have you know that I dropped the weight by fourteen percent, while simultaneously raising the defensive integrity by thirty seven percent.” “Whoa, seriously? How’d you manage that?” “Well, you see, I started with a new alloy, consisting mostly of—” Rainbow Dash rolled her eyes. “So yeah,” she said to Fluttershy and Pinkie Pie. “This here is Egghead Central.” “Nice place!” said Pinkie Pie. Twilight Sparkle’s house was a cluttered mess of knowledge and research. Bookshelves ran along every wall of the living room, holding a vast store of books, tomes, and scrolls. The floor was littered with open notebooks, loose cabling, and a few primitive electronic components. The room served as a workshop and study for both father and daughter. “Oh, that reminds me,” continued Night Light. “Your mother tried your latest batch of Adhoofsive. The tests, ah, didn’t go so well.” Twilight Sparkle slapped her forehead and laughed. “Oh no... It wasn’t Batch #52, was it? That one wasn’t ready for her to test yet.” “Hmm, let’s see here.” Night Light scooped a notebook off the ground and flipped through its pages. Finding the notes he was looking for, he quickly skimmed the page. “Oh dear, sure enough. Well, that explains the poor tests results, doesn’t it?” “Poor Mom, always stuck being our guinea pig,” said Twilight Sparkle with a giggle. “I’m gonna go check on her. Mom? Mom, I’m home!” She trotted into a nearby doorway and vanished up a staircase. Her friends instinctively started to follow her. When they reached the doorway, Rainbow Dash stopped suddenly and held out her forelegs, blocking the other ponies. “Whoa, hold up a sec. Listen.” She pulled her friends closer, checking to ensure that Night Light was out of earshot. “Just wanted to warn you before we head up there. Twilight’s mom is... sick. She’s been stuck in bed, like, ever since the two of us were fillies.” “Oh no,” gasped Fluttershy. “How horrible!” “She’s still super-upbeat and friendly,” Rainbow Dash said with a hesitant smile, “so, y’know, just try to act natural.” With a nod, the three ponies walked up the staircase. Above them, Twilight Sparkle was having a warm reunion with Twilight Wish, her mother. The mare was seated upright in her bed, with her forehooves folded neatly across her lap. An oversized sun hat rested on top of her violet-and-white striped mane. She also wore a simple green sundress over her soft white coat. Pinkie Pie noted with some sadness that Twilight Wish was fully dressed up for a warm summer day, yet was cooped up in her bedroom. “Well, that explains the awful taste,” laughed Twilight Wish. “Sorry, Mom,” said Twilight Sparkle with a blush. “I don’t know how that batch ended up in the testing queue. Don’t worry, though! I have a few new ideas to try, and—” “Twilie, you really should relax. You don’t need to run at a hundred and ten percent all of the time. Oh, Rainbow! What a pleasant surprise.” Rainbow Dash smiled broadly. “Hey, Mrs. Wish. What’s up?” “Oh, you know me.” Twilight Wish smiled peacefully. “Getting plenty of rest.” Rainbow Dash laughed good-naturedly at the joke. “I sure envy that!” “Mom, let me introduce you to some new friends of mine. This is Pinkie Pie and Fluttershy.” “Friends?” Twilight Wish smiled at her daughter before addressing the other ponies. “It’s a pleasure to meet you. Please, do take care of Twilie for me, won’t you?” “Of course!” said Pinkie Pie. “Twilight’s a great friend of ours.” Twilight Sparkle’s face lit up. “Stop it, both of you. You’re embarrassing me. Oh! Mom, let me help you with that.” Twilight Wish’s hooves were grasped around a glass of juice on her nightstand. Her limbs trembled, but the glass remained in place. Twilight Sparkle’s aura surrounded the glass, lifting it toward her mother, who took a small sip from its straw. “Thank you, honey.” Rainbow Dash stepped forward. “About that, Mrs. Wish. The four of us were actually going to be taking a trip, kinda.” “A vacation?” said Twilight Wish. “Oh, that sounds lovely. This summer weather is just perfect for traveling.” Twilight Sparkle walked back toward her friends. “We’ll probably be gone for a few days or so. We’ll be sure to be extra careful, though.” Twilight Wish gently waved farewell. “I know you will, Twilie. Have a fun time!” She looked to her nightstand, where a bright red apple was perched next to her juice glass. “Oh, before you go, could—nevermind, I can reach it.” She leaned out of the bed, reaching toward the apple, but slipped and lost her balance. Her front hooves landed on the ground first, but instantly crumpled under her own weight, causing her to spill out onto the hardwood floor. “Mom!” Twilight Sparkle raced back to the bedside. “I’m fine, I’m fine,” she said reassuringly. “Just got a bit overeager there. I didn’t mean to give you a scare like that.” Pinkie Pie let out a sharp gasp. Realizing her mistake too late, she tried in vain to cover her mouth. Twilight Wish’s sun hat had fallen off her head during the fall. Now that Twilight Wish’s head was exposed, Pinkie Pie could see that her horn had been roughly snapped in half. The jagged horn stub had healed over in time, but its core was still visible to everypony in the room. Twilight Sparkle gently lifted her mother back into the bed. She perched the sun hat back onto her head, and tucked her bedsheets in. Planting a soft kiss on her mother’s cheek, she said, “We need to be heading out. Be sure to get some rest.” “Okay, sweetie. Stay safe,” said Twilight Wish. Twilight Sparkle turned toward the staircase and walked briskly past her friends, avoiding their gazes. When she reached the top of the stairs, her mother called out to her. “Twilie? I’ll always love you. You know that, right?” Without turning back or answering, Twilight Sparkle fled down the staircase. Rainbow Dash rapidly looked between the vacant staircase and the bedridden unicorn. “Twilight! Wait! Um, Mrs. Wish, are you—” Twilight Wish smiled weakly and motioned them towards the staircase. “I’m fine, Rainbow. Please, go after her. She needs her friends right now.” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 1000 AD Equus Twilight Sparkle walked slowly through the streets of Equus. Her friends walked several paces behind her, unsure of what to do or what to say. The only sounds came from nearby Diane Square, where the Millenium Summer Sun Celebration was still running at high capacity. “Twilight?” said Pinkie Pie, finally breaking the silence. “I’m really sorry. I mean, I’m sorry for what happened to your mom, but also I’m sorry for gasping like that.” Twilight Sparkle’s gait slowed. Each hoofstep became more and more labored, until she finally came to a standstill in front of the fairground entrance. “Please don’t be mad at me.” Tears welled up in the corners of Pinkie Pie’s eyes. “It was an accident. Really! I promise, I’ll be on extra-good behavior from now on, so please—” “Recycling,” said Twilight Sparkle. “What?” “A device for use in collecting, shredding, and repurposing matter. In short, a recycling machine. That was the first invention I ever worked on, with my father’s help.” Rainbow Dash tilted her head. “Your first invention? Wait, but you always told me that you didn’t remember.” Twilight Sparkle remained motionless, facing away from her friends. “We ran out of parts at one point, so Dad ran out to the markets. It was just Mom and I in the house. I wanted to show off how much work we’d done so far. I was so proud.” “Oh no,” whispered Pinkie Pie. “Mom got caught in the machine’s thrasher. It snapped both of her forelegs… and her horn. Her legs have regained a bit of strength over time, thanks to the doctors’ help. Her horn, though… you can’t heal damage like that.” “Twilight,” whimpered Fluttershy. “The best part?” said Twilight Sparkle with a hollow laugh. “When the whole ordeal was over, we realized that this had appeared during all of the chaos.” She reached back and tapped her flank with a hoof. “As if I didn’t feel responsible enough for failing to stop the machine, fate decided that I had earned my cutie mark for my stellar understanding of technology.” She wiped a hoof across her eyes before turning to face her friends. Her face was darkened and determined. “That’s when I swore to myself that it would never happen again. I refused to ever find myself again in a situation where my own ineptitude caused another pony to get hurt. So, that’s why I study everything. Why I invent. Why I don’t give up in the face of impossible odds. Because if knowing Sugardia law will help save one of my friends… If a hoof adhesive will make somepony’s life easier… If a crazy time travelling mission will save countless lives in the future…” Fluttershy stepped forward, reaching out to hug her, but Twilight Sparkle turned away at the last moment. “Sorry, I… I’m fine,” Twilight Sparkle said. “I just needed to get that off my chest. Anyway, time travelling or no, Nightmare Moon won’t wait forever. Time to head back in time.” She galloped forward into the fairgrounds. Pinkie Pie and Fluttershy made to follow her, but stopped when they realized they were missing somepony. “Rainbow Dash?” asked Pinkie Pie. “What’s up? Aren’t you coming?” Rainbow Dash’s mouth hung agape. Her eyes bore shrunken irises which stared vacantly at her fleeing friend. “She… she never told me. We’ve known each other our whole lives, and she never told me.” * * * Chapter 19: Pushing Forward 1000 AD Diane’s Square—Telepod “Wowwie, I can’t believe the Celebration is still this busy!” said Pinkie Pie. She eagerly bounced about the different displays of the fairgrounds as they tickled each of her senses. She stepped up to one of the vendors, purchased a bag of kettle corn, and munched away at it. Having a mouthful of food didn’t deter her from vocalizing her exuberance. “I mean, I’m not surprised it’s still going on, or anything. After all, I was helping Scratchy plan the whole thing, so I know that it’s supposed to last for another couple of weeks. ‘The thousandth anniversary of the founding of such a grand kingdom comes only once,’ I told her, ‘so we better throw one crazy, over-the-top, knock-your-socks-off party-ganza-bration!’ And lemme tell ya, this turned out...” Her voice faded out of range as she continued her “royal assessment” of the festivities. “Oh dear. Pinkie Pie? Come back, please,” said Fluttershy. “We’re just about ready to leave.” She quickly trotted after the bouncing mare. Twilight Sparkle and Rainbow Dash stepped up to the Telepod’s display. While the device was inactive—neglected since its earlier demonstration—its new primary function was still intact. A small, fluctuating anomaly sat in the center of the display, guarding a pathway to four hundred years into the past. Twilight Sparkle slowly fished around in her saddlebags for the Gate Key. Rainbow Dash stood a few paces behind her, stone-faced. After stalling for what she deemed to be an unreasonable amount of time, Twilight Sparkle closed her saddlebags. “You’re awfully quiet,” she said tersely. “Is there anything you’d like to say to me?” Rainbow Dash grunted. Twilight Sparkle rubbed one foreleg across the back of her other. “Anything at all?” “I was thinking about it,” said Rainbow Dash after a pause, “and your mom is right. Maybe we should take a vacation. Maybe we should, I don’t know, go mountain climbing?” Twilight Sparkle whirled around, glaring daggers at Rainbow Dash. The pegasus returned an equally hostile look. “I—You—That—” Twilight Sparkle stuttered, too enraged to form a cohesive thought. “How dare you!” Rainbow Dash yelled in her face. “Keeping secrets from me this whole time... I deserved to know the truth!” She stomped her hooves. Twilight Sparkle’s eyes teared up. “What?” she shouted. “You think I owed you the truth?” “Didn’t you?” she snapped. “Oh, well forgive me,” yelled Twilight Sparkle. “Next time my life falls apart, I’ll be sure to focus on how that affects you first!” “Sorry, girls,” said Fluttershy. She and Pinkie Pie trotted up to the Telepod’s exhibit. “Pinkie Pie got a bit ahead of me, but now we can—” She glanced between the two rage-filled faces before her. “Oh my goodness, what’s wrong?” Twilight Sparkle spun around, facing the closed Gate. “Nothing,” she said. Her voice rang hollow. “Nothing is wrong. Let’s go.” She swung the Gate Key in front of her, tearing apart the fabric of space-time. She quickly trotted into the purple portal. “Oh, I s-see,” stuttered Fluttershy. She slowly followed after Twilight Sparkle. Pinkie Pie held out a plate. “Hey Rainbow Dash, I found a funnel cake vendor! You want some?” “I’m not hungry.” Rainbow Dash stepped into the Gate and disappeared. “Oh. Alrighty then! More for me.” Pinkie Pie inhaled the rest of the fried treat before following her friends through the gateway. With all four ponies safely inside, the Gate sealed behind them. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ The End of Time “Hello!” From down the pathway, underneath his lamp post, The Doctor waved energetically to the four ponies, wearing his usual smile. Pinkie Pie gasped sharply. “Oh no! Now we’ve really gone and done it.” She clutched her head and trembled. “We were trying to travel back in time, but we didn’t travel back to 600 AD; we traveled back in our own timeline, back to when we first arrived in the End of Time and met The Doctor!” Without a word, Twilight Sparkle turned and stepped into a column of light on the opposite corner of the platform. The white beam shot her skyward, hurling her into a different point in the space-time continuum. “Twilight!” Fluttershy called out. “W-wait for us, please.” She quickly trotted over to the same column and hopped inside, traveling after her friend. “Wait!” Pinkie Pie protested. “You’ll just keep going further and further back into our own past! First Magno Dome, then the trial, then Manerial Abbey. If you keep going, you’ll end up traveling back to before we met each other!” Rainbow Dash snorted and glared out into the abyss. “Fine by me. Let ‘em go.” The door behind the lamp post swung open. Trixie poked her head through the doorway, cackling with glee. “Oh, this is too rich. The Great and Powerful Trixie sets you on your way with all of the tools you could ever need, and a few hours later, your little rag-tag group is already falling apart. How utterly tragic.” The Doctor gave Trixie an admonishing look. “Now, Trixie, let’s try to stay civil when we have guests.” Trixie turned her nose skyward, while The Doctor trotted to Pinkie Pie’s platform. “No, my dear, it’s nothing as far-fetched as you’re theorizing there. I just saw fit to detour you momentarily.” “Oh whew,” sighed Pinkie Pie. “So we can still get back to 600 AD?” “Weren’t you listening to a thing that foolish stallion told you?” said Trixie. With a burst of silvery light, she disappeared from her doorway, reappearing mere centimeters from Pinkie Pie’s face. “This is the hub for your time travels. Now that you’ve used that Gate, you can travel from here to any other Gate you’ve visited.” “Ah, yes, quite right, Ms. Great and Powerful,” said The Doctor as he gently nudged her to the side. “All of your Gates will lead here now. Much more convenient, I’d say. Plus, I’d be more than happy to offer my advice and expertise, where I can.” “Oh. Neat!” cheered Pinkie Pie. “Well, let’s see... Ooo, we figured out who made Lavos. It was Nightmare Moon!” The Doctor’s eyes bulged. “Made Lavos? Heavens, I had no idea. And you said it was Nightmare Moon, was it? That was that, ahm,” he said, tapping his hoof against his chin, “that crazy one. Middle Ages. Led a whole country of Mystics against ponykind.” He shrugged. “Afraid I can’t tell you much more than that. Far as I can tell, she just appeared one day, out of nowhere. Still, that’s quite odd. I mean, if Lavos was created in the Middle Ages...” He shook his head. “Ah well. It’ll all make sense in the end, I’m sure. Always does.” Pinkie Pie grinned. “Sounds good! We’ll be sure to come back and visit soon. C’mon, Dashie!” With that, the two friends stepped into the column of light and drifted up into the air. “Best of luck to you!” said The Doctor as he waved farewell. “Try not to lose in too humiliating a fashion.” “Trixie! Honestly now, we ought to be helping them.” “What? The Great and Powerful Trixie simply wanted them to keep their dignity intact when they inevitably fail.” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 600 AD Sugardia Castle The pair of guards at the castle’s front entrance snapped to attention. “Ah, milady,” said one, “what an honor to see you once again.” “I am so sick of that self-centered little brat!” Twilight Sparkle yelled as she trotted past the guards. “You don’t say,” muttered the guard under his breath. “Twilight!” gasped a mortified Fluttershy. “You can’t possibly mean that. Rainbow Dash is your very best friend.” “Oh yes, my best friend,” she said with a derisive laugh. “I sure know how to pick ‘em. That arrogant, ostentatious—” “Lady Twilight Sparkle?” “—narcissistic braggart!” Chancellor Octavia huffed. “Well.” Twilight Sparkle gasped, racing toward the verbally-wounded Chancellor. “Oh my goodness, I’m so sorry, Madam Chancellor, I didn’t see you there, and I definitely wasn’t directing that name-calling at you, it’s just that I was—” She held up a hoof, silencing Twilight Sparkle. “Time, Lady Twilight, is a precious commodity which we have nearly exhausted. You are to have an audience with the Queen and King immediately. This way.” She trotted into the castle proper, passing through the throne room. “We will?” asked Fluttershy. “Wonderful. After all, that’s why we’re here.” The two ponies followed after the Chancellor at a respectable distance. Once out of earshot, Twilight Sparkle leaned in and hissed a continuation of her rant. “I mean, do you have any idea how hard that was? Nopony knew the truth about what happened that day, aside from my family and the doctors. When anypony asked, Dad would just give a hoof-waving story about some terrible fall while mountain-climbing. So a decade later, when I’m finally ready to tell the complete truth, in the company of my closest friends, what happens? That fricking egotist makes it all about herself! Sure, she’s hardly the most empathetic pony, but even for her, that was just... just... urgh!” She bolted ahead, following the Chancellor up the staircase to the Queen’s chamber. Fluttershy held a hoof to her face. “Oh dear,” she said to herself. “This is even worse than I thought.” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 600 AD Equus “Oh no,” said Pinkie Pie. “What happened here? Everypony is so... flat.” The villagers of Equus slumped on the lawns in front of their homes, staring vacantly at one another. The lawns themselves were trimmed down to the soil; nary a blade of grass remained in sight. A heavy sense of dread and hopelessness hung in the air. The scene looked all too familiar to the two ponies. “This is just like the future, isn’t it?” Rainbow Dash muttered rhetorically. She strode up to one of the townsponies. “Hey. What’s wrong with everypony?” Groaning lightly, the unicorn stallion replied, “No food... Those demonic Mystics destroyed all of our food. There’s no hope left for us.” “Ack!” cried Pinkie Pie. She leapt to Rainbow Dash’s side, quickly covering her friend’s ears with her hooves. “Don’t listen to them, Dashie. Plenty of food here! We definitely did not just travel back into an era with no food.” “Wait, is that her? Lady Rainbow Dash? Is it really you?!” Ignoring Pinkie Pie’s antics, Rainbow Dash turned to the pony who addressed her. “What do you want?” The Sugardian knight grinned. “It is! It is you, Lady Rainbow Dash! Oh, fortune clearly smiles on us. Please, for the sake of all of Sugardia, I beg of you: help us in our hour of need!” “I said, what do you want?” He gulped. “F-forgive me, milady. I’ll get right to the point. Nightmare Moon’s forces are on the offensive. The Zebran Bridge is about to fall. It’s our last line of defense; if it falls, Sugardia Castle itself is next.” He motioned to the despondent townsponies. “I had returned to Equus to gather any able-bodied ponies to bolster our defense. Instead, I find the heroic Lady Rainbow Dash herself! The mare who saved our—” “You need me to chop up some bad guys. Got it.” With a crack of her neck, Rainbow Dash marched past the knight. From overhead, Pinkie Pie bounced into view, blocking Rainbow Dash’s path. She frowned at her friend. “What’s gotten into you, Rainbow Dash? You don’t sound like yourself at all.” “What’s gotten into me?” Rainbow Dash shot her a venomous glare, causing her to cringe. “In case you didn’t notice, I just found out that my lifelong friend didn’t trust me enough to tell me the truth about how her mom got hurt. I just found out this so-called friend has been lying to me for ten years. I just found out that, apparently, out friendship isn’t as important as I thought.” Rainbow Dash took to the air, racing ahead toward the battle at Zebran Bridge. “So excuse me for being pissy!” Pinkie Pie wilted as she watched her friend disappear into the distance. “Rainbow Dash...” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 600 AD Sugardia Castle—Queen Diane’s Chamber Twilight Sparkle and Fluttershy opened the door to Queen Diane’s private chamber, pushing their way past the bustling chambermaids and frantic nurses. Chancellor Octavia led them in, working her way to the center of the room where the 21st King of Sugardia was pacing back and forth. After a brief whispered exchange, the King turned toward the two ponies, wearing a warm smile. “Lady Twilight! Your arrival in such a dark hour is a most fortuitous omen.” The two ponies bowed respectfully to the King. “Your Majesty,” said Twilight Sparkle, “please forgive our sudden disappearance and reappearance. We’ve come seeking your assistance with putting a stop to Nightmare Moon.” The King relaxed his shoulders. “Oh, most fortuitous indeed. Once more, the kingdom will forever be in your debt. Alas, we cannot be of much assistance.” He gestured to the south with a dramatic sweep of his hoof. “Even as we speak, Nightmare Moon’s forces threaten to breach our last line of defense. Our country’s foodstores have been ravaged. Truly, our fighting forces are nearing their breaking point.” “Your Majesty, Sir?” said Fluttershy. “You said that your food was ‘ravaged’?” King Sugardia closed his eyes. “Over the course of the war, our food supplies had been dwindling at an alarming rate. We always assumed it was natural attrition due to our war efforts. However, we recently discovered the truth: parasprites.” “Oh dear,” Fluttershy said. “Parasprites are certainly known for their voracious appetites. Getting an infestation now, of all times, is quite misfortunate.” “I’m afraid you misunderstand, miss,” said Chancellor Octavia. “It is no mere coincidence. We have evidence that the parasprites were intentionally sent to us by Nightmare Moon in an attempt to starve us out.” Fluttershy reeled backwards, clutching her chest as if struck. “She what? That’s horrible... No, it’s downright evil. Without food, everypony will starve to death. Not just the knights, but the innocent townsponies and their little foals. How could anypony do something as despicable as destroying food?” From the back of the room, a quiet voice replied, “Such is the extent of Nightmare Moon’s evil ways.” King Sugardia’s regal facade cracked as soon as the voice spoke. He turned quickly and strode in the direction of the voice. As Fluttershy and Twilight Sparkle followed behind, they were shocked to find Queen Diane resting in her bed. Bandages were wrapped tightly around her torso and left foreleg. A small team of doctors bustled above her bedside, attending to her injuries and conferencing amongst themselves. “Oh no!” gasped Fluttershy. “Your Highness, what has happened to you?” Queen Diane smiled weakly. “I thank you for your concern, companion of Lady Twilight. I will be fine.” Her expression hardened as she looked out of her window to the open countryside. “When the defenses at the Zebran Bridge began to falter, I took up my blade and joined the front lines.” “What?!” shouted Twilight Sparkle. “But Queen Diane, that’s so reckless. You could have been seriously—” Her jaw snapped shut as a pair of purple eyes glared at her, centimeters from her face. Chancellor Octavia’s voice was colder than ice. “You will do well,” she hissed, “to watch your tone when addressing Her Majesty The Queen.” The Queen rested a hoof gently on the Chancellor’s side. “It is alright, Octavia. Lady Twilight is correct, after all. I was injured due to my own carelessness. While I would gladly lay down my life to protect the country I love, it would not be prudent for Sugardia to lose her ruler in a time such as this.” King Sugardia stepped forward. “Please, Lady Twilight, I must call upon your heroism once more. Will you drive back the forces at Zebran Bridge, and put a stop to Nightmare Moon?” Twilight Sparkle saluted. “We’ll do our best. After all, the fate of the future is at stake.” The King nodded. “Well said. Before you leave, I would ask that you check in with the kitchen staff. They should be working on putting together what little food remains for the knights on the front lines.” “Got it!” “Oh, and Lady Twilight? One other task for you,” said Queen Diane. “Should you reach the other side of the bridge, it would be prudent of you to seek out the legendary hero.” Fluttershy and Twilight Sparkle shared a look. “The legendary hero, Your Highness?” The Queen nodded. “Yes. The bearer of the Hero’s Medal!” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 600 AD Zebran Bridge Firefly landed heavily on the bridge, dropping her broadsword beside herself. Her wing muscles burned from the strain of one too many acrobatic maneuvers. “Fall back!” she yelled to some nearby knights. “Don’t let them draw you out of position. We must hold this bridge at all costs.” She panted for breath. Ponyfeathers... Even barking orders is leaving me winded. Though, this scratch isn’t doing me any favors, either. Firefly held a hoof against her bleeding side, where an unlucky arrow had found a gap in her armor. “Oh no! You’re hurt?” Pinkie Pie quickly leapt to the pegasus’s side, holding her hooves against the injury. “Don’t worry, Firefly. You’ll be fit as a fiddle in a flash!” “My thanks, Pinkie,” said Firefly. She winced lightly as Pinkie Pie pressed against the injury, but she still managed an appreciative smile. “You and Lady Rainbow arrived not a moment too soon. My troops are nearing exhaustion. With the two of you breathing new life into the fight, we just might make it through.” She blinked, and looked down at her side. “What in Sugardia? My wound is healed! What manner of sorcery was that, Pinkie Pie?” She giggled and rolled her eyes. “Aww c’mon, we’ve been over this already! Like I said last time, it’s not like I’m able to cast magical healing spells or anything like that.” She looked down at her hooves. Sparkles of crystal-blue magic spun around them, casting a gentle warming glow onto Firefly’s hide. “Oh. I guess I can, now. My bad!” Firefly stared at the magical glow. “That’s amazing,” she whispered. “I had thought only Mystics were capable of these types of magic. Yet here you are: an earth pony who is able to rival their powers. I wouldn’t believe it if I wasn’t seeing with my own two eyes.” She and Pinkie Pie turned their gazes further down the bridge. “And of course, this is saying nothing about your companion.” At the center of the bridge, wave after wave of Mystic soldiers crashed helplessly against the unstoppable fury of Rainbow Dash’s attacks. She leapt over a charging ogre, gashing its backside. She landed in front of a pair of gargoyles, who spread out in a feeble attempt to flank her. As they flew toward her with a flurry of spinning kicks, she retaliated with a spin of her own. Her Cyclone strike ended the gargoyles before they could cry out. Seizing the opportunity, a half-dozen imps rushed the pegasus. They were met by a wave of Rainbow Dash’s electrical currents, which sent them flying off the side of the bridge and into the ocean below. Pinkie Pie bit her lip. “Poor Rainbow Dash.” “Poor her? More like poor demons,” laughed Firefly. “Pardon the pun, but she’s downright electric out there. The soddy monsters don’t stand a chance.” Her eyes turned upward as she lost herself in thought. With a smirk, she added, “Y’know, between your magic, and the legendary hero’s blade, the three of you just might be able to stop Nightmare Moon on your own!” Pinkie Pie’s eyes dilated. She grabbed ahold of Firefly, assaulting her with words. “Great galloping gumdrops! There’s another hero? That’s totally awesome! I mean, we’ve got the four of us already, but you can never have too many heroes, and you can never ever have too many friends. You gotta tell me everything about her. What’s her name? What’s she like? What’s her favorite jelly bean flavor? Oops, I mean, is she even a she, or is she a he? Totally made an assumption there, my bad. But seriously! I’ve only just heard about this legendary hero and I already can’t wait to meet her!” Firefly laughed, gently prying herself out of Pinkie Pie’s grip. “Easy, milady. Save that energy for fighting Nightmare Moon. Anyway, yes, a legendary hero. You know how these things go: an ancient legend about a hero saving Sugardia in its darkest hour. He’ll wear a medal representing his courage, wield an ancient blade with no equal, and such. Just some silly fairy tale you tell the foals at bedtime.” Pinkie Pie nodded energetically. “Yep! Sounds pretty standard to me.” Firefly trotted over and retrieved her discarded broadsword. “Except, as fate would have it, this fairy tale just might come true. A colt arrived at Sugardia Castle yesterday. Not only does he possess the Hero’s Medal, but he claims that he will find the legendary blade and strike down Nightmare Moon!” “Hmm.” Pinkie Pie rubbed her chin. “That does sound like it would fulfill the prophecy. So where is this hero now?” “Well, he wanted to head back to South Zebran in order to search for the blade.” A clap of thunder rolled out from the center of the bridge, where Rainbow Dash was single-hoofedly keeping the advancing army at bay. Firefly grimaced. “That was right about the time when this battle broke out. It was all we could do to sneak the hero and his friend across the bridge. We took a fair number of injuries for our efforts.” She sighed. “It burns me that my Bolt Knights can’t do more to protect the country, but it looks like we have no other choice but to rely on heroes like you and him.” “Hey! Don’t sell yourself short!” Pinkie Pie smiled at Firefly. “I’m sure your knights have sacrificed so much, just to keep everypony safe. If it wasn’t for you gals, Sugardia would’ve fallen way before now. Just because you’re getting a little bit of help doesn’t mean that everything you’ve done up until now is meaningless! You should be proud of all that you’ve done.” Firefly weakly returned Pinkie Pie’s smile. “You’re far too kind, Pinkie.” Her smile vanished when she turned to look at her recovering knights. “Still, even with you and Lady Rainbow, my troops are beyond their limits. They will not survive much longer without being fed. Where in the blazes is Medley with those rations?” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 600 AD Sugardia Castle—Mess Hall Medley glared at the two ponies who had intruded into her kitchen. “So, let me guess,” she said, staring down at a cowering Fluttershy. “That dumb jerk, Firefly, sent you, demanding more rations.” Fluttershy squeaked. “N-n-no, you see, we were actually sent here by—” “Because let me tell you something: that idiot thinks of nopony except herself!” Twilight Sparkle rolled her eyes. Seems to be a lot of that going around today. Medley turned toward the kitchen, where a small team of chefs were hard at work with the last of the ingredients. She addressed a mare who was attending to a stew on the stovetop. “Cotton Candy, that’s still too thick. Water it down some more.” “It’s practically just water at this point,” said Cotton Candy, shrugging in protest. “There’s no way that this will fill anypony up.” “We don’t have a choice,” retorted Medley. She partially turned to Twilight Sparkle and Fluttershy, addressing them as much as she was addressing her cook. “With the parasprites in full effect, there’s simply not enough food to go around. We’ve got knights, civilians, patients, and foals to feed. Some ponies are going to be hungry; there’s no avoiding that. We just need to keep everypony from starving to death for as long as we can. Certain ponies need to understand that they are not the center of the universe, and that sometimes the needs of others are more important.” Twilight Sparkle smiled and nodded. “You’re quite right, miss. Sorry to have disturbed you. Best of luck to you.” Medley and Twilight Sparkle turned away, respectively heading to the kitchen and the exit. Fluttershy rose to her hooves and chased after Twilight Sparkle. “Please, Twilight, won’t you give Rainbow Dash a second chance?” Twilight Sparkle locked her jaw. “I’ve been giving her second chances ever since we met. She’s somewhere near her twenty thousandth chance. And this wasn’t something silly like an overdue loan or a forgotten birthday; I revealed a secret that I’ve kept bottled up for a decade, and yet Rainbow completely disregarded my feelings! Sorry, but I’m going to need a halfway-decent apology from her before I’ll even consider forgiving her this time.” “I don’t think that she did disregard your feelings, though. I think that, in her own way, Rainbow Dash is showing you just how much she cares about you.” Twilight Sparkle froze in her tracks at the base of the stairwell leading up to the ground floor. She cocked her head back. “I’m sorry, but... what? She’s caring about herself. How does that translate into caring about me?” “I’m sorry. Perhaps I’m misunderstanding the situation.” Fluttershy shifted her weight from hoof to hoof. “It’s just that, well, Rainbow Dash clearly seemed so angry. Could it be that she was angry, not because she felt entitled to know the truth, but because she had wanted to be there for you at a difficult time in your life?” Twilight Sparkle opened her mouth to interject, but Fluttershy took a step forward and quickly continued her theory. “She may have a different way of showing her feelings, but she definitely feels just as strongly about your friendship as you do. At least, that’s what I believe.” “I dunno, Fluttershy. It seems like you’re giving her too much credit. I mean, if you think about this week alone, she... well...” Twilight Sparkle turned away. As she closed her eyes, a slideshow of memories played against her eyelids. The day before the Millennial Summer Sun Celebration. Rainbow and I are eating at a cafe. She just agreed to help with the demonstration of my invention. She’ll probably end up oversleeping or forgetting. Still, it’s the same day as her plans to audition with—or at least field-rush—the Wonderbolts. That was awfully generous of her... Magno Dome. Fluttershy is in pieces, strewn all over the floor. I want to repair her so badly, but I can’t; it’s just not possible. And yet, there’s Rainbow Dash. Hugging me. Telling me not to give up. She has no clue how feasible or infeasible the task actually is, and yet I trust her when she tells me to believe in myself... Our prison cell in Sugardia Castle. We’re scheduled to never see another sunrise. Rainbow Dash couldn’t care less. Not only is she plotting our escape plan, but she’s taking the time to assure me that I haven’t ruined my chances of being Pinkie’s friend. It’s totally not the time for a conversation like that, but regardless she’s keeping me from giving up... A slow sigh escaped from deep within Twilight Sparkle’s chest. “Okay, okay. She really does care about our friendship.” Her head jerked upright. “But that still doesn’t justify her attitude from today! If she does care, then why was she acting like a Grade A jerk?” “Hey, wait up.” Twilight Sparkle and Fluttershy turned around in time to see Medley flying over from the kitchen. She landed in front of the two ponies, dropping a small package at their hooves. She silently glared at the wall. Twilight Sparkle lifted the package and peeked inside. “Wait. Medley, are these apple turnovers? I thought that we were in the middle of a famine. How did you—” “You tell that idiot,” said Medley, continuing to avoid eye contact, “that everypony is counting on her. So, she better not do something stupid, like die on me. You got that?” Before either pony could reply, Medley raced back into the kitchen. Twilight Sparkle held her hoof against her closed eyes. “Yes. Yes, I get it.” Raising her head, she motioned to Fluttershy. “C’mon. Let’s go find Dash.” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 600 AD Zebran Bridge “Come on!” yelled Rainbow Dash. She dived down from the cloud cover into the fray on the bridge. Her blade sliced through the row of naga with almost no resistance. “Is that the best you’ve got?” She raised her hoof overhead. It crackled and surged with magically-summoned voltage. As she brought her hoof down, the bolt of lightning leapt from foe to foe, causing the rest of the enemy squadron to collapse into a fit of spasms. “I thought you guys were supposed to be tough!” she screamed. “Well, news flash: you’re not! Why don’t you send a real competitor down here to fight me? Ack!” She yelped as a creature tackled her from behind. “I don’t care what you say, Dashie,” said Pinkie Pie as she tightly clung to the pegasus. “I’m gonna keep hugging ya until you’re your old self again!” “Pinkie, let go!” rebuked Rainbow Dash. She futilely attempted to shake herself free from Pinkie Pie’s grip. “There’ll be more monsters here any minute.” “No! You’re clearly not okay, Dashie.” Pinkie Pie’s eyes misted over. She swung around Rainbow Dash’s neck, hanging underneath the other mare and looked up imploringly at her. “I just can’t stand by and watch you suffer by yourself like this!” “Suffer? What, you mean that thing with Twi?” Rainbow Dash snorted. “Whatever. I’m totally over that already.” Pinkie Pie frowned. “Are not! You’re getting meaner and meaner by the minute! Can’t you find it in your heart to forgive her?” “Forgive her?!” yelled Rainbow Dash. “After she threw our friendship in the garbage? That is so not going to happen.” “You’ve got it all wrong. She does too care about you. I mean, why do you think you were one of the first ponies she told that story to?” “Yeah, ten years later.” “Dashieee, c’mooon,” groaned Pinkie Pie, throwing her head back. “Can you please give her a break? She’s had a really rough week.” “All of us have!” Rainbow Dash shouted. She flailed her hooves, nearly losing her balance due to Pinkie Pie’s added weight. “It’s not like she’s had more of a—” Manerial Abbey. Twilight collapses into a fit of bitter tears. She’s talking about how she wishes she could be more helpful, but she’s too terrified of all the creepy-crawlies in the abbey. Idiot. Doesn’t she know that just being here is enough... “Well, okay, maybe she’s had it slightly worse than the rest of us, but it’s not like I was treating her—” My trial in Sugardia Castle. She’s all bleary-eyed, and scatterbrained, and talking about being my laywer. Why is she even here? When did she even have time to learn about law? It’s a dumb plan, and I tell her so. She smiles at me... “Y-yeah, well... but I didn’t...” Barngor Dome. We just escaped from prison. I’m trying to use Twi’s tools to free us from the shackles. I’m standing over her, ready to cut her shackle, and she’s completely losing her shit, screaming like a little foal. What’s her problem, anyway? I’m not a klutz. Why’s she crying that I’m going to accidentally cut her horn off... The contents of Rainbow Dash’s stomach did a somersault. She hung her head low, staring unfocused at the wood beneath her hooves. A low groan vibrated from the back of her throat. “I really screwed up, huh? Guess I needa go find Twi and say I’m sorry.” Pinkie Pie smiled gently. She lifted Rainbow Dash’s head and pointed it toward the end of the bridge. “Why don’t you tell her now?” At the knight’s camp, Twilight Sparkle and Fluttershy were conversing with Firefly. Firefly peered into a box that had been set at her hooves. She looked off toward Sugardia Castle on the horizon and smiled, before grabbing the box in her mouth and carrying it toward her resting troops. Fluttershy noticed the two friends in the middle of the bridge. She nudged Twilight Sparkle, who quickly spun to face Rainbow Dash. They trotted toward each other, slowly coming to a standstill on the near end of the bridge. “Hi,” said Twilight Sparkle. Her cheeks were glowing a light hue of pink. “Sup,” replied Rainbow Dash. Her eyes drifted to the Sugardian camp behind her friends. “Is that a package of food? I thought they were all out.” “Yeah. Long story.” Twilight Sparkle leaned to her side, curiously examining her friends. “Is Pinkie Pie sitting on your back and hugging you?” “Long story.” The battlefield fell silent. The fighting on the bridge had stopped. “I should start by—” “Look, Twi, about—” The two friends paused, awkwardly motioning for each other to go first. “I should start by apologizing,” Twilight Sparkle eventually said. “I had been feeding you a bogus story about a mountain climbing accident for the past ten years. You had every right to be mad at me for keeping such a big secret.” “No way!” Rainbow Dash rushed up to her side. “I was being a huge jerk. That must’ve been super-hard for you to tell me, and I wasn’t empa... empath...” She rapidly shook her head. “I wasn’t sensitive enough to how you felt.” She stared down at the bridge, tapping her hoof lightly against it. “I’m real sorry, Twi.” Pinkie Pie gave Rainbow Dash an extra squeeze for good measure, then leapt off her back and trotted to the side of the bridge, watching the scene unfold with Fluttershy. Twilight Sparkle grinned sheepishly. “So, still friends?” Rainbow Dash tried to mask her emotions with her traditional cavalier grin. “Duh.” The two childhood friends embraced. In an instant, their anger and resentment melted away. Deep in their hearts, they knew that nothing could ever destroy the bonds of their friendship. “Aww. What a tender moment,” said a voice from the far end of the bridge. “Not!” added a second. “If y’all two are done bein’ sappy now,” said a third, “maybe we could git back to the matter at hoof.” The friends turned toward the unfamiliar voices. Standing boldly in the middle of the bridge were a trio of young mares, wearing menacing grins and long, crimson capes. They were spread out across the bridge, preventing anypony from passing them. The four friends trotted up to meet the three peculiar ponies. “Hi there!” said Pinkie Pie. She waved to the new faces. “My name’s Pinkie Pie. Who’re you?” She gasped as an idea struck her. “Hey, wait a minute. Are the three of you friends with the legendary hero?” The three young mares howled with laughter. “Heroes? Us?” said a yellow earth pony with a bright red mane. “‘Fraid you’re mistaken.” “We’re the total opposite of heroes,” squeaked a white unicorn with a two-tone mane. “For you see—” An orange pegasus with a purple mane charged to the front of the group. “You’re looking at Nightmare Moon’s newest generals.” Twilight Sparkle did a double-take. “You three are working for Nightmare Moon?” Triple-take. “Generals?! But you’re so young. And why would ponies like you be working for the bad guys?” “Scootaloo,” scolded the earth pony, “we’re not all generals. Only Sweetie Belle gits to be one.” “Whaaat?” whined Scootaloo. “No fair. Why is Sweetie Belle a general if we’re not?” “Because,” said the unicorn, “Nightmare Moon said so. Besides, I’m the one who came up with the idea a few days ago, remember? So it’s only fair that I get to be the leader.” Quadruple-take. “They became generals in the war against Sugardia just a few days ago?” Twilight Sparkle hissed to Rainbow Dash. “This doesn’t add up.” “You two can get ranks too, though,” continued Sweetie Belle. “Nightmare Moon didn’t say that I couldn’t promote anypony, anyway.” She rubbed her chin thoughtfully. “Apple Bloom, you can be... oh! You can be my captain!” “Captain Apple Bloom?” She grinned. “Ha! That’s got a ring to it.” “And Scootaloo, you can be my... my, um...” Sweetie Belle stared vacantly out across the ocean. “What other ranks are there, anyway?” Her two friends joined her in racking their brains. Rainbow Dash sighed. “Okay. Seriously? Do we need to be here for this? We kinda need to get across, so if you three could just—” “Ooo!” shouted Sweetie Belle, her voice cracking into an upper octave. “I know. Scootaloo, you can be my private!” Scootaloo’s face turned dark red. She snapped her hooves upward to cover her open mouth. “Sweetie Belle!” she gasped. “Huh?” Apple Bloom rolled her eyes. “She doesn’t mean like that, you nincompoop. A ‘private’ is a kind of military rank.” “Right,” said Sweetie Belle with a nod. “Why? What did Scootaloo think I meant?” “It’s too low of a rank, though,” mused Apple Bloom. “Maybe she could be a sergeant?” “Sergeant Scootaloo? Nice,” she cheered. “Thanks, Apple Bloom.” “No problem!” Rainbow Dash shook her head. “Right.” She motioned for her friends to follow. “C’mon. Let’s just slip past while they’re busy doing whatever it is that they’re—” The three young mares leapt back into their original positions, blockading the bridge. They reared up on their hind legs and excitedly flailed their forelegs. “Sergeant Scootaloo!” “Cap’n Apple Bloom!” “And General Sweetie Belle! Together, the three of us are—” “CUTIE MARK CRUSADER LEADERS OF THE MYSTIC ARMY! YAY!” Pinkie Pie massaged her ears, trying to get them to stop ringing. “Ow,” she groaned. Rainbow Dash tilted her head. “Wait, what exactly is that supposed to mean? Cutie Mark Crusaders?” “The three of us ’re on a mission,” said Apple Bloom. “We’re traveling the world, trying our hooves at everything,” said Scootaloo, flaring her wings. “Including serving the almighty Nightmare Moon, of course.” “And we’re going to keep at it until we all discover our special talents,” Sweetie Belle said, puffing out her chest, “and earn our cutie marks!” Rainbow Dash, Twilight Sparkle, and Pinkie Pie exchanged confused glances with each other. Their eyes shifted from one another, to the three young mares, and back again. Fluttershy’s servos hummed lightly as she stepped toward her friends. “Um, I’m sorry, everypony. I think I’m missing something. Did they say something odd?” Rainbow Dash leaned to the side, trying to get a better look at the Cutie Mark Crusaders. “Meh, no good,” she muttered. “Their capes are too long. I can’t tell.” “You see, Fluttershy,” explained Twilight Sparkle, “ponies typically earn their cutie marks when they’re fillies or colts. There isn’t a set age, per se; it can happen somewhere in a three-year span or thereabouts. But—” Pinkie Pie hopped to the front of the pack. “You girls are, like, only a few years younger than us, right? Shouldn’t you have earned your cutie marks years ago?” The faces of the three mares darkened in unison. “Why don’t you mind your own business, lady?” growled Sweetie Belle. “I don’t go around asking you invasive questions about your cutie mark, you little... little... balloon butt!” yelled Scootaloo, hopping into the air for added emphasis. Pinkie Pie giggled. “Balloon butt? Heehee, good one!” “Hey now, cut it out, you two,” snapped Apple Bloom. “Just cuz we’re the bad guys doesn’t mean we gotta resort to name-callin’ and other nasty business. Let’s just stick to the plan and release them parasprites.” The four friends stiffened in unison. “Parasprites?” gasped Twilight Sparkle. “The King was right. You’re releasing them intentionally!” Scootaloo grinned sadistically. “Yep! That one was my idea. Nopony wants to fight with a grumbly tummy, right?” “So if we used parasprites to eat all of the food,” said Apple Bloom with an equally dark grin, “everypony would be too hungry to fight back, and Nightmare Moon could take over, nice and easy-like.” “Yeah!” cheered Sweetie Belle with a smirk of her own. “Nightmare Moon loved our plan so much, that’s probably why she agreed to make us the leaders of her troops.” Rainbow Dash gnashed her teeth. “Now look, you little punks. Messing with somepony’s food is—” Fluttershy rushed past Rainbow Dash, bumping her out of the way. She towered about the Cutie Mark Crusaders, glaring down at them. “That’s horrible. You’re worried about hurting other ponies’ feelings with name-calling, yet you’re proud at unleashing famine on tens of thousands of ponies? Do you have any idea what you’ve done?” The Cutie Mark Crusaders instinctively curled into the fetal position, trying to hide themselves from Fluttershy’s intimidating stare. Their eyes began to water over from the harsh rebuke. “W-we’re sorry, ma’am,” Apple Bloom eventually replied, “but we—” “Don’t you ‘but we’ me, young lady!” scolded Fluttershy. “It’s not me you need to be apologizing to. I want the three of you to go to Sugardia Castle and apologize to everypony this instant.” Twilight Sparkle buried her face in her hoof. “These are the leaders of the Mystic Army? A couple of kids who burst into tears the second somepony points out they’re evil?” “Dude, whatever,” said Rainbow Dash. She stared, unblinking and pale, at the robopony in front of her. “Fluttershy is scary.” “Fall back!” yelled Sweetie Belle. “They’re too strong! Run for it!” Apple Bloom shakily rose to her hooves. “Let’s jus’ summon the parasprites and run, while we still can!” “Eh? Oh, r-right,” said Scootaloo. “Leave it to me!” The pegasus leapt into the air, buzzing her small wings rapidly to hover in the air. The four friends looked up and watched as she floated in the air above them. Scootaloo’s entire body shimmered with a pale blue light, as above her, a magical circle drew itself onto the low cloud cover. From inside the circle, a flood of hundreds of parasprites spilled forth, blotting out the sun. The four ponies’ jaws collectively dropped, save Fluttershy’s as it was welded shut. “This is gonna be a problem, isn’t it?” quipped Rainbow Dash. The swarm of parasprites landed on the bridge’s center, providing cover as the Cutie Mark Crusaders and their army fled to the south. The small creatures crawled on top of each other in a writhing blob. Under the midday sun, they warmed their tiny gossamer wings, which were attached to either side of their tiny spherical bodies. Periodically, one of the many creatures would hack and cough, and spit out a gnarled, soggy cocoon. Mere seconds after each cocoon was created in this manner, it hatched into yet another parasprite. The writhing mass of parasprites quickly grew in size, and began to take on a roughly equestrian-shaped form. The “head” of the towering “ponysprite” glared down at the smaller pony friends. Rainbow Dash drew her katana and crouched low into her ready pose. “What?” asked Twilight Sparkle, raising her hoof. “You’re just gonna fly in there and start whacking it with your sword?” “Well, yeah. Did you have a better idea?” “Run away?” whimpered Fluttershy. “Those Crusaders seemed to think it was a good plan.” Twilight Sparkle pulled open her saddlebags. “I should have an entomology book somewhere in here.” “Ahem!” Pinkie Pie cleared her throat noisily. “Ladies?” She held her hoof aloft, which was radiating with an arctic chill. “Oh. Heh.” Twilight Sparkle rubbed the back of her head. “Magic. Right. Good call, Pinkie.” No longer content to watch them strategize, the ponysprite leapt to the offensive. It swiped at Rainbow Dash with its massive front hooves, trying to knock the tiny pegasus off the bridge. Rainbow Dash parried each blow as best as she could with her katana, but this just resulted in the “hoof” shattering into a rain of parasprites. The small insects covered her body, scratching her with their tiny claws. “Hey!” yelled Fluttershy. Twin panels ejected from her withers, exposing a pair of laser cannons. “Quit hurting Rainbow Dash!” The cannons fired, sending bolts of dark energy tearing into the ponysprite. Each blast dropped a small cluster of the winged insects, leaving a gaping hole in the large pony’s side. The holes didn’t last for long, as the terrifying reproductive rate of the parasprites soon provided replacements to repair the damage. Twilight Sparkle and Pinkie Pie leapt to opposite edges of the bridge. Crouching and concentrating, they called forth focused orbs of magical energy. The two ponies flung the magical bursts toward the ponysprite, where they respectively exploded into torrents of flame and blocks of ice. The ponysprite bucked and whinnied as each magic attack tore into it, yet the parasprite colony remained resilient. “Keep up the pressure!” yelled Rainbow Dash. “They can’t keep making more of themselves forever.” “Gee, Dash, I hope you’re right,” said Fluttershy. “Parasprites are very rapid breeders. I’m not certain that we’re having any effect.” She bucked one of the ponysprite’s hind legs, causing it to explode in a shower of insects. The swarm, missing one of its limbs, fell off-balance. “Careful! Our spells are going to miss!” called out Twilight Sparkle. Their magic whizzed over the head of the staggered ponysprite. Without a proper target, the bolts continued along their courses until they collided with each other. The resulting explosion rocked the bridge, fragmenting the ponysprite completely. The shockwaves sent everypony flying as well. Due to her poor position, Twilight Sparkle careened off the side of the bridge, crashing into the ocean waters below. “Twi!” Rainbow Dash called out. “Holy cow, did you see that!” screamed Pinkie Pie. She clung to the railings on her side of the bridge, having narrowly avoided the same fate as Twilight Sparkle. “That thing was intense!” The hundreds of parasprite flew back toward the bridge from all directions. The massive ponysprite slowly took form once more, though the mass remained immobile as it rebuilt itself. “Pinkie, make sure that Twi is okay.” Rainbow Dash flew over to the overturned Fluttershy, helping to upright her. “In the meantime, I think they had the right idea. Time to team up, Fluttershy!” “Eep? R-Rainbow, what are you doing back there?” Rainbow Dash straddled herself over Fluttershy’s back, giving a kick to her ribs. “Giddy up, robopony!” “...Pardon me?” “C’mon!” She pointed eagerly at the swarm in front of them. “Y’know, use your rockets, and your lasers, and all that nifty stuff!” “O-okay, I’ll try. Whoa!” Fluttershy’s wing-mounted jets surged to life with unexpected force, sending the pair hurtling through the air toward the reforming ponysprite. Due to Rainbow Dash’s extra, unbalanced weight, she spiraled wildly out of control. “Heeelp!” Rainbow Dash laughed and flapping her wings as hard as she could muster. “Faster! Lasers! Go nuts!” She held her katana at the ready, while Fluttershy’s laser cannons came to life. As the spinning pair hurtled through the mass of parasprites, their Supersonic Spin ravaged the swarm with slicing and searing. The pair landing on the other side of the wounded swarm. Fluttershy staggered on the ground as her balance sensors attempted to recalibrate. Rainbow Dash giggled. “Fluttershy, that attack was wicked! You’re pretty tough, y’know that?” “Oh! T-thanks,” Fluttershy tittered. “Dashie!” Pinkie Pie waved her hooves to gain attention. “Up high! Let’s finish this!” She launched a wave of ice magic up into the air above the ponysprite. Rainbow Dash grinned. “I’m on it!” She raced through the air, catching the magic directly onto her katana. The mystical energy absorbed into the steel, vibrating with potential. She somersaulted in midair before taking a nosedive directly into the swarm. The magic within the Ice Sword attack exploded on contact, encasing the majority of the parasprites within a solid ice block. The few remaining insects scattered, flying off into the distance. A tumultuous cheer rose up from the knight’s camp. “They did it! Lady Rainbow Dash defeated their forces. Zebran Bridge is ours once more! Huzzah!” Rainbow Dash flipped through the air. “Aww yeah! Those lousy flies didn’t stand a chance. With these new powers, we’re basically unstoppable!” Twilight Sparkle trudged her way back onto the bridge. Her mane hung damply against her side. Each hoofstep left a small puddle of water behind. “Well, that was a refreshing swim. Second one today,” she muttered. “Right, Dashie?” said Pinkie Pie. “Me and Twilight made that insane explosion thing, and then you and Fluttershy did that crazy spinny move, and then you and me did that awesome sword attack!” “So intense!” agreed Rainbow Dash. “Honestly, I had no clue if that was gonna work, but man, that did some serious damage!” “Oh!” Twilight Sparkle shifted her attention away from drying herself. “I think I understand why Pinkie’s and my magic exploded like that. You see, fire and water are opposing forces in the magical domain; they’re antipodes, in a sense. Combining their attack spells forms a sort of Antipode Bomb, which...” Her voice trailed off as she realized that nopony was listening. Rainbow Dash and Pinkie Pie were heavily engaged in recounting the last battle, and pantomiming their newest attacks. Fluttershy staggered up to her, still recovering from her aerial spins. “Oh, Twilight, thank goodness. I was so worried.” She paused. Twilight Sparkle continued to stare at her other friends as they conversed. “Twilight? Are you feeling okay?” Twilight Sparkle gave her a weak smile. “Yeah. I’ll be fine.” * * * Chapter 20: The Hero Appears 600 AD Pommel Inn “Seriously, RD?” said Twilight Sparkle, teasingly rolling her eyes as she stepped inside the inn. “Hungry already?” After a few hours of trekking across the arid fields of South Zebran, the four ponies arrived in the coastal town of Pommel. While separated from the castle by a fair distance, Pommel played a pivotal role in the health of Sugardia. In Rainbow Dash’s time, Pommel was a hotbed of commerce and naval construction. This earlier era’s Pommel wasn’t nearly as industrialized, yet still it bustled with activity. Thus, it was the ponies’ first destination on the new continent. “I could go for something,” said Pinkie Pie. “Anypony wanna split some nachos?” Rainbow Dash playfully bumped into Twilight Sparkle. “We’re not here for food, doofus. We’re here for something more important. How about you trust my leadership skills for once?” She stuck out her tongue. “I still don’t remember nominating you as leader.” Fluttershy tilted her head. “So, why are we here then?” “Because honestly,” Rainbow Dash said, running her hoof through her mane, “I have no clue what’s going on.” She rolled her eyes, trying to ignore Twilight Sparkle’s smirk. “We know there’s a legendary hero, but we don’t know a thing about him. We know he’s looking for this legendary sword, but we don’t know a thing about that. We know that he’s gonna go mess up Nightmare Moon with the sword, but we don’t—well, we know some stuff about her, I guess? We don’t know useful stuff, though. Like, where the heck do we find her? How do we stop her?” She frowned and crossed her hooves. “So, we need somepony to tell us what the hay is happening, right? Well, there’s tons of ponies at the inn. Let’s ask around ‘til we find somepony with the answers.” Twilight Sparkle’s eyebrows raised in unison. “Oh. Actually, that’s a—” “Yeah! Head to the tavern and search for rumors, just like a true adventuring party,” Pinkie Pie cheered. She smiled broadly at the pegasus. “Great idea, Rainbow Dash!” Rainbow Dash smirked. “Thanks, Pinkie. Now let’s see.” She hopped into the air and hovered over the heads of her friends. She quickly glanced over the various patrons of the inn. Her grin widened when she spotted a suitable candidate. Rainbow Dash flew over the heads of the townsponies and landed at the front of the bar. A loud clack rang out as her hooves touched down, sending vibrations through the wood flooring around her. Next to her, a stallion was resting his head against the counter. He didn’t move a muscle in response to Rainbow Dash’s approach. His cowboy hat was pulled low over his eyes. “Hey there, handsome,” cooed Rainbow Dash. “Sorry, ma’am,” he said in a low monotone. “I ain’t rightly in a mood for socializin’.” “Aww.” Rainbow Dash put on a fake hurt expression. “You won’t buy me a drink?” “’Fraid I can’t right now. Please, just leave me be.” “I figured you’d say that,” she chuckled. She reached into her saddlebags and threw a few coins onto the counter. “Yo, barkeep! Two apple ciders for me and my friend here.” His eyes snapped open. “Cider? Friend?” Braeburn lifted his head and was met with a friendly, confident grin. “Well put me in a basket and call me a bushel! If it isn’t Miss Rainbow Dash!” “Sup, Braeburn?” said Rainbow Dash. She lifted her hoof to Braeburn, offering him a hoof bump. “Long time no see.” “You’re a—” His mouth hung open mid-sentence as he carefully studied her hoof. He eventually decided to politely shake it. “You’re a sight for sore eyes, believe me. Things are right terrible now.” Rainbow Dash grimaced. “Yeah. The whole war and famine business. Sounds pretty rough.” The bartender trotted over to the pair of ponies, balancing two frothy mugs of cider on his back. With a single deft movement, he swept the bits off the bar and exchanged them for the cider. “Yeah, that too,” sighed Braeburn. He reached out for his mug and took a long swig. “Anyway, I don’t intend to drag you down with my sob story. What can I do ya for?” “Hi there, Rainbow’s friend!” Pinkie Pie hopped into view, pushing her way through the crowd. A few of the patrons scowled and complained as she bumped past them. “Nice to meetcha. I’m Pinkie Pie.” Braeburn politely tipped his hat. “Well howdy, Miss Pinkie. Name’s Braeburn, adventurer extraordinaire.” She motioned behind her. “These are my other friends, Twilight and Fluttershy. We were actually hoping you could help us. We’re looking for rumors!” A wide smile crossed Braeburn’s face. The smile instantly reminded Rainbow Dash of the day she first met him. “Rumors? I’m your stallion! I always try to keep one ear to the ground. Best way to stay ahead in the adventurin’ business, y’see. What do ya want to know?” “Hi, Braeburn,” said Twilight Sparkle as she finally pushed her way through the crowded room. “Do you happen to know—” “Say,” interrupted Pinkie Pie, “have you heard of the Cutie Mark Crusaders?” A few of the patrons overheard Pinkie Pie and groaned in unison. Braeburn winced until his eyes were completely shut. “The CMC? Heard of ‘em. Believe me.” “Those three brats told me they wanted to be merchants,” spat one stallion at the bar. “Offered to help run my store one afternoon, free of charge. Like a foal, I agreed to it. When I closed up shop that evening, I discovered that I was fifty thousand in the hole! After one afternoon!” A unicorn at the bar snorted. “Last year, they promised to help Miss Cheerilee with replanting trees out in the wastelands.” He shook his head. “Those plains look worse now more than ever.” A mare wearing a fancy blouse rolled her eyes. “My husband told me that they somehow secured the commission to craft Her Majesty's commemorative bell.” Braeburn spat out a mouthful of cider, wiping the trickling drops off his chin. “That was them?! Shoot, I heard somepony was workin’ on it, but I never dreamed it would be those three.” He fidgeted with his mug. “The damage?” She gave him a bland look. “As much as one would expect.” “Great,” he sighed. “Last I had heard, they was trekkin’ ‘round the Puripony Mountains, plannin’ to become the heroes of legend. I’d hoped that would’ve kept ‘em busy for longer than that.” “Wait, wait,” moaned Twilight Sparkle. She gently rubbed her hoof against her closed eyelids. “The Cutie Mark Crusaders are the legendary heroes?” “Nah,” Braeburn said. He nursed his cider. “Every filly and colt in Pommel hears about that legend growin’ up. So, ‘s only natural that most of ‘em get ideas and try to fulfill the legend, at one point or another.” He gave a curious look to another pony at the bar. “Actually, ain’t South Lake’s boy up in the mountains now? Him and his best friend?” The other pony shrugged. “Maybe that’s who we’re looking for?” Rainbow Dash asked rhetorically. “Somepony was claiming to have some medal. Apparently that’s a big deal?” “The Hero’s Medal?” Braeburn raised an eyebrow. “Well sure, that’s the first part of the legend. If he found the actual Hero’s Medal, then he’s probably trying to get his hooves on the Lyrabon.” She blinked. “What?” Braeburn sipped his cider calmly. “The Lyrabon? The legendary blade? Supposed to be hidden away at the top of the Puripony Mountains, but nopony’s ever found it. Shoot, even the old Bolt Knight Captain, Sir Spike, went a-lookin’ for it, and nopony’s heard from him since.” “Huh.” Rainbow Dash stared at her mug of cider, as if noticing its arrival for the first time. She chugged the contents and slammed the mug back onto the counter top. “Well, guess we’re headed to the mountains.” “The mountains?” said Fluttershy. “We’re going to look for the Lyrabon?” Rainbow Dash gave her a brash smile. “Sure, why not? It’s a sword. I use swords.” Twilight Sparkle clicked her tongue. “I don’t think that’s such a good idea, Rainbow. I mean—” she paused and looked about the bar before lowering her voice, “—we’re not from around here. I’m not sure we should be messing with legends like that.” “Are you kidding? That’d be awesome!” cheered Pinkie Pie. “We could be best friends with the legendary hero. How often does a chance like that come up?” She nodded at Rainbow Dash. “I believe in you, Dashie!” Twilight Sparkle inhaled sharply. “I didn’t mean—” Braeburn reared up on his hind legs. “Well sure! I’m sure you ladies stand a better chance than most!” His smile slowly evaporated, leaving behind a tight-lipped frown. “Just please, be careful up there, won’t ‘cha? These parts ain’t as safe as they used t’ be. Most of the kiddos run home with their tails between their legs before they even reach the base of the mountain, but the more serious types are bound to run into danger. ‘Specially since Nightmare Moon’s got all sorts of monsters runnin’ amok: ogres, frogs, falcons, roundillos—” Twilight Sparkle’s eyes lit up. “Wait, did you say frogs?” “Yes, ma’am. Supposed to be a giant one, big as you or me, living in the woods west of town. Nopony ventures in there, on account of them woods being cursed.” Rainbow Dash shared a knowing look with her. They nodded in unison. “Sounds like we’re making a detour.” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 600 AD Cursed Woods Fluttershy stepped through the shady forest clearing. Each hoofstep left a deep imprint in the grassy meadow. A soft breeze blew across her cold frame and swirled up into the treetops. She looked up at the canopy, taking in the sounds of rustling leaves and chirping songbirds. “Frog!” bellowed Rainbow Dash, snapping Fluttershy out of her reverie. “You in here, Frog?!” “Oh, come on.” Twilight Sparkle sighed and shook her head. “That’s your plan? Stand in the middle of the forest and shout?” “Why not?” Rainbow Dash pointed into the thicker sections of the woods. “It’ll take forever to search through here by ourselves. Why not just holler and let her come to us?” “Because it’s loud?” Fluttershy watched the songbirds fly up through the tree canopy and out of sight. “Makes sense to me,” said Pinkie Pie. “I mean, we don’t have all day to—” Her sentence was cut short by her teeth chattering, followed by a hiccup. She flipped around, her eyes filled with horror. “Dash! Behind—” Rainbow Dash’s katana was already drawn. She spun on a back hoof, deftly deflecting an incoming rock. The stone harmlessly dropped to the forest floor. Rainbow Dash’s mind had already moved past the rock. Her eyes rapidly twitched across the shrubbery, searching for any signs of movement. A soft snap. Her ears whipped around, locating the source. With a burst of energy, she back-flipped into the air. Hovering on her back, she braced her neck and jaw for impact. From overhead, a heavy broadsword came hurtling down. It crashed against Rainbow Dash’s katana, letting ring the loud twang of steel on steel. The broadsword, which radiated with a soft blue aura, pressed down on her. “My, my, my. Somepony has been improving.” The broadsword lifted up. Rainbow Dash flipped herself upright, smirking past the floating weapon. “Likewise.” Fluttershy whirled around, confronting the creature who emerged from the trees. “S-stop! Don’t hurt my friends. I’m w-warning you!” Frog’s smile temporarily dropped, as she blinked at Fluttershy. She raised a webbed pad to her mouth. “Oh! No, you have it all wrong, my dear. I promise, I won’t harm a feather on your friend.” Her smile returned as she turned to Rainbow Dash. “It’s just that she and I had promised to hold a bit of a sparring match, and I have been so eagerly awaiting—” Her smile dropped again as she reexamined Fluttershy. “This is quite the sophisticated suit of armor you’re wearing. All those lights, and hinges, and—by the Sun, is that smoke coming out of your ear? Oh wait.” She turned back to Rainbow Dash. “She’s from the future too, isn’t she?” “Yup, future. More future-y than us, actually.” Twilight Sparkle groaned. “Ah yes, that would explain it.” Frog returned her gaze to Fluttershy, lightly running a foot along the robopony’s mane. “It’s quite the statement! It just screams ‘industry’ and ‘progress.’” “Um, thank you. I think.” Fluttershy’s wings rattled lightly. “But I digress. Shouldn’t we—Rainbow Dash?” Frog turned back to where Rainbow Dash had once stood, staring instead at a circle of stomped grass. Her unicorn-like horn flared with blue magic, whipping her broadsword behind her, just in time to meet the katana with a loud clash. “Rainbow Dash! How dishonorable! You should never attack a lady from behind whilst she is unprepared.” “What? You did the same thing to me!” Rainbow Dash lashed forward in a series of blows, blocked each time by the enchanted broadsword. “That was entirely different,” huffed Frog, clutching her chest with a webbed pad. Meanwhile, her sword danced through the air in wide, sweeping arcs. “I was merely getting your attention with that tiny pebble, before beginning the duel properly.” “Doesn’t sound different to me.” Rainbow Dash leapt to the side, looking for an opening. “Hey! You’re not even paying attention anymore!” she yelled, gritting her teeth. “But I am, Rainbow, truly.” Frog fidgeted with her gem-studded vest and smoothed the wrinkles out of her cloak, while attacking Rainbow Dash with her levitating weapon. She held her foot up and calmly inspected her pedicure. “I’m simply multitasking, that’s all.” “Oh yeah? Two can play at that game.” Rainbow Dash took flight, barrelling straight up through the tree canopies. Frog looked up to the trees, shielding her eyes from the few beams of sunlight that poked their way through the leaves. Her eyes circled around the canopy as she searched for the spot where the airborne pegasus would descend. With a smirk, she whirled her blade above her, easily deflecting the falling katana. The katana landed harmlessly next to her, embedding itself into the ground. Her opponent was nowhere to be seen. “What?” she asked herself aloud. The bushes behind her exploded. Rainbow Dash tackled Frog at full speed, wrestling her to the ground. Rainbow Dash kicked her opponent repeatedly, in spite of the high-pitched objections. She leapt back to her hooves and tried to dash to her discarded weapon. Before she could reach it, she felt a constriction around her chest. Frog’s tongue lassoed around her and pulled her away from the katana. Rainbow Dash suddenly found herself nose-to-tip with a broadsword. She fidgeted against her restraints for a moment before giving a gravelly sigh. “Fine,” she pouted, “you win.” “Doh fee bah, Waybo—” Frog blushed heavily when she realized her tongue was in a particularly unladylike position. She quickly unwound it from Rainbow Dash’s torso and returned it to her mouth. “Don’t feel bad, Rainbow Dash. That was actually quite close. Your diversion was most ingenious.” “Whatever.” Rainbow Dash crossed her hooves and glared at the treeline. Twilight Sparkle and Pinkie Pie stepped up toward the bristling pegasus and offered her some mild reassurances. “Oh, just look at this!” moaned Frog. She took off her thick green cloak and floated it in front of herself. “During that whole tussle, I went and got—” she paused for emphasis, “—grass stains on my pèlerine.” “It’s alright,” said Fluttershy. “Your cloak is already green. You can barely see the stains.” “No, no, I must take care of this before they set in.” She blinked. “And besides, where are my manners? You come all this way to visit me, and here we are, fighting in the middle of a mucky old forest. My residence is not far from here. We shall catch up on old times over a hot cup of herbal tea. Please, follow me.” The four travellers fell in step behind their old friend. As they followed behind her, Rainbow Dash got a better look at the frog-unicorn hybrid. She was finally able to see Frog’s cutie mark—or what Rainbow Dash presumed was a cutie mark, given its shape and location—now that she had removed her cloak. It appeared to be a trio of slender, blue diamonds. However, printed against her green, slimy body, the gemstones appeared discolored and wavy. They were distorted. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 600 AD Frog’s Residence “Wow!” exclaimed Pinkie Pie. “Nice place you’ve got, Frog! It’s pretty fancy, for an out-of-the-way hole-in-the-ground.” The entrance to Frog’s home was quite literally a hole in the forest floor, covered by an inconspicuous bush. It was a simple cavern, about eight meters by five, dug out of the soft earth. Once inside, however, one could easily forget that this was a mere pit in the middle of a forest. Cloth drapings hung around the perimeter, partially hiding the soil and tree roots which formed the hollow’s walls. Carpeted rugs covered most of the dirt floor, giving the room a much more homely feel. “I do try to keep things presentable,” Frog said with a laugh. “I may not get many visitors, but that doesn’t mean I need to wallow in the mud like some vagabond.” She paused, looking hesitantly at a patch of ground-in mud on the carpet. “You’ll have to forgive me, though. I do my best to keep my accommodations chic, but in a location like this, and on a strict budget, well—” Rainbow Dash shrugged. “Nah, don’t worry about it. So what if it’s a little dirty? I think the whole ‘secret hideout’ thing is pretty cool.” “Frog, those clothes look so lovely,” said Fluttershy. By Frog’s bed, an equestrian dress form was displaying a yellow, billowing dress. While the garment was simple and unadorned, it seemed to radiate with an inner glow as the overhead lamplight danced across it. “Why thank you, darling.” Frog nudged Rainbow Dash in front of a full-length mirror that was standing next to the dress form. She grabbed an orange silk scarf off the mannequin and draped it around Rainbow Dash’s neck, staring at her reflection in the mirror. “It’s so nice to have guests with a taste for fashion.” Rainbow Dash tasted a light hint of bile rising up in the back of her mouth. “Did you make this?” Fluttershy asked. “I didn’t know you were a clothing designer.” “Oh.” Frog’s face wavered slightly in the mirror. She pulled the scarf off Rainbow Dash’s neck and returned it to the dress form. “No. I would hardly call myself a designer. This is... just an idle little hobby of mine.” She unsheathed her broadsword and polished it with a nearby cloth, all while floating a kettle off the stove top. “Anyway!” She grinned at Rainbow Dash while pouring a few cups of tea. “You were going to tell me all about your recent adventures. How are things going?” Rainbow Dash cringed. “Right! Ha ha! Things! Things are, uh, definitely going! Yep! Ain’t that right, guys?” She turned around, looking to her friends for assistance. “Rainbow.” Pinkie Pie looked down at her hooves as she dragged them lightly across the surface of the carpeting. “I kinda think we should tell her, y’know?” Twilight Sparkle’s eyes danced about, looking at nothing in particular, as she stewed over the decision. Eventually, her eyelids fell closed. “Yeah. Pinkie’s right. Frog deserves the truth.” Frog looked from pony to pony. “I don’t understand. Is something wrong?” “It’s the future,” Fluttershy quietly said from the back of the room. Twilight Sparkle sighed and stared down at the carpet. “In the year 1999 AD, a horrible monster named Lavos is going to destroy the entire world, killing nearly everypony in the process.” Frog covered her mouth with a foot. “Everypony? By the Sun...” “But it’s alright,” Pinkie Pie said, resting a hoof on Frog’s back. “We found out that that evil nasty witch, Nightmare Moon, created Lavos! We’re all gonna put a stop to her.” Frog blinked. She raised her teacup to her mouth and took a drawn-out sip from it. “Queen Diane sent us down here to Pommel,” continued Twilight Sparkle. “Unfortunately, she was injured during the recent fighting, but according to her, somepony on this continent has something called the Hero’s Medal. Apparently, he might be the pony who fulfills an ancient legend!” “That’s not all!” Rainbow Dash bashed her hooves together and grinned at Frog, who continued to sip her tea. “You ever heard of the Lyrabon? It’s apparently this amazing sword that nopony’s been awesome enough to find.” She flicked her head, causing her mane to billow behind her. “Not until I arrived, anyway. I’m gonna find the Lyrabon, strike down Nightmare Moon, stop Lavos, and become the legendary hero! Uh,” she added with a embarrassed chuckle, “with my friends’ help, of course.” “Frog?” asked Fluttershy. Frog held her teacup in place. Her eyes had fallen half-closed as Rainbow Dash explained her plan. “Are you alright?” Fluttershy continued. “This is a lot to take in, so I completely understand if you—” “Quite alright, dear Fluttershy.” Frog set her teacup down gently on its coaster and gave a wide smile. “I think that’s a terrific plan, Rainbow Dash. You’re truly an unrivaled swordpony. I can think of no other better suited for the task than you.” Rainbow Dash grinned and blushed. “Well, except for you. Right, Frog?” Pinkie Pie quickly added. “I mean, you did just beat Dashie in a duel just now.” Rainbow Dash glared at her at first, then sighed. “Actually, I hate to admit it, but that’s a good point. Why don’t you join us, Frog? We make a pretty good team. You’d be a big help.” “Oh, I...” Frog blinked once. “No, I couldn’t. Thank you, but I’m afraid that I would simply slow you down.” Rainbow Dash jerked her head back. “Slow us down? What?” Frog nodded. “Yes, what with my appearance and all. I still cause a bit of a stir when I visit town, you see.” She chuckled. “No, the four of you could move much faster without me. Besides, you’re more than capable of handling the Puripony Mountains by yourself.” She smiled warmly at Rainbow Dash. “I believe in you.” “Awesome! Thanks, Frog.” Rainbow Dash tossed her head back, draining her teacup in a single gulp. She stuck her tongue out in response to the bitter aftertaste. “Speaking of which, we oughta get a move on.” She and her friends stood and made their way to the steps leading up and out. “See ya, Frog. I’ll be back later to show off my totally radical sword.” Frog returned to her dress form. “Of course, my friends,” she said cheerfully. “I’ll be here.” She examined the garment closely. Some of the stitching on the gown had started to come loose. She grabbed a needle and thread to reinforce it. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 600 AD Puripony Mountains “Did Frog seem strange to anypony else?” Fluttershy asked. “Well of course she’s a little strange, Fluttershy.” Pinkie Pie hopped between rocky outcroppings, working her way up the slope of the mountain pass. “I mean, duh, she’s half-frog and half-unicorn. She’s uncommon. Still, she was born that way, so you really shouldn’t call attention to it like that.” “No, that wasn’t what I meant.” Rainbow Dash flew casually up to the top of the slope and landed next to Pinkie Pie. “I didn’t notice anything wrong. Seemed just like I remember her, really. I mean, if anything,” she huffed, “I’m the one who’s acting strange. Seriously, how did she beat me? I must be coming down with something.” Pinkie Pie turned to Rainbow Dash and felt her forehead. She gasped, “Woah! Dashie, look behind you.” “Huh? Oh wow, that’s crazy.” Twilight Sparkle’s hooves slipped against the rocks. She skidded down the slope a meter. “What?” she said between weighty breaths. “What’s up there?” Fluttershy slowly floated down from the sky. Her under-wing rockets produced a wisp of dark smoke which floated up into the afternoon sky. She landed next to Twilight Sparkle and laid flat beside her. Twilight Sparkle climbed aboard, and the robopony took off again. “Thanks, Fluttershy. I really appreciate the lift.” As the pair lifted into the sky, she caught sight of what her friends were looking at. “Huh. Would you look at that.” Rainbow Dash and Pinkie Pie stood at the edge of a mountain cliff overlooking Southern Zebran. While the land was still covered by a thick fog, the ponies had climbed high enough to see over it. The high afternoon sun shone down upon the fog and refracted on its water droplets, casting the entire vista in a light chromatic glow. “It’s lovely,” Fluttershy said as she landed next to Rainbow Dash and Pinkie Pie. “You can say that again,” Twilight Sparkle added reverently. “It’s lovely,” said Pinkie Pie. Rainbow Dash shook her head clear. “Anyway! We’re not here on a sight-seeing trip.” She stomped a hoof down on the grassy hilltop. “Don’t forget, we’re up here looking for that colt who thinks he’s the legendary hero.” “You’re looking for the legendary hero?” said a high-pitched voice that was punctuated with pubescent cracks. “Didja hear that? We’re already famous.” The four friends turned around. The speaker was a pudgy unicorn colt, green coat with auburn mane. His flank sported a pair of scissors. “You?” scoffed Rainbow Dash. “Don’t tell me that a runt like you is the legendary hero.” “Nope!” said the pudgy colt. He motioned to his side, where stood another unicorn colt, taller and scrawnier with a snail-shaped cutie mark. The taller colt’s orange chest was emblazoned with a dull golden medal, which hung around his neck with a thick red ribbon. The pudgy colt continued, “Here’s the legendary hero: my best friend, Snails!” “Huh huh,” laughed Snails. “I’m a legend!” * * * Chapter 21: The Hero Is Chosen 600 AD Puripony Mountains “Isn’t this great, Snails?” Snips looked upward and beamed at his best friend. “Now that Rainbow Dash and her friends joined us, we have a true adventuring group!” “Yeah!” Snails’s face was plastered with a blissful, dopey smile. “Now we can go on adventures! And fight Nightmare Moon! And save the world!” Rainbow Dash trotted alongside the two young colts as the pack of ponies traversed the foliage-covered mountainside. “You bet! I’m just glad that me and my friends are lucky enough—no, honored enough—to be helping out the legendary hero.” Snips nodded, puffing out his chest. “Of course! The legendary hero is more than happy to have brave warriors like you fighting for him. Ain’t that right, Snails?” “Yeah!” From the back of the group, somepony cleared their throat loudly and distinctly. Rainbow Dash faltered slightly in her trot. “Oh. Uh, ‘scuse me, fellas.” She stopped in her tracks and allowed the rest of the herd to move past her, resuming her gait when Twilight Sparkle caught up. “Okay,” Twilight Sparkle muttered under her breath. “You didn’t exactly run the plan by us, but it’s pretty obvious that you’re planning to backstab them.” Rainbow Dash reeled forward, losing her hoofing. A quick flap of her wings saved her from face-planting into the gravel. “Twi!” she hissed. “They’re just a couple of young colts. I’m not gonna attack them.” Twilight Sparkle gave her a bemused stare. “I meant that you’re planning to trick them.” “Oh. Yeah, totally,” said Rainbow Dash. Twilight Sparkle opened her mouth to protest, but Rainbow Dash quickly raised her hooves defensively. “C’mon, you don’t honestly think that these runts are cut out for the job, do you? I’m just gonna play some little pranks, scare ‘em a little, and then we grab the medal. Just harmless pranks!” Twilight Sparkle’s mouth hung open for a moment. Eventually, she chose her words with care. “Okay, Rainbow. We’ll go with your plan.” “C’mon, just give me a... Wait, really?” Rainbow Dash cocked her head and stared at her friend with an arched eyebrow. “Just like that, you’re giving me permission to prank? I thought you had me on lock-down ever since that one time with the cabbage and the drum set.” “I know, but...” Her tail swished lightly through the air behind her. “This isn’t a half-bad plan. And you promised that it’ll be harmless. So,” she said, giving Rainbow Dash a faint smile, “I figure we can do things your way this time, right?” Rainbow Dash grinned and bumped playfully into Twilight Sparkle; the latter’s grin widened in return. “Awesome! Thanks, Twi, don’t you worry. This’ll be over before you know it.” She raced back toward the hero and his companion. “Hey, Snails! Snips! Wait up! I know a shortcut.” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ Fluttershy gently floated through the air, suspended by the currents of Twilight Sparkle’s magical aura. She touched down next to her friends on the jagged, rocky outcropping on the far side of the ravine. “Okay, hero!” cheered Rainbow Dash. “Your turn.” “Gee, Rainbow Dash, uh...” Snails cautiously scooted up to the edge of the cliff and peered down. Dozens of meters below, the arid plains of South Zebran waited to claim anypony so foalish as to challenge gravity. The dizzying heights pulled a clammy sweat out of the young colt’s pores. Following suit, Snips peered down into the abyss. He squeaked and clutched his friend’s hooves. “Are you sure this is safe, Rainbow Dash? That sure looks like a long way down.” “Of course it’s safe!” said Pinkie Pie. “It’s not very far. Just move your little rumps! You can—” Twilight Sparkle set a hoof on her shoulder. “Pinkie, we don’t have time for that.” “W-well, hey,” said Snips, pointing at Twilight Sparkle with an accusatory hoof. “She used magic to lift your friend across. Can’t she carry us across, too?” Snails nodded. “Yeah, carry us! With your magic.” “Oh, uh!” Rainbow Dash winced. Her eyes turned skyward, unable to meet the colts’ gazes. “I-I mean, we could, but... Oh!” With a smirk, she beckoned for the colts to cross to her side. “You’re the legendary hero, right? Surely, you can jump across a tiny, little gap like this on your own.” Snails frowned and methodically shook his head. “I’m Snails. Not Shirley.” Snips tried to swallow, but choked on the lump in his throat. He looked up at Snails. “Whadaya say, buddy? Together?” “Yeah!” Snails pawed at the loose gravel under his hooves. “We can do this!” With a running start, Snips and Snails leapt toward the other edge of the chasm with forehooves extended. Their faces dropped when they fell short of the edge, plummeting toward the ground below. Their screams echoed against the face of the mountainside, and the wind tore away at their coats. After a few seconds of free-fall, a rainbow-streaked blur swooped underneath them, slowing their descent. “Whoa, that was a close one! You guys almost made it.” Rainbow Dash tilted her head back and cackled. With a broad push of her wings, she glided back up the face of the mountainside, colts in tow. Snips and Snails looked at each other and winced, before quietly joining Rainbow Dash with a half-hearted chuckle. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ Rainbow Dash scowled. “What’s taking you two so long?” Snips’s legs shook violently as he strained to remain on his hooves. He shuffled his legs forward one at a time, slowly climbing the steep, rocky incline. “I’m,” he grunted, “trying!” “Oh dear,” said Fluttershy from atop the two colts’ backs. “I’m being a terrible bother to both of you. Please, you can just set me down here. I can walk on my own.” She started to climb down. The veins in Snails’s neck bulged as he struggled to compensate for her sudden movement. “Heavy!” “Suck it up!” ordered Rainbow Dash as she hovered above the colts. “This is a strength conditioning drill. The two of you are gonna need to bulk up fast if you want to have any hopes of defeating Nightmare Moon.” With a pair of loud whines, the two colts continued to trudge along the path, hoisting Fluttershy up the mountain. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ After a long and strenuous trek, the herd reached a clearing near the summit. Snips and Snails collapsed, panting and sweating profusely. The canopies of tall ash trees provided a cool refuge from the hot afternoon sun. “Who knew,” panted Snips, “being heroes would be such hard work?” “My everything hurts,” said Snails. “Whoa!” gasped Rainbow Dash. “Hang in there, hero! We’re not out of the woods yet!” She alertly pointed in front of them. A hulking, muscular goblin stood in their path, snarling menacingly. Reaching behind himself, he grasped the handle of an oversized wooden hammer. He swung the mighty weapon in the direction of the ponies, giving his best effort to win via intimidation. Rainbow Dash turned back and pumped her hooves toward Snips and Snails. “An opponent! Now we can see the legendary hero in action.” The blood quickly drained from Snails’s face. His voice drawled into a drawn-out, monotone, “Uhhh...” “T-The hero needs his rest,” Snips interjected. “Rainbow Dash, you’ll fight on the hero’s behalf.” He pointed a stubby foreleg at the foe. “Go! Vanquish that goblin.” Snails giggled. “Yeah! Vanquish it!” Rainbow Dash blinked for a moment, then grinned. She delivered a crisp salute. “Sure thing, boss. You can count on me.” Drawing her katana, she crouched at the ready. “You messed with the wrong party, bub. The legendary hero says that you’ve gotta go. And now I, Rainbow Dash, will knock you down!” She promptly fell sideways, landing awkwardly on her side. Rainbow Dash rushed a hoof to her crumpled side. “Zounds, my wing! It is most certainly broken. Oh, the equinity!” She turned to the young colts and reached out a hoof towards them. “Forgive me, hero! It’s all up to you now.” The goblin coldly regarded the fallen pegasus before turning its attention to Snips and Snails. He approached the two young ponies and brandished its warhammer. His lips curled upward to reveal rows of jagged, meat-shredding teeth. An unadorned butter knife wobbled in the air, suspended by telekinesis just above Snips’s head. He crouched in front of his friend, glaring down the advancing Mystic. “Don’t take another s-step, ugly! You d-don’t know who you’re up against.” Snails’s breathing came quick and raspy. His eyes darted between Snips and the approaching mallet. “Snips! Get back!” With a snort, the goblin flexed his arms and lifted the warhammer high into the air. His eyes glinted and his mouth curled into a sadistic grin. He tensed his muscles, preparing to make the pudgy unicorn in front of him much wider and shorter. He howled in rage, then, when the Hero’s Medal unexpectedly flew into his eye. He dropped the hammer, clutching tenderly at his bruised eye. Snails hurled his saddlebags and cloak at the incapacitated Mystic, causing the screams to grow more inflamed. “We needa go, Snips! It’s dangerous!” Without another word, he turned and fled, magically dragging his friend by the tail. “But Snails!” Snips flailed his hooves as he scraped across the trail, trying to slow his friend’s retreat. “What about becoming a hero?” Before Snails could reply, the pair disappeared down the trail, safely out of harm’s way. Rainbow Dash’s eyes gleamed. The discarded Hero’s Medal laid before her, just out of hoof’s reach. She beamed at Twilight Sparkle, ears bristling with excitement. “Ha! What now? Didn’t I tell you? Now, I can just grab th—ghck!” The goblin’s warhammer slammed underneath her jaw, lifting her a meter into the air. “Dashie!” called out Pinkie Pie. She snapped her hoof forward, causing her crossbow to spring to life. “Watch out!” “I noticed,” Rainbow Dash grumbled as she tried to relocate her jaw with a hoof. “I guess tha—oof!” The goblin’s strike hit her in the gut, knocking the wind from her. “Rainbow, please be careful.” Fluttershy hopped from hoof to hoof, torn between getting closer to assist her friend and staying as far away from the fighting as possible. “Don’t worry, RD, I’ve got this covered.” Twilight Sparkle leapt in front of the rampaging foe. A small serpentine trail of fire snaked its way around each of her hooves. “This goblin may be acting all tough with his large wooden hammer, but let’s see how tough he is when it’s on fire!” The tongue of fire sprang forth. As the flames came in contact with the goblin’s warhammer, they spread rapidly across its surface. The goblin recoiled at first, nearly tossing the weapon away from him. As he watched the weapon burn, his grin grew more sinister and malicious. He pivoted on his heels, swung his flaming hammer, and connected a blow squarely on Rainbow Dash’s shoulder. Rainbow Dash skid across the clearing, kicking up dust and gravel with her hooves. She grunted and shifted her balance, favoring her injured foreleg. “Apparently,” she said, panting heavily, “he’s still pretty tough when it’s on fire.” Twilight Sparkle swallowed. “Oops?” After wounding one of his opponents, the goblin turned his attention to the next closest pony. Twilight Sparkle yelped, curled up into a ball, and summoned a shell of magic from her horn. The goblin assaulted the Protect spell with a rain of enflamed hammer blows. The dual threat of blunt and fire damage fractured the spell, causing hairline cracks to grow across its surface. The goblin reached overhead, readying one final strike to destroy the spell. As his muscles tensed in anticipation, he cried out and tipped backwards. Looking behind himself, he saw that the head of his mallet had become enshrined in a block of ice. “No need to be such a hothead!” yelled Pinkie Pie. “It’s high time we put this meanie on ice.” Fluttershy tackled the creature, knocking him off-balance and separating him from his weapon. She broke off her attack just as quickly as she started, instead rushing to Rainbow Dash’s aid. Pinkie Pie hurled more chunks of ice in the goblin’s direction, intentionally aiming wide. The goblin whined, looking between the magical earth pony and his discarded weapon. With a loud curse in the goblin tongue, he turned and fled down the mountain path, as fast as his stout, clawed feet would carry him. “Yeah, that’s right! You’d better just ski right down that mountain.” Pinkie Pie galloped over to Twilight Sparkle, helping her up to her hooves. “It’s cool, Twilight; the meanie’s gone. Are you okay?” “Thanks, I’m okay.” Twilight Sparkle dusted herself off. “Luckily that Protect spell was enough to keep him at bay.” Rainbow Dash inhaled sharply as Fluttershy’s Cure Beam set about healing her wounds. “Thanks, Fluttershy. That stupid mallet really did a number on my shoulder.” She hesitantly rotated her shoulder, testing its soreness. “Never mind that,” said Fluttershy. “We need to take care of your poor wing.” She gently lifted Rainbow Dash’s wing with a hoof and inspected it. Rainbow Dash tilted her head. “My wing? What’s wrong with it?” “You broke it in that terrible fall!” Rainbow Dash scrunched up her mouth as she pondered what Fluttershy was referring to. With a start, her ears snapped upright. “Oh yeah!” She crumpled her wing off Fluttershy’s hoof, while flailing her own hooves about in an overly-dramatic fashion. “Ow! The pain! The unbearable pain!” She paused, looking up at Fluttershy to see if she was buying the act. She was not. “Your wing isn’t broken.” Rainbow Dash rubbed the back of her neck. “Heh. Surprise?” Fluttershy stared down at Rainbow Dash with unblinking eye lights. “I don’t understand,” she said in a flat tone. “Why would you lie about being hurt?” “I’m glad you asked!” Smirking, Rainbow Dash hopped up onto her hooves and walked over to the battle’s spoils. With a flip of her hoof, the Hero’s Medal spun up into the air and landed around her neck. “With the runts out of the way, the legendary hero of Sugardia is now none other than yours truly: Rainbow Dash!” She puffed out her chest and lifted her leg in a triumphant pose. “That’s what this was about?” Fluttershy marched up to her until the two were nose-to-nose. “You pretended to be injured so that you wouldn’t have to fight? So that those poor, helpless colts would do all the work for you? So that they would be scared half to death?” Rainbow Dash held her out at foreleg’s length. “Whoa! C’mon, Fluttershy! Those foals weren’t cut out for serious hero stuff. I was just helping them to figure that out.” “How?” Fluttershy knocked Rainbow Dash’s hooves away. “By nearly getting them killed?” “Fluttershy,” said Twilight Sparkle, meekly raising her hoof, “she wasn’t going to let them get hurt. The plan was just—” Fluttershy reeled around. “You knew?” The rebuke caused Twilight Sparkle to flinch instinctively. “She made a plan to put a couple of helpless children in harm’s way, and you didn’t do a thing to stop her?” The lights of her eyes narrowed. “I’m disappointed in you. Both of you.” “But, I just...” Twilight Sparkle bit her lip and gently lowered her hoof. Her tail curled up between her legs. “Well...” said Pinkie Pie, letting the words slowly roll off her tongue, “you weren’t going to let the goblin hurt them, right, Dashie?” Rainbow Dash emphatically shook her head. “No, of course not!” “And when they fell off that cliff, you were there to catch them.” A weak smile crossed her lips. “You weren’t really trying to put them in danger, right? You were just trying to give them a little scare?” “Right!” Rainbow Dash nodded at Fluttershy while pointing a hoof at Pinkie Pie. “Pranks! Harmless pranks.” “I guess pranks and scares can be fun sometimes. And after all, Dashie just wanted to protect them from the really scary stuff, so I guess her heart was in the right place.” Pinkie Pie turned to Fluttershy, broadening her smile. “Nopony got hurt, and Dashie seems really sorry, so we can let her off with a warning this time. Right, Fluttershy?” Fluttershy trotted ahead of the group. “She’d better not put innocent creatures in harm’s way again.” Rainbow Dash sighed and wiped her brow. “Thanks for the save, Pinkie. Fluttershy sure can be scary when she’s mad.” She followed Fluttershy along the mountain path. “Looks like there’s some sorta cave opening ahead. C’mon, Twi.” “Okay.” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 600 AD Puripony Mountains—Sacred Cave The party entered the cave in silence. Each pony was trapped within her own thoughts, reflecting on the recent argument and their journey as a whole. Nopony knew what to say or do in order to maintain the peace. Upon stepping inside of the cavern, however, their thoughts immediately unified upon one issue. “Why would—” Fluttershy started. “How is she—” asked Twilight Sparkle. Pinkie Pie blinked. “Well, she certainly, uh—” “What,” Rainbow Dash said flatly. The cave itself was dark and comprised on damp stone walls, much like any other cavern. It was not the cavern itself that the ponies were reacting to, but rather its occupant. A mint-colored unicorn was balancing on her hind legs, slowly walking her way around the perimeter of the cave. When she noticed her guests, she gave a disarming smile and carefully stepped toward them, windmilling her forelegs to keep balance. “Heya! How’s it going?” Rainbow Dash leaned away, raising a foreleg apprehensively. “Good. We’re good,” she said slowly. “How are you?” She closed her eyes and grinned. “Awesome! It’s great to have guests. We’re gonna have loads of fun together—I can tell!” She held up a foreleg for a hoof bump. “High five!” Rainbow Dash stared at the hoof. “Five?” “Lyra?” A second mare, cream colored with a pink and navy blue mane, approached from the rear of the cave. “Is somepony there? I heard—oh for the love of the Sun!” “Bon Bon!” Lyra waved to her friend with both forelegs. “Lookit, lookit! We’ve got visitors!” Bon Bon gritted her teeth. “Exactly. Visitors. So could you please try to act like a normal unicorn for a change?” Lyra frowned and rubbed her chin with a hoof. After a few seconds of contemplation, she grinned from ear to ear. “Nah. I’d rather be a human. Whoosh!” She ran forward a few meters, teetered, and fell roughly on her rump. “Yowie!” “A human?” Fluttershy turned to Pinkie Pie. “Those creatures are real?” “Uh-uh,” said Pinkie Pie, shaking their head. “They’re just mythological creatures, like the koala.” “Lyra and Bon Bon?” Twilight Sparkle asked rhetorically, arching an eyebrow. “You don’t say.” Bon Bon trotted to the side, blocking the ponies’ view of Lyra with her body. “Please ignore my chronically enfeebled friend. So...” She arched her own eyebrow as she stared at the Hero’s Medal hanging prominently around Rainbow Dash’s neck. “Mmm.” The two groups sized each other up in silence, save the howling wind that was sucked in through the cavern’s entrance. “So wait, they have the Lyrabon?” Rainbow Dash asked Twilight Sparkle. “Are they here for the sword?” asked Lyra at the same time, seated behind Bon Bon. “Yes,” growled Twilight Sparkle and Bon Bon in unison. “Great!” Rainbow Dash flared her wings and wiggled the Hero’s Medal with a hoof. “Name’s Rainbow Dash. As you can clearly see, I’m the legendary hero of Sugardia. Got the Hero’s Medal and everything.” Lyra flopped onto her back. “Ugh, this again?” Bon Bon rolled her eyes up toward the cavern’s stalactites and shook her head. “I’m not sure why you sound surprised. It’s always this.” “No, this is important!” Pinkie Pie appeared by Rainbow Dash’s side. “We need the sword in order to stop Nightmare Moon.” Fluttershy looked down at her hooves. “Everypony is counting on us.” Bon Bon’s ears twitched lightly. “Well, hero? Is this true?” “Hell yeah!” Rainbow Dash pumped her hoof. “We’re gonna kick Nightmare Moon’s teeth in. That’s why we need the Lyrabon.” Standing back up on her hind legs, Lyra planted an elbow on the small of Bon Bon’s back and propped herself up, much to Bon Bon’s bemusement. “Why does everypony always screw that part up?” asked Lyra. “A hero is defined by their soul, not their weapon or their own abilities. Giving the Lyrabon to somepony like you won’t accomplish anything.” Rainbow Dash hovered in front of Lyra’s face. “And what’s that supposed to mean?” Bon Bon shook her head. “You’ll see. Let’s just get this started already.” “Start?” Pinkie Pie tilted her head. “What are we starting?” “The test.” The two guardians’ eyes glowed in unison with a hot, white light. Currents of magic lifted them up into the air, rustling their manes and tails with each ebb and flow of power. They smirked at the four ponies below them. Rainbow Dash barely unsheathed her katana before Bon Bon assaulted her with a series of flying bucks. She deflected as many of the hooves as she could, but couldn’t prevent a few well-timed attacks from pelting her in the face. Pinkie Pie and Twilight Sparkle fired their weapons into the air, trying to lead their aim in front of the other airborne pony. Lyra laughed off their attacks, weaving effortlessly between each shot. “Is this all you’ve got? You can’t even hit me.” Bon Bon scowled at Rainbow Dash. “And you’re not trying to hit me. What gives?” She continued to rain kicks down onto her. Rainbow Dash weaved and deflected as many of the attacks as she could. “You’re a pony! Or at least, you look like one.” A particularly fierce kick sent vibrations along the length of the blade, rattling her teeth. “Killing Mystics is one thing. But I can’t—I won’t—kill other ponies.” Bon Bon grinned. “Admirable! But unless you strike back, you won’t—” Her sentence was interrupted as the flat edge of the katana connected with the side of her face, knocking her toward the ground. Rainbow Dash chuckled as she flapped her wings above her opponent. “Who said I wouldn’t strike back?” Lyra yelped and raised a Protect spell in the nick of time. Fluttershy’s jet thrusters blasted her into the bubble with full force, sending Lyra spinning head over hooves into the side of the cavern. “No lethal attacks,” Fluttershy said, “but we will defend ourselves.” She stared down her opponent. “For our sake, and for everypony’s sake.” Lyra propped herself off the wall with a hoof and shook her head, trying to rebalance herself in the air. Before she could fully recover, her hoof was frozen to the wall, pinning her in place. “Seriously!” yelled Pinkie Pie from below. “Both of you crazy, floaty ponies need to chill out.” Bon Bon looked up from her prone position in time to see a pair of ponies closing in on her. Twilight Sparkle slowly rotated her workbench hammer above her head and eyed Bon Bon coolly. From above, Rainbow Dash’s hooves crackled with a surge of electricity. “So,” said Bon Bon, “you can use magic.” Lyra’s horn glowed with a teal light; the ice encasing her hoof shattered. She looked down at Bon Bon. “Guess we should take these girls seriously, eh, Bon Bon? Y’know, we could use that move.” She wiggled her eyebrows playfully. Bon Bon sighed. “Of course you want to use that. Still,” she said, smiling at her approaching opponents, “we haven’t needed that technique since Sir Spike challenged us. Heck, why not?” She looked back up at Lyra and smiled. “Ready, hun?” She leapt over Twilight Sparkle and Rainbow Dash’s heads and drifted toward the roof of the cave. Lyra pumped her hooves. “Aww yeah! Let’s do this!” With a light twirl, she dove from the roof of the cave, plummeting toward Bon Bon in midair. The two guardians collided in a burst of magic that flooded the room with teal light. Rainbow Dash instinctively shielded her eyes. As she lowered her hooves and looked once more, her wings froze and she crashed to the ground. The two ponies had vanished, and in their place stood a towering creature of radiant energy. The beast’s lower half closely resembled one of the guardians—right down to her pink-and-navy-blue tail—except that Rainbow Dash’s head only came up to her withers. The similarities with a pony ended at that exact point; in place of a neck, a humanoid torso jutted out of the equestrian form. Silky, mint-colored hair flowed down the creature’s flesh-colored chest. A flat, human face sneered at Rainbow Dash. With an extended index finger, the luminescent centaur beckoned the ponies closer. Rainbow Dash backpedalled, bumping her hindquarters against a rocky outcropping. She tried to swallow, but her tongue felt as if it took up all of the free space in her mouth. “T-This is their secret technique? Lyrabon...” Twilight Sparkle leapt to her friend’s side and brandished her plasma gun at Lyrabon. “Stay strong, girls! Together, we can do this.” Fluttershy hovered overhead, spilling dark exhaust onto the damp stone floor. “Don’t forget why we’re here!” “I believe in all of you!” Rainbow Dash saw Pinkie Pie bounce up out of the corner of her eye. “S’no way we can lose.” Rainbow Dash looked between the faces of her three friends, each smiling and brimming with determination. She inhaled slowly, then let out a sharp snort. “Right! Time to take what’s mine!” Tightening her bite on the katana’s handle, Rainbow Dash blasted off the ground. She hurtled at full speed toward Lyrabon. Faster than anypony could blink, the centaur swung her fist in a crescent arc, slamming the pegasus sideways into the stone wall. The cavern reverberated with a sickening crunch as Rainbow Dash crumpled to the ground below. “Rainbow!” Fluttershy jetted to her friend’s side at full speed. Her eyes radiated with the emerald light of her Cure Beam, undoing Rainbow Dash’s severe trauma. Lyrabon trotted toward the pegasi; each of her towering hoofsteps brought her a meter closer to the pair. “Freeze, you mean meanie-pants!” A sheet of ice shot out from Pinkie Pie’s hooves, creating a transparent wall between her friends and enemy. Unfazed, Lyrabon turned and bucked the ice wall. Each sharp kick sent a new wave of fractures into the barrier. Rainbow Dash gasped for breath as she rose back to her hooves, blinking back tears as her injuries were undone. “Look out!” she croaked. She grabbed Fluttershy and leapt backwards just in time to avoid a shower of razor-sharp ice shards. Lyrabon crumbled the remains of the wall with a kick, only to stagger as a trio of plasma bolts raked across her flank. “Stay back!” Twilight Sparkle sharply waved Fluttershy back as she provided cover fire. “She’s way too strong. Stick to ranged attacks!” Rainbow Dash gritted her teeth. “No! We can’t just give up like that.” She beat her wings once more and took to the air. “I’m taking this she-beast down my way.” Lyrabon smirked with malice at Rainbow Dash’s approach. Her palms glowed with green magic even more intensely than the rest of her body. A whirling vortex appeared in the center of the cave, turning the howling wind in the cavern into a deafening roar. Rainbow Dash thrashed her wings with all of her strength, until the muscles at the base of her wings burned with unbearable pain. Her struggling was for naught; the cyclone pulled her in, sending her on an uncontrolled tumble before tossing her unceremoniously into a heap on the floor. “I see you, Rainbow Dash! Hang on!” Blue waves of healing energy billowed from Pinkie Pie’s body and drifted over Rainbow Dash’s limp form. The latter coughed and spat until the taste of iron left her mouth. “Fluttershy, we’ve got to get on the offensive!” Twilight Sparkle shouted above the roar of the tornado. She tossed a stream of magical flames at her friend. “Catch!” “Catch?!” Fluttershy screamed incredulously. “Eep!” She instinctively raised a hoof to block the incoming magic. To her amazement, the magical heat absorbed into her foreleg, turning its metal an iridescent red. “Oh, um, I see. T-Take this!” Streams of rocket flame erupted from behind her hoof, propelling the Burning Hoof at Lyrabon. The tornado’s gusts pushed against the projectile, yet it mostly found its mark, catching Lyrabon on the shoulder. She roared in pain, clutching a hand against the seared green hair covering the wound. “How?” said Rainbow Dash between coughs. “How are we supposed to win? She’s way too strong.” Her tail curled up between her shaking hind legs. “It—It’s just not possible! I can’t get anywhere near her!” Twilight Sparkle grit her teeth as her plasma shots were blown off-target. “I can’t hit her with that cyclone in the way!” Pinkie Pie tugged at her mane with both hooves. “I’m running out of ice-related puns!” Her mane whipped about with increasing violence, and she suddenly found herself lifting off the ground. “Yipes!” Lyrabon pushed the whirlwind forward with her magic aura. The tornado sucked Pinkie Pie and Twilight Sparkle up off the ground, tossing them about violently, ignoring their screams of protest. Their crumpled forms skidded roughly across the stone floor of the cavern, sliding to rest at Rainbow Dash’s hooves. Pinkie Pie stood back up, swaying lightly from side to side. Rainbow Dash initially presumed that she was dizzy from spinning in the cyclone or from her injuries, until she started to sing. Don’t quit now! We can’t lose this fight. Just push back with all of your might! Believe in you— Lyrabon’s our toughest foe yet. Stand as one, and tackle this threat! Believe in me— Even though faced with these doubt, crippled by fear, Still we must carry on. Don’t give up hope. Trust your heart. Keep your friends near. If you are hurt, this song will heal all your wounds! If you lose faith, this song will motivate you! If you’re afraid, your friends are all by your side! If you should fall, then I’ll just lift you back up! Don’t give up, don’t give in, fight ‘til the very end! As she sang, Fluttershy shone her Cure Beam at Pinkie Pie. Defying the laws of physics, the beam swirled around her, pulsing out waves of healing in rhythm to her song. One by one, the ponies felt the Aria Beam washing over them, invigorating them with new strength. Rainbow Dash extended her wings and snorted. “Die, dammit!” she screamed at Lyrabon, pouncing at her once more. “I don’t lose!” Her wings beat mercilessly against the cyclone’s currents, each feather and muscle finely-tuned toward keeping herself moving forward. Yet still, she felt herself succumbing to the wind. “I can’t lose!” As she felt herself slipping away once more, she twisted in a quick contortion. A Wind Slash tore out from her katana, heading straight in Lyrabon’s direction. As the sharp shockwave of air ripped through the cavern, it collided with the whirlwind before it could reach Lyrabon. The tornado bucked and swayed before slowly dissipating into nothingness. “I did it?” Rainbow Dash asked aloud to nopony in particular. Even without a tornado, the flapping of her wings generated enough of a breeze to cool the sweat beneath her fur. “I can attack her now?” The corners of Lyrabon’s lips curled upwards as she wagged a finger at Rainbow Dash. With a swift leap off her back hooves, she landed next to Fluttershy. Before the robot could protest, Lyrabon scooped her up and chucked her straight at Rainbow Dash. Fluttershy collided with her in midair, sent both of them plummeting to the ground, and crushed Rainbow Dash underneath the weight of so much steel. “Oh-my-goodness, oh-my-goodness, Rainbow, I am so-so-so sorry!” Fluttershy removed herself as quickly as she could, bathing Rainbow Dash in more healing light. Rainbow Dash’s face contorted in pain that was far more than physical. She squeezed her eyes shut, preventing tears that would not come. “Fall back! Everypony run for it! This is impossible.” She covered her head with her hooves. “She’s too damn strong! I c-can’t do this!” “Yes, you can.” Rainbow Dash slowly lifted her chin off the ground to look up at Fluttershy. Her muscles were too fatigued to flinch as an explosion rocked behind Fluttershy, bathing everything in the cavern with light and casting a strong backlight onto the robopony. “You’re strong, Rainbow.” Behind them, Lyrabon meekly held out her arms to shield herself, but the steady stream of Antipode rained down on her with explosive force. She roared in pain as the stream of magic pushed her back, preventing her from moving. “Strong?” replied Rainbow Dash, her voice ringing hollow. “Yeppers! It’s not just your muscles, either! It’s your heart.” Pinkie Pie sat back on her haunches, channeling a constant stream of ice from her hooves. She turned her head back toward Rainbow Dash and smiled. “I know, I know, it sounds cheesy, but it’s true! It’s what’s on the inside that matters most!” “Dash!” shouted Twilight Sparkle. Her horn was alight with a torrent of flames. Every muscle in her body was visibly tensed, from her snout to her hooves. She stole a glance at Rainbow Dash. “We made it this far because we all believe in each other. Don’t give up on us. Don’t give up on yourself!” With a shudder, her contribution to the Antipode gave out, as did Pinkie Pie’s. Rainbow Dash’s eyes unfocused. “Don’t give up on...” she murmured. With a flash, her eyes focused once more on Lyrabon. The centaur shrugged off the wounds from the magical onslaught and returned Rainbow Dash’s gaze. Lyrabon gave her a bemused look and arched an eyebrow. Rainbow Dash furrowed her brow and flattened her ears. “Right. Even if this is totally hopeless, I can’t give up. Not yet. Not when other ponies are counting on me.” Lyrabon grinned. “Fluttershy!” snapped Rainbow Dash. “We need a distraction. Can you buy us a few seconds?” For a moment, Fluttershy stood perfectly still. With a curt nod, she turned to face Lyrabon. “Okay, I’ll t-try!” She leapt forward and opened the panels on her flank. Twin lasers blasted into Lyrabon, eliciting screams of rage. “Twilight! Cover us.” Rainbow Dash tilted her head. “Me and Pinkie will take care of this.” Twilight Sparkle’s eyes darted between her two friends. “You and...” She set her jaw and nodded. “Okay. You can count on me.” Lyrabon turned and bucked at Fluttershy. With a quick twist of her underwing jets, Fluttershy blasted herself sideways out of harm’s way, her metal hooves shooting sparks as she slid across the stone floor. Repointing her wing jets forward, she flew into Lyrabon, Flutter Tackling her directly in the torso. Lyrabon staggered and clutched her chest with a hand. “You know what to do, Dashie!” Pinkie Pie tossed a glistening orb of sub-zero magic up toward the roof of the cave. Taking her cue, Rainbow Dash leapt into the air, approaching the ice at a blazing speed. Lyrabon reached behind her to grab a small boulder from the floor of the cavern. With a quick spin, she hurled the stone in the direction of the pegasus. A mere instant before impact, a translucent purple bubble enclosed around Rainbow Dash; the rock shattered harmlessly against Twilight Sparkle’s Protect spell. Upon touching the magical spark, Rainbow Dash’s katana hummed with frozen potential. “You can’t stop us here! You can’t!” She flipped through the air and nose-dived straight toward her foe. “We need to win this fight for her!” The Ice Sword technique slid effortlessly from forelock to barrel to ground. Rainbow Dash hopped back, assessing her enemy. Lyrabon grinned at her. To Rainbow Dash’s horror, the centaur appeared to be completely undamaged by the attack. Rainbow Dash twisted her neck back, readying another slash, when a flash of green light momentarily blinded her. Lyra and Bon Bon stood before her—Bon Bon on three hooves, Lyra on two—each holding one foreleg aloft. “That’s enough,” said Lyra. Bon Bon nodded. “We yield.” “Uwa?” replied Rainbow Dash. She lifted a foreleg and leaned away from the magical guardians. “We will bestow the legendary blade unto you,” continued Bon Bon. “Well, more or less.” Lyra winked at Rainbow Dash. “It’s cool, though. You know exactly what to do. Anywho,” she said, patting Bon Bon gently on the head, “I better get going. See ya soon!” With that, Lyra’s form glowed an intense shade of teal before diffusing into the stone wall. Bon Bon smiled once more at Rainbow Dash before glowing herself. She also disappeared, but unlike her friend, she left something behind. Where she once stood, a small silver object reappeared on the cavern floor. In stark silence, the four ponies circled around the object. It was the steel blade of a broadsword: immaculately polished, sharpened to the finest edge, and roughly severed at its base. The sword’s hilt was nowhere to be found. In light of everything—the epic battle, the thunderous tornado, and now the hollow victory—the deafening silence lasted for what felt like hours, or even days. Eventually, Pinkie Pie was the first to speak up. “That’s it?” she whispered. “I don’t understand,” said Twilight Sparkle, shaking her head. “The sword is broken. How can we defeat Nightmare Moon with just a blade?” “We can’t even repair it without the hilt,” said Fluttershy. She rubbed her foreleg against the back of the other. “Assuming that anypony can even fix a legendary sword.” The cave lapsed back into silence. After another pause of indeterminate length, Rainbow Dash reached down. Carefully biting down on the blade, she lifted it up and placed it gently into her saddlebags. “Right,” she said, smiling back at her friends. “Ready to go?” “Go?” Twilight Sparkle shared confused glances with her other friends before finally settling her gaze on Rainbow Dash. “Go where?” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 600 AD Frog’s Residence “Rainbow Dash!” Frog welcomed her with a hug, and proceeded to hug the rest of the visitors in turn. “My, my, my, but this is a surprise! You’ve only been gone for the afternoon. I didn’t expect to see you for at least a full day. Come in, please; I want to hear absolutely everything.” “It was actually a pretty crazy ordeal,” laughed Twilight Sparkle. She seated herself on one of the pillows that Frog had set out for her guests. “A pair of colts, a pair of mares—” “Oh dear, Frog.” Fluttershy hovered gently above everypony else in the room. She pointed a hoof at the cloth draping hanging along the wall. “This decoration has mud stains all over it.” Frog chuckled. “Oh, Fluttershy, of course it has a little grime on it. I do everything in my power to keep my accommodations immaculate, but when the drapings are literally touching a dirt wall, well, sometimes things can’t be avoided.” Her cheeks turned a light hue of red. Fluttershy stared down at Frog for a moment. “But, um,” she said, turning back to the draping, “I don’t think that’s it. It almost looks like some sort of critter was stomping on this, even though it’s hanging on the wall.” Her attention was drawn to another section of the decoration. “Oh my, it also looks like the fabric was torn here, and then somepony stitched it back together.” Frog laughed harder, waving her hoof dismissively. “Fluttershy, honestly, it’s all right! These kind of accidents are bound to happen in a base d'opération such as this one. That draping was probably damaged and repaired who knows how many years prior. You simply aren’t remembering every little detail from your last visit, I’m sure. Anyway!” She clapped her webbed pads together in glee. “Dish, dish, dish. You were about to tell me all about your adventure today.” “Right,” continued Twilight Sparkle. “So we—RD? You too?” She turned fully to face her friend. “Why is everypony picking through Frog’s stuff?” Rainbow Dash had a deep frown stuck to her face. Her eyes danced about the inside of the pit, searching for something. She smiled as her gaze settled upon Frog’s dress form, still displaying the same gown from before. She glided over and landed beside the dress form. A giddy squeal escaped Frog’s lips. “I knew it! I knew it. You made quite a show of feigning disinterest in my work earlier, but I knew it. A mare of your elegance simply cannot resist the allure of high fashion.” She moved closer to Rainbow Dash, half-trotting and half-skipping. “That piece there should be close enough to your measurements, so if you’d like to try it on, I could resize—” Her jaw locked open in mid-sentence. Twilight Sparkle, Pinkie Pie, and Fluttershy gasped collectively. “Rainbow Dash, what are you doing?” Twilight Sparkle was barely audible, as both of her hooves were nearly completely covering her own face. “You can’t just destroy other... ponies’...” Rainbow Dash held her hoof against the snapped neck of the dress form; its head hung limply against its own withers. Rainbow Dash buried her muzzle inside the neck of the plastic pony. After a second, she pulled back, clutching a severed, golden sword hilt in her mouth. A single blue sapphire was embedded into the pommel. A few inches of fractured steel blade jutted out above the golden crossguard. Rainbow Dash turned to Frog, whose eyes had grown to the size of dinner plates. “See, when we only found half of the sword up on top of Puripony, I knew we’d find the other half somewhere in here.” Frog frowned and swallowed noisily. “You knew? In here? I’m afraid I don’t follow.” She shook her head rapidly. “Why would you expect for me to be holding onto half of the Lyrabon?” Rainbow Dash lowered her head to the ground. She stuck a hoof underneath the ribbon of the Hero’s Medal and gently slid it off her neck. As she raised her head back up, she smiled at Frog and hoofed the Hero’s Medal to her. “Because it’s yours.” * * * Chapter 22: The Rare, Red Rock 600 AD Frog’s Residence “I’m afraid you’re mistaken.” Rainbow Dash’s mouth flapped open and shut as she stared incredulously at Frog and continued to wave the Hero’s Medal in the latter’s face. “Mistak... But I... You’re...” Frog turned and closed her eyes, nodding at nopony in particular. “The hero is, in fact, Sir Spike of Sugardia. I had merely been holding onto his possessions—the Lyrabon’s hilt and the Hero’s Medal—until he returns to us. They are his, and not mine.” Twilight Sparkle raised her hoof, but Frog continued. “I noticed that I had... misplaced the Hero’s Medal during a recent excursion into town. When you mentioned that one of the local urchins from town had found it, my first instinct was to reclaim it once more, on Sir Spike’s behalf.” She turned to Rainbow Dash and smiled. “But as Rainbow described herself taking up the legendary blade and doing battle against Nightmare Moon, I came to realize that, truly, she had what it takes. Why wait for the future to change when somepony has the power to change it, after all? And that is why I gave her my blessing.” “That doesn’t make any sense,” Rainbow Dash said. Her brow had furrowed and her lips had curled into a sneer while Frog had been explaining herself. “Why didn’t you just become the hero yourself?” “Because I’m not the hero. Spike was. And besides,” Frog added quickly, pointing a webbed foot at the hilt, “if you hadn’t noticed, it’s broken.” “Oh yes, I was wondering about the sword,” said Fluttershy. She stepped forward and lifted a hoof off the ground. “Is there anypony who can repair it? I mean, I wouldn’t mind taking it to a blacksmith for you.” “Who cares?” Rainbow Dash tossed her hooves into the air. “Why does it even matter what sword you’re using, or whether you’ve got some shiny medal? This is so stupid. You’re still you, aren’t you? And you’re pretty awesome, so let’s go take down Nightmare Moon together! I know you can, so don’t—” “Rainbow Dash.” Frog’s icy tone caused Rainbow Dash’s voice to stick in her throat. “I already told you. I am not a hero. I do not possess the weapon of legend, and even if I did, I am not fit to wield it.” Her eyes narrowed. “Do not make me repeat myself.” Rainbow Dash glared back at Frog, her ears flattening behind her. They locked eyes in silence for a few moments before turning sharply, each marching away from the other. “Fine!” yelled Rainbow Dash. She clumsily jammed the hilt into her saddlebags. “We’ll go get your stupid sword fixed for you, and when we get back, you better be ready to come fight with us!” She jetted out of the hollow, up into the forest above them. Her companions silently looked to one another before following after her. “Thank you!” Frog screamed at her departing guests. “And it’s not my sword!” In a huff, she stomped her way over to the dress form. She gently held a foot against the snapped head, closed her eyes, and sighed into the empty room, feeling the tension slowly evaporate from her body. “It’s Spikey-Wikey’s,” she whispered. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 600 AD Cursed Woods “What’s her damn problem?” hissed Rainbow Dash. She flinched and quickly cast a glance in Twilight Sparkle’s direction. Her friend was plodding along through the well-shaded meadows, staring intently at the blades of grass as she stepped over them. Rainbow Dash let out a quiet sigh of relief before continuing, “Seriously, though. She’s strong enough to join us. I know it. She knows it. So why is she being so fussy about legends, and medals, and this Spike guy that everypony keeps yammering on about?” “I’m kinda worried.” Pinkie Pie’s face was frozen in a wince. “I feel like there’s something she’s not telling us.” Bon Bon sighed and shook her head. “Her heart is in the right place. Just give her some time, and I’m sure she’ll come around.” Twilight Sparkle bit her lip. “I guess you’re right. Anyway, it’ll take us a while to—yah!” She leapt sideways and fell onto a plush, green shrub. She stared wide-eyed at Bon Bon and pointed a hoof at her. “W-Where’d you come from?” “Duh!” Lyra poked her head out of Rainbow Dash’s saddlebags. Rainbow Dash jolted; Lyra simply laughed. “I mean, you did sorta take us with you.” “Goodness.” Fluttershy raised a hoof to her mouth as the rest of the herd came to a standstill around them. “I just assumed that you were guarding the sword. I didn’t realize that you were actually—” “Sword spirits! Yup!” Lyra hopped out of the saddlebag and landed on the grass. She threw a foreleg around Fluttershy’s shoulder, eliciting a metallic rattling from her. “Spiritual manifestation of the weapon, embodiment of the dreams of our creator, the whole nine yards.” Rainbow Dash shook her head clear, then returned to scowling. “I’m right, though, aren’t I? She’s the hero, so she’s the one who should wield you.” She shook her head again. “Your sword.” Again. “Whatever.” Bon Bon stared past Rainbow Dash, a faint curl of a smile appearing on her lips. “Possibly. Possibly. We’ll cross that bridge when we come to it.” “Right,” said Twilight Sparkle, dusting herself off and rejoining the group. “First thing’s first. We need to get you—I mean, the sword—repaired. So,” she said, motioning with a hoof for Bon Bon to continue, “where do we start?” “Well, that’s the thing. Our creator could repair us, but...” Bon Bon shared a grimace with Lyra. “Getting in touch with her will be slightly impossible.” With a frown, Lyra hopped up onto her back hooves and leaned against Fluttershy’s side. “And then there’s the problem of finding some Dreamstone.” “Dreamstone?” Pinkie Pie’s face lit up, and she hopped from hoof to hoof. “Ooo! Is that where a poor little pony has a rock fall on their head, and then they’re off to Dream Land?” “No,” Bon Bon said as she held a hoof to her temples, “but if you find one of those, let me know.” She shook her head. “Anyways, the Dreamstone we’re looking for is the material that our blade is made of. It’s a brilliant red mineral that could hold the energy of emotions.” “Say wha’?” asked Rainbow Dash. “It’s true,” Lyra said with a laugh. “Our sword is able to channel emotions. It’s charged up with the hopes and wishes of our creator, and we’re the embodiment of her dreams.” She blinked and looked down at Fluttershy. “I already said that, didn’t I?” Fluttershy fidgeted underneath Lyra’s weight. “Um, I know that my history records aren’t really that large, but I don’t think I’ve ever heard of Dreamstone. Also, could you please—” “That’s the problem,” said Bon Bon. “It was already a rare mineral long ago. Anymore, it’s practically unknown.” Lyra shrugged and shook her head. “Yep. Finding some Dreamstone now is gonna be a huge pain in the flank.” She chuckled. “I mean, it’s too bad you girls aren’t, like, time travelers. We could totally hop back in time and grab loads of the stuff.” Rainbow Dash smirked at Lyra. Twilight Sparkle buried her face in her hooves. “...What?” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ End of Time “Yo, Doc!” Rainbow Dash called out upon landing on the cobblestone platform. “Ah, Rainbow! How good to see you.” The Doctor stood beneath his lamppost, welcoming the four ponies as they descended along the column of light. Trixie scowled. She was reclined on a cloud of silvery, glistening magic that gently drifted over the lamppost. “Great, the loud one is back.” She scooped up some of the magic cloud with her hooves and jammed it into her ears. “The Great and Powerful Trixie liked her better when she was fighting with her friends.” She stared at her hoof, losing herself in contemplation. “Or when she was pledging her fealty to Trixie.” “So, how goes the quest?” The Doctor’s eyes danced from pony to pony. “Stopped the big bad yet, have we?” “Oh. No, not yet.” The light of Fluttershy’s eyes hid behind her metallic pink mane. “Actually, we could use some assistance.” “Splendid!” The Doctor caught himself, tapping his cheek with a hoof. “Err, not splendid that you’re stuck, mind you. Splendid that you’ve come here for help. After all, that’s why I’m here.” “Of course! The Great and Powerful Trixie is willing to bestow her eons of knowledge with these poor, downtrotten lot.” Trixie flipped herself over and leered down at Rainbow Dash. “Did our little party leader forget how to use her kitchen knife? Pointy end goes in the bad guys, little filly.” She gasped in an exaggerated, theatrical manner. “Oh! Or did you forget how to drink again? Water goes in your ‘mouth.’ That’s the hole in your face that makes that hooves-on-chalkboard sound.” She coolly eyed The Doctor, who was in the middle of giving her a particularly scathing glare. “What?” she asked. “That was funny. Don’t lie to Trixie.” She shrugged and rested her chin on the lip of the silver cloud. Twilight Sparkle cleared her throat. “Anyway. We’re looking for a mineral called Dreamstone. Have you heard of it?” “Did you say Dreamstone?” The Doctor’s eyes bulged. “Well, yes of course, I’ve heard of Dreamstone. How, pray tell, have you heard of Dreamstone?” “Well, see,” Rainbow Dash said, nudging her head toward her own saddlebags, “we found this one sword that was made out of that stuff, and—” “The Lyrabon?” The Doctor let out a raspy chuckle. “You found it? The Lyrabon, in 600 AD? And Lavos, that’s in 600 AD too, is it?” He held a hoof to his temple and shook his head. “Bugger me. What else is there in 600 AD? The Sun Stone? A few Skyway stations, perhaps?” Rainbow Dash shared a wince with Twilight Sparkle. “Uh, what the hay is he talking about?” The Doctor’s chuckle softened. He drooped his head forward, shaking it lightly to and fro. “Sorry, sorry. Bit carried away, there. Honestly, these types of coincidences shouldn’t be the least bit surprising, by now.” He jerked his head upright, once more wearing his signature welcoming smile. “Right then! You need some Dreamstone. Now you might have gathered this by now, but it’s a fairly rare substance in the time periods that you’re acclimated to. No, if it’s Dreamstone you’re after, you’ll have to go back in time. Way back.” “Oh! Trixie knows!” She winked out of existence from atop her cloud and reappeared a second later on the far platform, standing next to a column of light that the ponies had not yet traveled upon. Her face was aglow, with a twinkle in her eye and a smile stretching from dimple to dimple. “The prehistoric era! 65,000,000 BC, to be precise. You should be able to find more than enough Dreamstone back then.” Rainbow Dash backpedaled a full three steps. She quickly looked to The Doctor. He nodded. “Good call, Ms. Great and Powerful. Even in that era, Dreamstone was considered to be valuable, but at this junction it’s likely your best chance.” Twilight Sparkle slowly approached the column while giving Trixie a sidelong glance. “You were insulting Dash less than a minute ago. Now you’re helping us?” Trixie cringed. “The Great and Pow...” As her voice trailed off, she sighed and hung her head. “I mean, I-I’m sorry. I realize that I can be a bit, well, belligerent at times.” She looked up while biting her lip. “But my intentions are good, really! I’m only pushing you so hard because I want you to make an impact.” A faint blush appeared on her cheeks as she avoided making eye contact with Twilight Sparkle. “I am truly sorry. Consider this Gate to be my way of closing this chapter of our lives, permanently.” Twilight Sparkle smiled gently and pulled Trixie into a soft embrace, nuzzling against her silvery mane. “Thank you, Trixie,” she said as her friends stepped into the new light column. “That was a very courageous thing for you to say.” She stepped back into the column and felt the currents of time slowly pull her into the past. “When we get back, I hope we can spend more time together and become good friends.” Trixie beamed and waved farewell to the departing ponies. “Bon voyage! Watch your step!” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 65,000,000 BC Magic Mountains As the Gate closed behind them, the four ponies gasped at the majesty before them. The prehistoric landscape stretched out in every direction, cast in a golden glow from the immense setting sun. They could see for kilometers and kilometers from their high vantage point. Acres of lush forests spread around them, breaking way to rivers of crystal-blue which glistened with reflected sunlight. The land was raw, untamed and pristine in its beauty. “Oh my,” said Fluttershy. “What a wonderful sunset.” Twilight Sparkle’s eyes shimmered. “Wow, this era is amazing. Remind me to thank Trixie for sending us here.” “I gotta admit, this is a pretty sweet view.” Rainbow Dash rubbed the back of her neck. “I mean, I think sunsets are boring and all, but if they’re your kind of thing, then this one is cool, I guess.” Pinkie Pie’s eyes froze. Her tail began to wiggle and bounce in an erratic manner. “Twitchy tail?” she whispered. A harrowing lull overtook the group. Their stomachs filled with a twisting, foreboding sense of dread. Slowly, inevitably, their gazes turned collectively downward, taking note of the incredible distance between their hooves and the ground. “Remind me to strangle Trixie for sending us here,” Twilight Sparkle deadpanned. The four friends screamed in unison as gravity finally claimed them, accelerating them toward an untimely reunion with the ground. Fluttershy’s positronic mind was the first to process the situation, but before her wing-jets could fully warm up, Rainbow Dash had opened her full wingspan instinctively. Below the two now-flying pegasi, Twilight Sparkle’s mind buzzed and her horn came alight. With a sharp grunt, a blast of magic flew below her and popped in a flash of light. When her vision cleared, she found herself cushioned by a glistening magenta cloud. “Yaiiie!” Pinkie Pie continued both her scream and her freefall. Far below her, a flat, beige plain waited resolutely, threatening to embrace her with a fatal impact. “Pinkie!” yelled Rainbow Dash. She tucked in her wings and dove hooves-first, plummeting past Twilight Sparkle. Faster. Twi yelling something. Faster! Gotta save Pinkie. Two pony-lengths away. Ground closing in. Not enough time. One pony-length away. Quit flailing, dammit. Wind swirling around me. Almost there. So fast! My hoof slipped. Ground so close! Almost... There! Got her. Speed! Squeeze her tightly. Ground! Pull up, pull up, pull-up-pull-up-pull— Twilight Sparkle and Fluttershy descended as quickly as they could, struggling to balance their speed and safety. The former hopped off her cloud first, planting a few deep hoofprints in the muddy surface. “Dash? Pinkie? Are you alright?” She sprinted toward their landing site. Pinkie Pie giggled from her reclined position. “Hee hee, yup! That was a close one, but we are a-okay! Or I hope so, anyway. Aw, poor Dashie!” She laughed harder, rocking back and forth in the fetal position. She rested a dozen centimeters above a thick, murky mud pit, resting atop two cyan hooves that poked up from the ground. Behind them, a deep ravine had been carved into the muck by Rainbow Dash’s crash landing, and was slowly filling itself back in as it settled. “Oh no, Rainbow Dash! Hold still. We’ll help you out.” Fluttershy trotted up to her friend’s submerged hooves and dug away at the mud surrounding them. Twilight Sparkle and Pinkie Pie assisted in scraping away the muck, and after a minute or two, a pegasus-shaped pile of mud stood beside them. “Well,” said Rainbow Dash as a blob of gunk dripped from her chin, “that was not my coolest rescue.” Pinkie Pie laughed and tried to clean her friend up. “Oh Dashie, you’re filthy!” Each scrape of her hoof pulled off part of the mess, but Rainbow Dash was still covered from head to hoof. “You’re gonna need a new nickname. Like Rain-brown Dirt. Or Mucky Dash.” Twilight Sparkle winced and cast her eyes down and to the side. Her ears fell limp. “I’m just glad you’re okay,” she murmured. “And what in blue blazes do ya think yer doin’?” Everypony jerked upright, searching for the source of the booming cry. Atop a nearby rocky ledge, an orange earth pony glared down at them. Her blonde mane, bound in a ponytail and poking out from underneath a brown Stetson, flapped about upon a gust of wind. In lieu of saddlebags like the other ponies were wearing, the earth pony has a cord of rope coiled around her torso, nearly hiding her trio-of-apples cutie mark from view. She leapt down from ledge to ledge, descending the cliff at a dizzying rate. “Ooo, a new pony!” Pinkie Pie bounced to the front of the group and offered a hoofshake. “Hi there! I’m—” “Well?” yelled the earth pony. She advanced on Rainbow Dash, who backed herself against the cliff-side in return. “You gonna answer me, or you just gonna stand there with yer mouth hangin’ open like a nincompoop?” “Hey, hold on.” Twilight Sparkle trotted over to her friend and held up a hoof defensively. “Who are you, even? You can’t just come up here and yell at my friends!” The earth pony maintained her glare on Rainbow Dash for a moment longer, before sighing testily. She lifted a hoof to the brim of her hat and nodded to Twilight Sparkle. “Howdy. Name’s Applejack. I’ll make with the introductions proper-like in a minute, but first I gotta have a word with this one.” She stared back at Rainbow Dash for a moment, then slammed a hoof into the mud for emphasis. “Well?!” Rainbow Dash quickly glanced at her friends, unable to meet the glare in front of her. “I-I’m sorry?” “You should be!” Applejack jabbed her in her mud-covered chest. “You know how dangerous it is out here, and you know what my thoughts is. I can’t believe you would deliberately disobey me like that!” “What?” She gulped and shook her head. “I didn’t mean to—” “Didn’t mean to?” Applejack’s jaw locked and she shouted through her teeth. “Didn’t mean to? I’ve got half a mind to...” She turned away from Rainbow Dash, inhaled sharply, and held her breath. Her expression lightened as the seconds rolled by. After a pause, she released a gentle sigh and turned back to Rainbow Dash. “Look. You know why my britches are all up in a bunch, don’t you?” “Uh...” “Because I care ‘bout ya. It’s just so dangerous out here, and when you keep running off like this, I just, shoot...” Applejack bit her lip. “It eats me up inside. If something were to happen to you, I just don’t know what I’d do with myself.” She gently placed her hoof on Rainbow Dash’s shoulder. “Please. Please don’t make me suffer like this.” “But, I...” She looked again to Twilight Sparkle, who could do nothing except wince and shrug. Rainbow Dash looked back at Applejack. Both her resolve and her confusion wavered as she stared into those shimmering green eyes. “Uh, okay, I guess. Sorry.” Applejack’s mouth flipped up into a cute, tight smile. “Atta girl. You know I can’t stay mad atcha.” She chuckled and wiped some of the layers of mud off Rainbow Dash’s muzzle. “Now c’mere, you.” Rainbow Dash’s eyes bulged. Her mind evaporated, no longer capable of putting together a coherent thought. All she had were sensations. A hoof massaged her withers, slipping and sliding over her mud-covered coat. Hot breath ran across her neck. A strong tongue flicked about inside her mouth, wrestling her own tongue. Her best friend shrieked at the top of her lungs. Applejack broke off the kiss and threw a death-glare at Twilight Sparkle. “D’ya mind? We ain’t exactly puttin’ on a show here.” Twilight Sparkle’s breaths were shallow and rapid. A shaky hoof tried desperately to stay pointed at Applejack and Rainbow Dash. She vocalized exactly what it was that she found to be so objectionable. “Gyuh... Beh... Dwi... Nggh!” “Wuh... Bwa... Oeh...” agreed Rainbow Dash. “Tsk, some ponies.” Applejack frowned and tugged on Rainbow Dash’s shoulder. “C’mon, DD, let’s get goin’.” Pinkie Pie blinked. “DD?” She pointed her hoof at Rainbow Dash. “RD.” Applejack cocked her head to the side. “What in tarnation?” She studied the mud-caked pony in front of her. With a loud hawk from the back of her throat, she spat onto her hoof, then rubbed vigorously on Rainbow Dash’s cheek, ignoring her whines of protest. As she wiped away the layers of grime, a bright patch of cyan appeared beneath her hoof. Applejack stared blankly at the cyan fur for a moment. Slowly, her own cheeks underwent a color change themselves, from orange to bright fuchsia. “Wait-a-minute, you ain’t... and I just...” She brought a hoof to her lips as her blush only grew in intensity. “Oh my stars, I am so very, very sorry. Here I am, scoldin’ you and goin’ on like that, even though we was total strangers, and even goin’ so far as—” She whipped her hat off and buried her face into it. “Shoot, you must think I’m some sorta hussy.” “Oh, um, no, not at all,” said Fluttershy. “After all, it was just an innocent case of mistaken identity. Right, Rainbow?” “Taa...” “We should really get you cleaned up, Dashie,” giggled Pinkie Pie. “Maybe I can use a spell to clean you up. Wait, no, that’s just ice. Hmm.” She rubbed her chin for a fraction of a second before her ears perked up again. “Ooo! I know. I’ll make some ice, and Twilight can make some fire to melt the ice, and then... Oh.” She grinned sheepishly. “That goes kaboomie, doesn’t it? Hee hee, good thing we thought that through first, huh, Twilight?” Twilight Sparkle stared straight ahead, her pointing forehoof still vibrating unsteadily. Applejack returned her hat to its rightful place atop her head. “C’mon, let’s head back to my village and getcha cleaned up. Least I kin do for—” She spun around, crouched low, and hissed. “Shh. Y’hear that?” Her eyes narrowed from beneath the brim of her hat. From a nearby valley, a cloud of dust rose into the air. From the distance, cries of rage grew in volume and clarity. As the dust cloud approached, Rainbow Dash could make out the forms of two dozen green monsters. They were quadrupedal lizards, nearly as big as a pony, covered from nose to tail in dull green scales. Sharp claws adorned their feet, sharp spines lined their backs, and sharp fangs filled their mouths. “Shoot, more of them goons,” spat Applejack. She bit down on her rope and, with a sharp jerk of her head, unfurled it from around her torso. “Y’all git outta here while ya got the chance. Go on, now. Run for it.” “Run?” Rainbow Dash said hollowly, her mind still trying to recover. “Why? What are you gonna do?” Applejack smirked at her and winked. “Kick their flanks. Yee-haw!” She leapt into the pack of monsters, whirled around, and bucked two of them squarely in the jaws, sending them flying up into the air. With practiced motion, she flicked the rope in her mouth, spinning the lasso above her head. She hopped out of the path of one of the charging lizards and roped another, pulling it off its legs roughly. Rainbow Dash looked back at her wings and gave them a tentative flap. Her feathers were coated with muck, making her movements heavy and clumsy. Snorting, she bit down into the mud on her back, ignoring the horrible taste, and extracted her katana. She leapt in after Applejack, running cleanly through one of the lizards and gashing another across its chest. Applejack grinned at her as she hopped over a lizard’s tackle. “Thought I said to make a break for it.” “What?” Rainbow Dash flipped onto her back and kicked a lizard in the gut as it sailed over her. “And let you have all the fun?” Applejack bucked the airborne, winded lizard in the head, dropping it permanently. She chuckled. “You sure you ain’t DD?” The remaining lizards were no match for the two ponies’ strength and resolve. After a dozen more of their comrades fell, the few survivors turned tail and ran, escaping back through the valley. “Hoo-wee!” Applejack whipped her head around, sending her lasso spinning around her torso while her ponytail swung forward like a counterweight. She turned back toward Rainbow Dash. “Not many ponies who’ll go all out ‘gainst them lizardfolk. You sure are a feisty one, full of piss ‘n’ vinegar.” “Yeah. I’m pretty awesome.” Rainbow Dash ran a hoof through her spiky mane. The sweat and exertion from the fight had stripped most of the mud away, revealing her rainbow hues. “I mean, you were really strong and all, but you need to learn some more radical moves. Gotta look good when you’re kicking butt. Know what I mean?” Applejack smirked. “Or maybe, you should be more focused on gettin’ the job done, and less about looking flashy while ya do it.” She shared a quiet stare with Rainbow Dash, each mare sizing up the other. “Never did catch yer real name, by the by.” “Yeah!” giggled Pinkie Pie. “You were too busy smooching each—” “Rainbow Dash. I’m Rainbow Dash,” A light pink tinge crossed her cheeks. “And you said you were...” “Applejack, that’s right.” She coughed. “Head of the Apple Family.” Her pupils dilated and her smile returned. “Speakin’ of, lemme extend our hospitality again and offer for you to get yourselves cleaned up at our village. Better yet, we could put together a bit of a celebration. It’s always a pleasure to meet another pony who ain’t afraid to kick tail.” Pinkie Pie gaped. “Whoa. Hold on a second. We just met you—” “Yep, just now, though I didn’t catch all y’all’s names yet.” “—and you wanna be our friends—” “Well sure! Y’all seem like right dependable folk, ‘specially this Rainbow gal.” “—and you want to throw us a party?” “A party? Well sure, I reckin so.” Applejack spun her hoof in a circle as she tried to find the proper words. “Sorta like a ‘Welcome to Apple Village, Pleased to Make Yer Acquaintances’ sorta party.” Pinkie Pie walked up to Applejack and threw both her forelegs around her. She whispered in her ear, “I think you and me are going to be bestest of best friends.” She bounced backward and proceeded to energetically hop in place. “Lead the way, new best friend!” “Sure thing,” said Applejack. “The village ain’t more than a few minutes thisaway. Try to keep up!” With a laugh, she broke at a full gallop into the valley. Pinkie Pie and Rainbow Dash raced after her. Fluttershy made to follow after them, but stopped herself suddenly. “Oh, um, Twilight? Are you coming with us?” She paused. “The others are getting ahead, so we should really, um...” Twilight Sparkle stared straight ahead, mute. Her eyes had grown to the size of dinner plates. * * * Chapter 23: Yee-haw! Hoedown! 65,000,000 BC Apple Village Commons Applejack banged her hoof on the table. “Now listen up, y’all!” Around the roaring bonfire in the center of the square stood dozens of earth ponies. Stallions, mares, and foals of all colors were chatting and laughing, biding time for the kickoff. At Applejack’s call, they quickly quieted themselves down and turned their attention to the long wooden table at the front of the commons. Applejack motioned to the pony seated right next to her. “This here’s Rainbow Dash. She’s one heckuva tough mare, and she helped keep our village safe from those no-good beasties.” The throngs of earth ponies, backlit by the blazing fire, delivered a symphony of greetings and introductions. Rainbow Dash grinned and jutted out her chest, basking in the accolades. “And these are all of Rainbow’s friends: we got Twilight Sparkle, Fluttershy, ‘n’ Pinkie Pie. Make sure you give ‘em all a good heap of the old Apple Village hospitality.” The villagers redoubled their welcoming efforts. Pinkie Pie gleefully waved back to everypony, while Fluttershy tried to hide from the many new ponies beneath her mane. Applejack reared up and flailed her front hooves. “Now enough of the chattin’. Let’s get this show on the road.” As the villagers cheered, Applejack leaned over to Rainbow Dash and shouted above the din. “Help yerself to the grub.” She pointed to a nearby table. “We got apple pies, apple dumpling, apple cobbler, apple flambé, apple—whoa nelly!” She laughed as the pegasus bolted over to the food table and promptly loaded up a plate. A tan stallion approached the head table, pulling a wagon laden with several wooden casks. “Hey AJ, what should we do with the cider?” “Go ahead and set up here, Caramel,” said Applejack as she motioned across the table from herself. She turned to Fluttershy. “It’s my own special batch of concentrated cider, nice and strong. Y’know, for the grownup ponies.” She winked. “A real big hit at these types of shindigs.” Caramel filled up a mug from the spout on one of the barrels. He hoofed the frothy mug up to the table. “Alrighty! Who wants the honors?” “Ooo! Pick me, pick me!” Pinkie Pie stretched her hooves toward the offered mug. “I love cider, and trying a new kind of cider sounds like—hey!” The mug of cider floated out of Pinkie Pie’s reach. It glided over Pinkie Pie’s head and landed atop a lavender hoof. Twilight Sparkle tossed the mug back, gulping down mouthful after mouthful. She slammed the mug onto the table and winced, letting out a raspy hiss as the alcohol burned her throat. After regaining her composure, she stared vacantly at Caramel. “Another.” Caramel took a cautious step backwards. “Uh, o-of course! Another cup, comin’ right up!” Applejack sat down next to Pinkie Pie and laughed. “Don’t worry, hun. Got plenty more where that came from.” She looked at the other’s downtrodden face. “Seems like a dry throat ain’t your biggest problem. Got something on your mind?” “Mmm. Well...” Pinkie Pie ran her tongue across her roof of her mouth. “I was just wondering. You said you were the head of the Apple Family?” “Yes, ma’am. Got the whole clan dependin’ on me.” Pinkie Pie looked down at her hooves. “Isn’t that tough? I mean, everypony is counting on you. It’s so much pressure, and time, and responsibility.” “Well, sure,” Applejack said with a wink. “But ain’t nothing wrong with a bit of responsibility. Don’t you get that warm feeling in your heart when you put in a full day’s work and accomplish a whole lotta good?” Pinkie Pie shrugged apathetically. “I guess. But, like, don’t you miss having your own life?” She bit her lip. “You’re more than just a leader.” Applejack arched her eyebrow and smiled. “Of course, Pinkie. Life’s always a balancin’ act. Leadin’ the ponyfolk here is always the most important thing, cuz they’re depending on me. They need my help.” She lifted Pinkie Pie’s chin. “But you’re right. I’m my own pony, too. Burning myself out won’t do nopony a lick of good. When I can find time to, I like to unwind just as much as anypony. And since I’m in charge, I get to decide when we have our festivities.” She grinned. “Does that answer your question, sugarcube?” Pinkie Pie’s wide smile returned. “Yeah, I think so... Yep!” She gave Applejack a crisp salute. “For the sake of everypony, I gotta get down and shake my groove thang, stat!” Applejack burst out laughing. “Close enough, Pinkie. Close enough.” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ Rainbow Dash carefully stepped hoof by hoof, working her way to the end of the food table. A heaping plate of vittles was balanced on her back, braced between her two upraised wings. She bit down on a candied apple and, with a practiced grace, flicked the treat behind her onto the top of her plate. Satisfied for now, she started her trek back to the table of honor. Before she made it halfway there, she was grabbed roughly around the neck. A mare glared directly eye-to-eye with her. “Listen up, you skanky horse,” she growled. “Whoa!” Rainbow Dash broke free from the other pony’s grasp. “What’s your problem?” Rainbow Dash got a better look at her aggressor: a mustard-yellow pegasus with a grey mane and piercing pink eyes. “You’re my problem,” she hissed. “Now listen up. Applejack is mine, got it? Keep your damn hooves off her, or I’ll stuff your tiny-ass wings down your throat.” She shoved Rainbow Dash in the chest, sending a few apples rolling onto the ground. Rainbow Dash’s eyes darkened. “Excuse me?” She shoved her aggressor back. “Where the hell do you get off, just attacking somepony and calling her—” “Daring?” From the table, Applejack rapidly waved her hoof. “Hey, Daring Do! Ya made it!” Both pegasi wheeled about and plastered fake grins on their faces. “H-Hey, AJ,” said Daring Do, forcing sugar into her voice. “How is it going?” “Hey, everypony.” Applejack clanked her mug on the table to get the attention of her new friends. “This here’s Daring Do. She’s mah best friend, love of my life, and as of a few months back, mah sweetheart of a wife.” She paused as her friends gave a polite stamping of hooves. Daring Do’s false smile softly turned sincere. Applejack continued, “DD, these are some new ponies I met today. Real fighter types. Held more than their fair share in a scrap. Ah, I see that ya met Rainbow Dash there.” “Yeah.” Daring Do’s smile evaporated. She snapped her tail and walked over to the cider wagon. “We met.” Applejack blinked at her departing lover. “Sheesh. What’s got her all riled up alluva sudden?” “Good question,” deadpanned Rainbow Dash. “Anyway,” Applejack said, motioning for Rainbow Dash to sit next to her. “I gotta say it again: you sure is one tough cookie. Pretty rare to find a pony who’ll stand up to those creeps.” “Nah, no biggie. I just did what any other amazingly awesome pony would’ve done.” Rainbow Dash tilted her wing, expertly sliding the loaded plate from her back to the table. “What were those things, anyway?” “I wanted to ask ya ‘bout that.” Applejack eyed her while sipping her cider. “You lot ain’t from around here, are ya?” “Hmm?” Rainbow Dash said through a mouthful of apple pie. “Nah. We’re time travelers from the future.” “Time travelers,” snorted Applejack. “Right. And there’s a horn underneath my hat.” She shook her head. “Well, fine, I’ll humor ya for now, Lil’ Ms. Future.” She bit down into her fritter before continuing. “There’s three clans of ponies, far as I know. There’s the Apples of course. That’s us. Somewhere in the woods north of us, we got the Stars, a clan of unicorns. And up in the clouds west of here, we got the Bolts, where Daring’s originally from.” Rainbow Dash’s ears twitched. “Wait. Your pegasi live in the clouds?” “Yeah. Why?” She shook her head and took a swig from her cider. “Back where I’m from, we all live in normal houses on the ground. We only mess with the clouds when it’s time to control the weather.” “Ya don’t say.” Applejack shrugged. “Anyway, I was answering your question first. So, three tribes of ponies. We get along fair enough, but we got our share of differences, so we keep to ourselves and follow our own traditions, for the most part.” She spat on the ground beside her. “Then, we got them. Buncha freaks who live in a giant fortress east of here. They hate us, and we hate them.” “And so what? They attack you, just like that? For no reason?” “They attack us, all right, but not to kill.” Applejack swirled her drink around in her mug. “Nah. If they had their way, it’d be a fate worse ‘n death.” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ “Twilight? Um, are you feeling alright?” The mug slammed onto the table again. “’Nother.” Fluttershy peered into the empty mug. “Does cider have a special property that affects ponies? Ever since your fourth cup, you’ve been acting most peculiar.” Twilight Sparkle wiped a trickle of cider from her reddened muzzle and turned to look at her friend. “Fludashy, lemme ask you sumthin’.” “Of course, Twilight. What would you like to know?” “Can you tell me was goin’ on?” She grabbed a fresh mug from Caramel and took a healthy swig. “Cuz seriously, I have no idea what’s happenen’ with Ray-bow anymore.” “How so?” “For one thing, I’m not her besht fren anymore. Pinkie ish.” She stared vacantly at the commons, where Pinkie Pie was showcasing some hyperactive dance moves. “Twilight,” rebuked Fluttershy, “how can you say that? I thought you and Rainbow Dash had made peace with one another.” “Yeah, we apologished. Dun mader. I blew it.” She licked the last few drops of cider out of her mug. “’Nother. Ish not the same anymore. She likes Pinkie more, cuz Pinkie doesn’t pick fightsh ev’ry other minute.” She scowled. “I’ma bad fren.” “That isn’t true,” said Fluttershy, her voice strained with patience. “It’s natural for friends to argue every now and again. What’s important is—” “An’ if that wasn’ bad ‘nuff,” Twilight Sparkle continued as she swiped her mug back from Caramel, “she wash totally snoggin’ thish Appajak. What in da hay ish that about? Now she likesh mares? Afta she was all like, like, ‘Ooo, I’m Ray-bow, I like stallions, nyeeeh.’” She flailed her hooves above her head in order to further sell her Rainbow Dash impersonation. Fluttershy’s circuits raced to catch up with Twilight Sparkle’s subtext, to say nothing of her new accent. “Is it a problem that she likes mares? Not that I’m sure that she does... But, um, when we first met The Great and Powerful Trixie, and Rainbow had to apologize, you seemed quite—” “Na, na, na, that’sh diffren’. She teasen’ me, I teasen’ her, ish just teasen’.” She belched. “’Scuse me. See, it’s justa joke, cuz I’m sayin’ she likesh mares, but really she likes stallions.” She tipped back her mug again and drained down its contents. Fluttershy’s analysis reached a conclusion. “Twilight, do you like Rainbow Dash?” Twilight Sparkle sprayed a mouthful of cider in Fluttershy’s face. “No! Grosh! Fludashy, what’re you...” She blinked her right eye, followed by her left. “I like stallions, an’ Ray-bow likes stallions. An’ asides, we’re besht frens.” She fidgeted with her mug. “Change is jus’, jus’ weird, y’know? An’—” She gaped and knocked over her empty mug. “I don’t mean I wanna change nuttin’! She’s my besht fren even if we’re not besht frens right now an’ I don’t wanna kish her an’ shaddap, Fludashy.” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ “Worse than death?” parroted Rainbow Dash. “What could possibly be worse than death?” “Dashie! Dashie-Dashie-Dashie!” Pinkie Pie bounced up from behind Rainbow Dash, balancing a mug of cider on top of her head. “You have got to listen to this.” She pointed a hoof toward the far side of the bonfire, where a small bluegrass band had set up. They played on fiddle and washboard with fervor, tooting on jugs and plucking on strings. An upbeat chorus floated across the air, infecting the hooves of nearly anypony who heard it. “Isn’t that just such an incredible sound? I’ve never heard a song like this one before!” Rainbow Dash tried to turn back and block out Pinkie Pie with a shoulder. “Yeah, that sounds great. Anyway, me and AJ were—” Pinkie Pie grabbed her hoof. “Dashie, let’s go dancing!” “What? No.” Rainbow Dash scrunched up her nose. “I am so not going to hop out there and make a foal of myself. Whoa, hey!” “You are, too!” Pinkie Pie flipped Rainbow Dash up into the air and gracefully caught her on her back. Before the latter could protest, she quickly led her prisoner out onto the makeshift dance floor. Twilight Sparkle chucked her mug into the nearby woods. “Vah! You shee that?” Deprived of her conversation partner, Applejack slid down the table to where Twilight Sparkle and Fluttershy were seated. “Hey there. How we doin’ at this end of the table?” “Shwell.” Her horn came to life as she sighed. Applejack watched intently as a mug emerged from the bushes and took a wobbly and erratic path back to the table. “Uh huh.” She turned and hissed down toward Caramel. “Hey! How many barrels you plannin’ on servin’ her before you finally cut her off?” Caramel blanched. “Uh, but you s-said to treat them like honored guests, and I thought...” Applejack rolled her eyes and shook her head. She turned back to Fluttershy and smiled. “And you, hun? How you liking my special batch?” Fluttershy cautiously examined the untouched mug in front of her. “Um. Mine’s got bugs in it.” “Aw, don’t mind that.” Applejack laughed and threw a hoof around Fluttershy’s shoulder. “It just gives the drink extra character. You just needa drink around ‘em, is all.” Her smile wavered slightly. She lifted and dropped her hoof against Fluttershy’s side a few times, eliciting a metallic clank each time. “Say, what’s with this get-up you’re wearin’, anyway? This some sorta heavy-duty armor you got on?” “Actually, I—” “She’sh a robot!” Twilight Sparkle fell off-balance and caught herself on Fluttershy. “Ish like a fake pony made outta shteel an’ electrics an’ shtuff.” “Fake pony? Come off it, Twilight.” Applejack smacked her foreleg against Fluttershy’s chest for added effect, then immediately shook it to relieve the soreness. “Ow. See? Real as you or me.” “Nuh.” Twilight Sparkle emphatically shook her head. Each shake threatened to topple her off to one side or the other. “Nuh, shee. The fushure. The fushure is fulla robotsh.” Applejack arched an eyebrow. “The future.” “Um, we should—” “The fushure!” Twilight Sparkle reeled up on her back hooves and stretched out her full body. “We are travaders from the fushure! Ish like, tomorrow’s tomorrow’s tomorrow’s—” “Uh, hun? I know what the ‘future’ is.” Applejack gave her a bemused glare. “I ain’t no backwater bumpkin, thank ya kindly. And Rainbow was trying to feed me that line of hooey earlier, too.” “Shee, we have these Gatesh that—” Fluttershy placed her hoof over Twilight Sparkle’s flushed face. “Uh, Twilight, maybe I should handle this.” She turned back to Applejack. “They’re telling you the truth, Applejack. We traveled through a special magic portal. We won’t actually be born for millions and millions of years from now.” Applejack stared blankly at the pair. After a pause, she snickered, then reeled her head back in laughter. “You lot are persistent, I’ll give ya that! Seriously though, how’s a pony supposed to swallow that load of hogwash? Ya gotta put more thought into a prank than that.” Fluttershy turned back to Twilight Sparkle and shrugged. “I’m not sure that she’ll believe us. It’s simply too far-fetched of a notion—” “Shh...” Twilight Sparkle placed both of her forehooves on Fluttershy’s face, one covering her eye and the other on the side of her jaw. “Shh, shh. Dun worry, Fludashy, I can haddle this. AJ, lemme ash you sumpin.” With a hiccup, she placed her hoof around Applejack’s back and drew in until their faces touched cheek-to-cheek. “Ray-bow Dash... how gooda kisher is she?” Applejack blanched. She fidgeted and tried to disentangle herself, but Twilight Sparkle’s intoxication belied the strength remaining in her hooves. “Now, uh, about that, y’see, that there was a case of mistaken identity, and I wouldn’t feel proper about discussin’—” “Shh, no, AJ, stahp. This a’portant. Shake of fushure mattersh on... on...” Her face, already bright red from the increased blood-flow, suddenly turned a light shade of green. She gulped and whispered, “‘Scush me,” before clumsily gaiting into the nearby woods. “Some ponies,” Applejack muttered. “Fluttershy! Hey, Fluttershy.” Pinkie Pie bounded up from the commons. “C’mon and dance with us! Me and Dashie are having a ball. Join us!” She tugged on Fluttershy’s forelegs, trying to lead her away. “D-D-Dance? Oh. No. No, no. Um.” Fluttershy’s eye lights dashed rapidly from direction to direction. “My hydraulics... Twilight, she, um... AJ! Yes! Applejack. I can’t leave Applejack alone at her own party. She and I were in the middle of a conversation about, uh, things, and I shouldn’t—” “Ain’t no worry, sugarcube,” she replied with a smile and a wink. “I should get a move on, anyhow. Gotta get prepared.” “Prepared?” Pinkie Pie gaped and dropped her mostly empty mug. “Prepared for what?” Applejack walked away, turning her head to holler back at her friends. “Well, that’ll just hafta be a surprise, now won’t it?” “Yes!” Pinkie Pie pumped her hoof. “I just love surprises. I wonder what it could be.” She walked back toward the dance floor, dragging Fluttershy with her. “We’ve got plenty of music and food. Maybe it’s a game. Or a special announcement. Ooo, or some birthday cake! I didn’t know it was somepony’s birthday! I hope they’re not mad that I didn’t bring them a gift.” “Pinkie, wait, I—” Fluttershy flailed her hooves in the direction of the table. “I really shouldn’t dance for twenty minutes after eating. It will void m-my warranty! Applejack, help!” “Danshin’? Heck yeah! Girlsh, wait up!” Twilight Sparkle stumbled out of the bushes, a fresh mug of cider floating beside her, requisitioned from another party goer. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ “Hey, cool, you found her!” Rainbow Dash carefully waved her mug of cider at her incoming friends before taking a healthy swig. “How’s it hangin’, Fluttershy?” “G-Good,” she stammered. “I was going to come out here to dance, but I think I lost some of my bolts so I should really go back and—” “Woo!” Twilight Sparkle shouted directly into Fluttershy’s auditory sensors, causing them to reboot. “Danshin’! Let’s get thish party star-ted!” Rainbow Dash gaped, a silent burst of mirth escaping her lips. “Holy shit,” she half-whispered and half-laughed, “she’s plastered!” Twilight Sparkle squealed and threw her hooves in the air. “Pinkie!” She rushed forward to hug her. “Pinkieee! Omigosh! So good to see you!” “Um.” Pinkie Pie stared blankly at the unicorn who was holding onto her and barely maintaining her own balance. “Yeah.” Fluttershy started to walk back toward the table. “Well, there’s three of you out here now, so there’s probably no room left for me, so I’ll just—eep!” She ground to a halt as Rainbow Dash flapped down from the air in front of her. “C’mon, Fluttershy, loosen up!” Rainbow Dash said between sips of cider. “Live a little! You don’t need to be so uptight.” “Yeah, Dashie’s right! Parties are about having fun, not about worrying about everypony watching you. Whoa!” Pinkie Pie landed face first in the dirt, pulled off-balance by Twilight Sparkle hanging onto her neck, much to the latter’s amusement. Fluttershy waved her hoof dismissively. “Oh, no, I’m not worried about everypony watch—” Her hoof froze. “W-Well, now I am. But no, I was mostly worried about... well...” She dropped her hoof and pawed at the ground in lieu of finishing her thought. “Worry, worry, worry.” Rainbow Dash took a gulp of her cider as if to wash away the bad taste of that word. “You can’t spend your whole life worrying, Fluttershy. Life is about living.” Fluttershy bowed her head. “I don’t...” The rest was lost to the sounds of the fiddles engaging in a playful contest. “Huh? Gotta speak up, Fluttershy.” “I don’t know...” Rainbow Dash groaned and rolled her eyes. She planted her ear firmly over Fluttershy’s voice speaker, much to the latter’s embarrassment. Even after a few repeated sentences, she only barely made it out. “You don’t know how to dance?” “Is that weird? That’s probably weird. I’m sorry for bringing it up. I should just go.” Each sentence caused her to slump lower and lower to the ground until her belly laid against the dirt floor. Rainbow Dash chuckled. “Aw c’mon, Fluttershy. There’s nothing to it. See?” She resumed her dance: a series of gentle bobs left to right, hoof to hoof, colloquially known as the “white mare shuffle”. “You just sorta wiggle around like this, see? That’s good enough for most ponies.” “No-no-no. Fluttershy, dancing isn’t about looking good or bad.” Pinkie Pie stepped over to Fluttershy and offered a leg, helping the latter to her hooves. “It’s about expressing yourself.” “Expressing myself?” “Right!” Pinkie Pie’s eyes glistened as firelight and starlight mingled within them. “Every pony has a soul: a pure representation of themselves, their thoughts and hopes and dreams and fears. It isn’t bound by rules or physics or reality or anything! It’s who you are—who you really are. And dancing is the clearest view into your soul.” Fluttershy slowly stopped rattling. She quietly leaned in toward Pinkie Pie. “Really? A view to... my soul?” Rainbow Dash arched her eyebrow. “Seriously? I just sorta bounce up and down to the beat.” “Yeah, seriously!” Pinkie Pie rested her hoof on Fluttershy’s shoulder and smiled. “So c’mon, Fluttershy, let’s dance. Show us who you really are on the inside.” Fluttershy looked away in contemplation. “Who I really am...” “Cripes!” Pinkie Pie gasped and pointed in front of her. “Help! Somepony, help! Twilight’s having a stroke!” On the center of the clearing, Twilight Sparkle twitched and convulsed. Her right foreleg raised and fell at odd intervals while her flank whirred about wildly. Her tongue hung out of side of her mouth, flopping about with each thrust of her head. Her body rocked with rhythmic spasms while her face was frozen in an intense, concentrated squint. “Fluttershy! Quick!” Pinkie Pie pushed her to the forefront. “You gotta help her! Use your eye beam thingies! What? Who is—Dashie! Dashie, stop laughing, this is serious!” Rainbow Dash laid on her back, howling up at the sky. She slammed one forehoof against the loose dirt while holding her other against her rocking side. “S-S-She’s showing you her soul!” she managed to say between fits of laughter. Pinkie Pie blinked at the exotic body contortions in front of her, unable to process Rainbow Dash’s explanation. “She’s... dancing?” The ponies beheld their friend’s controlled rhythmic epilepsy display for another moment or two. Eventually, Twilight Sparkle gave way to exhaustion and the giggles, and she collapsed onto the ground a few centimeters from upside-down Rainbow Dash. The two stared at each other for a few seconds before Twilight Sparkle finally gasped. “Ray-bow! There you are.” “Uh, yeah. Hi. Been here for a while now.” “Ish good I found you. Gotta she-cret for you.” “That’s cool, I guess?” Twilight Sparkle cast a leery glance to either side of her, then scooted herself closer with her rear hooves. “Listen, Ray-bow, okay? Here goesh.” She inhaled deeply and noisily. “I dun wanna kishu.” Rainbow Dash blinked. “Uh, congratulations?” “Ray-bow, no.” Twilight Sparkle reached out and held a hoof to her friend’s face. “Ray-bow. Look a’ me.” “Still looking at you.” “Ray-bow. I dun wanna kishu.” “Still straight. So are you, last time I checked.” “But, Ray-bow, listen, ‘kay? Dis the imporant part. D’you know you are mah very besht fren?” “Still waiting for this big secret you were gonna tell me,” she said while rolling her eyes. “Ray-bow, I really mean it.” Twilight Sparkle stared straight downward at the dirt under her chin, going slightly cross-eyed. “I’ma be your besht fren foreva’, even if you dun wanna be my besht fren.” Rainbow Dash’s smile faded. She tilted her head, grinding dirt into her mane. “Even if I... what the hay are you talking about?” “Alright, ladies!” Applejack’s booming cry broke the moment. Everypony looked up to the front table, where frothing cider mugs had been arranged in one long row from one end of the table to the other. “Now who here is ready to throw down with the big dogs?” The crowd broke into a boisterous cheer. Several ponies began talking at once, creating an unintelligible fracas. “Throw down? What’s all this?” Rainbow Dash rolled over and stood back up. She initially eyed the cider mugs, but quickly shifted her attention to her wobbly friend’s failed attempts to stand under her own power. “Ah, sorry ‘bout that. Forgot we had some newcomers.” Applejack motioned her new friends closer so that she could explain over the din. “This here’s a little competition that I like to throw. Rules is simple: drink yer cider before I drink mine. The prize—not that anypony’s managed to beat me, mind—is this here thing.” She flipped her hat off and dove in face-first. Pulling back, she held in her mouth a ruby crystal that sparkled wildly against the bonfire. “Oh my goodness,” said Fluttershy. “Is that Dreamstone?” “Convenient!” chirped Pinkie Pie. “Dreamstone?” echoed Applejack. “Can’t say that I’ve heard it called that before. All I know for certain is that it’s rarer than a bunny raised by rattlesnakes. So, it belongs to the strongest pony in the village.” She flipped the gemstone in the air, catching it in the crease of her hat. “That’d be yours truly.” The corners of Rainbow Dash’s mouth slowly drew upward. “So, we just gotta beat you at your own game, and the Dreamstone is as good as ours?” She made a dramatic show of cracking her neck. “Easy as—” “Shtand back!” Twilight Sparkle staggered to the front of the pack and held one foreleg on high. “Shtand back, evapony. I gotsh thish one.” “Yeah.” Rainbow Dash pulled her down and nudged her back to the rest of their friends. “No way in hell. It’s a miracle you can still stand.” “Hey!” she screamed, stomping her hoof for emphasis. “Langadidge. Langooge.” She frowned, crossing her eyes to look at her muzzle. “Langangang. Guage. Goo-azz.” Her attempts at articulation fell increasingly irrelevant, and she found each to be funnier than the last. Eventually, she fell to the ground, snickering and repeating the syllable “goo”. “Ready then?” Applejack eyed her opponent from one edge of the table. Rainbow Dash stepped up to the opposite edge, flashing a smirk. “Born ready.” A quiet lull overtook the campsite, punctuated only by the chirp of a cricket or somepony saying “Goo.” Rainbow Dash and Applejack locked eyes, filtering out everything except their competition and the mugs of cider next to them. They twitched in unison. Rainbow Dash snatched up her mug, chugging down cider by the mouthful. Her rival followed suit. Applejack polished off the mug a full second before Rainbow Dash, triumphantly slamming the mug onto the tabletop. The villagers cheered and whistled at their proud leader. “C’mon, Dashie!” Pinkie Pie yelled while bouncing into the air. “Keep at it! Don’t let AJ psyche you out!” Rainbow Dash tossed away her empty mug with a scowl. She grabbed the next and poured it into her open mouth. Streaks of cider dribbled off the side of her mouth as she struggled to keep pace. “Ray-bow, wut you doin’?” scowled Twilight Sparkle. She worked her way up onto the front stage. “Gotta open ya throat. Jus’ let it flow. Dun fight it.” Applejack threw a cautious eye as she reached for her next cup. With a wipe of her brow, she tipped back and gulped away. Rainbow Dash slurped noisily at her own glass, when her eyes suddenly bulged and her neck cranked back at an awkward angle. “There w’go,” mumbled Twilight Sparkle, her magic gripping Rainbow Dash’s mane tautly. She frowned at the series of gurgles and sputters. “No-no, c’mon, gotta relax. Just...” She gently rubbed her hoof along her friend’s throat, eliciting a gag and a fountain burst of cider. “Ya, jus’ like that.” She swapped the current mug with a fresh one from the table and continued to ciderboard her friend. Applejack swallowed at a slower and slower rate. She tossed the empty mug to the ground and hissed at the back-taste. As she eyed the current state of the table, she yelped and did a double-take. “Whoa, nelly! That’s enough. I yield!” she said with a light chuckle. “I yield.” “Woo! Ya did it! So prouda you.” Twilight Sparkle gripped her friend in a bear-hug, laughing and crying in equal measure. Whether the alcohol was making her irreverent or merely oblivious, she ignored Rainbow Dash coughing up lungfuls of cider onto her back and giving her a glare with murderous intent. “Well, color me impressed,” said Applejack as she walked over to the pair and doffed her hat. She hoofed it over to them, showcasing the shimmering Dreamstone that rested atop it. “I ain’t never seen a come-from-behind victory like that one. That ain’t just Rainbow being tough as nails; that’s some right impressive teamwork, sure as shootin’.” Rainbow Dash slammed her hoof into her chest once more for good measure, dribbling a trickle of cider onto her friend. “Hey, I like cider. A lot.” She coughed deep from her diaphragm. “But let’s never do that again.” Despite her pain, she grinned as she lifted the Dreamstone and nested it into her saddlebags next to the fragmented Lyrabon. “Heh. Yeah, you’re right. That’s enough competin’ for a night. This here’s a celebration of friendship.” She reared up on her back hooves. “So let’s celebrate!” New friends and old alike burst into cheers. The bluegrass band kicked back into high gear, starting a dance marathon that lasted until the wee hours of the morning. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 2012 AD Vancouver, Canada—Studio B Darkness. From above, a bright spotlight flicked on, illuminating a small stool on a polished wooden stage. A series of soft clicks approached from out of sight, echoing against the hollow, spacious interior. As she stepped out onto the stage, a young, blonde human came into view, her yellow sundress glowing warmly under the spotlight. Her heels clicked on the wood flooring as she made her way to the stool and took a seat. She smiled brightly at camera two. “Good evening,” she said. “I’m Andrea Libman. Thank you for joining us for yet another chapter of My Little Chrono Triggers Are Magic. On behalf of the author, Pav Feira, it’s an honor to have your continued loyalty.” “Now, tonight’s chapter certainly featured a lot of alcohol consumption.” She calmly smoothed out her dress over her lap. “Rainbow Dash and Applejack were drinking as part of a competition. Pinkie Pie was drinking to be social. And Twilight Sparkle...” She sighed and shook her head. “Poor Twilight Sparkle was drowning her sorrows. These cider antics tonight were largely played for comedic effect.” Her expression hardened as she turned to camera three. “But consuming alcohol in excess can have very real and serious consequences. In Canada alone, over twenty five thousand individuals are hospitalized each year due to alcohol-related conditions. And using alcohol as an emotional crutch can lead to very serious emotional and dependency issues.” Andrea smiled at camera one as it slowly zoomed in. “Please, always drink responsibly. Know your limits. Understand the signs of addiction. And if you ever feel overwhelmed, visit www.aacanada.com to find a local group that can give you the help you need.” She winked. “That’s the magic of friendship.” Behind her, a computer-generated, rainbow-hued star shot across the night sky, as a soft piano melody drifted through the darkness. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 65,000,000 BC Apple Village Commons Sunlight baked in through Rainbow Dash’s closed eyelids. She fluttered them open, and her eyes slowly swerved about the clearing. The remnants of the party were still strewn about the commons: discarded cider mugs, unfinished apple treats, and a few unconscious party guests nestled under thick quilts. The fire pit held the blackened remains of several thick logs, completely burnt through during the night. In daylight, Rainbow Dash could now make out a number of small wooden cottages in the distance, where most of the villagers had likely spent the night. She smacked her mouth noisily, trying to clear out the tastes of morning and last night’s party. “Hey,” she grunted with some effort. “You girls up?” Fluttershy’s circuits powered up and her eye sockets glowed once more. “Oh, g-good morning, everypony.” She looked around and assessed the damage. “How is everypony feeling this morning? Last night certainly seemed like quite the party.” Pinkie Pie sat upright and stretched her forelegs up high, feeling a series of pops in each of her joints in turn. “Morning! Mmm, I slept great. I had the most wonderful dream. At least I...” She blinked for a moment, and then sulked. “Shoot. Already forgot what it was about.” An unearthly groan came underneath a nearby quilt. “For feather’s sake, shut up...” grunted the creature. “Ooo! I found Twilight! I found her!” Pinkie Pie bounded over to the quilt and whipped it away. She beamed down at the unicorn below her, silhouetted by the brilliant morning sun. “Gooood morning, Twilight Sparkle! Today is the start of another beautiful day.” Twilight Sparkle whimpered and shielded herself, one foreleg covering both her eyes and the other trying in vain to pin down both her ears. “Pinkie,” she moaned, “please, stop.” Rainbow Dash stood and looked around at the remaining sleeping ponies. “Looks like AJ already split. Kinda wish we could’ve said goodbye. She’s pretty cool.” Twilight Sparkle grunted unintelligibly. “No,” said Rainbow Dash with a shake of her head. “I said that Frog was awesome, and that Applejack was cool. Totally different things.” Grunt. “But you still have the Dreamstone that you won last night during the competition, don’t you?” asked Fluttershy. “Yep!” said Rainbow Dash, extracting the prize from her saddlebags and holding it aloft. “We got this, and we got the sword parts. One step closer to a repaired legendary sword.” “Sweet!” Pinkie Pie trotted in place. “Now we just gotta go back to the End of Time, and find somepony to repair the sword, then bring the sword to Frog, then go to Nightmare Moon’s castle, then—whoa!” She ducked and weaved, avoiding the wrenches and other tools that were thrown at her. “Right!” Rainbow Dash waved to the cottages in the distance. “Thanks for the party, AJ! And thanks for the Dreamstone! We’ll see ya again soon!” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 65,000,000 BC Magic Mountains “...and then we’ll climb to the sixth floor, and we’ll fight some illusions, and we’ll climb to the seventh floor...” Pinkie Pie lead the group up through the canyon floor, skipping ahead without a care in the world. “Hmm.” Fluttershy craned her neck and tried to locate the dormant Gate above her. “How exactly are we supposed to reach the Gate? It’s in a very dangerous spot.” “Yeah, I dunno either.” Rainbow Dash carried up the rear of the group. Twilight Sparkle was propped up against her, her face buried into the back of her rainbow-streaked mane. The pair took one step at a time, slowly yet steadily working toward their destination. “I mean, you and me can fly. Think you could carry Pinkie Pie up there?” “Goodness, I don’t know. It’s certainly quite high.” Fluttershy glanced at Pinkie Pie, who grinned and nodded rapidly. “I, uh, guess we could try?” “Yes!” She immediately hopped onto Fluttershy’s back. “I know it’s not nice to be jealous, but when Dashie did it on that bridge, it just looked so fun. I’m so happy I get a ride too!” Rainbow Dash wiggled her head, nudging Twilight Sparkle on the snout. “Rise and shine, Twi. Time to go for a flight.” With an acknowledging groan, Twilight Sparkle leaned away and stood under her own power, her eyes still tightly sealed. Her horn came alight and promptly flipped open her saddlebags. Her face was calm and focused as she channeled her magic. Then, her eyes opened. Blood drained from her face as her pupils dilated, nearly overtaking her irises. She uttered a single word. “Shit.” Rainbow Dash sprung to the air, covering a mile-wide grin with her hooves. She squealed like a filly on Hearth’s Warming Day. “You cussed?! Twilight ‘Totally Strict’ Sparkle shot her mouth off?” She snickered. “Oh, this is too rich.” She cleared her throat dramatically and adopted an aristocratic accent. “Young miss, we do not use such vulgarities. I’ve half a mind to clean your mouth with soap!” Twilight Sparkle heard none of this. She tore her saddlebags off her back, ripping one of the straps off the satchel in the process. She upended the bags and scattered their contents across the muddy ground. Each item levitated in turn, only to be promptly neglected. “Shit. Shit! Shit!” Rainbow Dash’s grin vanished in a flash. “Twi? Twi, what’s wrong?” She dropped to the ground and shook her friend by the shoulders. “Twilight, breathe. Talk to me. What’s happening?” She ignored her friend’s pleas and continued to rifle through her belongings. “Twilight!” Rainbow Dash shouted before adopting a softer tone. “Please. Tell me what’s wrong.” Twilight Sparkle looked at her with wavering, bloodshot eyes. “Dash, I’m sorry. I’m so, so sorry.” “Twi. What is wrong?” Tears started falling down her cheeks as she looked Rainbow Dash dead in the eyes. “I lost the Gate Key. We’re trapped here. Forever.” * * * Chapter 24: Footsteps! Follow! 65,000,000 BC Apple Village Commons “I’m sorry, Rainbow. I’m so sorry.” “Stop saying that.” Rainbow Dash moved at a slow trot across the commons, kicking up a small plume of dust behind her. Each hooffall landed heavily as she braced the extra weight she was supporting. She stared straight ahead, running her tongue absentmindedly along the cloth straps of the two saddlebags hanging from her mouth. Twilight Sparkle shivered. In spite of the heat from the summer sun which shone down on her, and the warmth from her friend’s back which she was draped across, a cold chill struck her straight in the gut. Her head swung limply in rhythm with each step of her friend beneath her. She squeezed all four of her limbs around Rainbow Dash’s torso. “It’s all my fault. I wasn’t careful enough, and now—” “Twilight. Look at me.” Rainbow Dash stopped in her tracks and whipped her head back around. When Twilight Sparkle didn’t respond, Rainbow Dash placed a hoof under her jaw and lifted her head until they were face-to-face. Her rose-colored gaze pierced directly into the violet eyes in front of her. “It is not your fault,” she said in a voice flat and level. “Say it.” She recoiled and jammed her eyes closed. “The Gate Key was my—” “Say it, Twi.” Twilight Sparkle pulled her head free from Rainbow Dash’s hoof, electing to let it hang under gravity’s reign once more. She cracked open her eyes and stared at the ground with a half-lidded stare. After a few seconds of silence, she took a large heaving sigh, her chest pressing down on her friend’s back. “S’not my fault,” she muttered. “It didn’t just disappear,” said Rainbow Dash, her stare not wavering from the back of Twilight Sparkle’s head. “We’re gonna find it, then we’re gonna go home. Okay?” After a pause, she softly repeated herself. “Okay?” Twilight Sparkle tried to swallow, but her dry throat refused and clamped down on itself. “‘Kay,” she croaked. Carrying her friend across the clearing, Rainbow Dash rejoined the search party that had galloped ahead of them. “Hey. Any luck yet?” Fluttershy jolted in response to Rainbow Dash’s greeting. “Oh! No, I’m so sorry, Rainbow. The Gate Key doesn’t have any signals or radiation that I can detect.” She pawed at the dirt. “I don’t think I can find it.” “I found all kinds of neat stuff!” Pinkie Pie popped out of the bushes at the forest’s edge, holding her overburdened saddlebags overhead in her hooves. She hopped up to her friends in the clearing, dumped her spoils out onto the ground, and hoisted the items one by one. “I found a mop, this pretty silver gemstone, for some inexplicable reason a spare hoof made out of rock for Fluttershy, three feathers, two fangs, four petals, one of the wrenches that Twilight threw at me when I woke her up this morning—” Twilight Sparkle snapped her head upright, bloodshot eyes bulging. “I threw tools at you. Tools from my saddlebag.” She curled her ears back. “Oh Eternal Night, I hurled the Gate Key into the woods, didn’t I?” Pinkie Pie rubbed the back of her neck, her hoof sandwiched between her head and her curly ponytail. “Mmm, sorry, Twi. I checked around there super-carefully, but no Gate Key.” “Well shoot, it’s high time that you lot got up and movin’ about.” Rainbow Dash’s ears flicked behind her. She turned around and grinned. “AJ!” Applejack entered the clearing with a wagon in tow, filled beyond capacity with a heap of apples. “For a while there, I was thinkin’ y’all were ‘bout ready to sleep the whole mornin’ away. But seein’ how you was the guests of honor and all...” She gasped and brought a hoof to her mouth as her eyes locked onto Twilight Sparkle, still hanging from Rainbow Dash’s back. When she spoke again, her voice was just a whisper. “Sorry, Twi. I plum forgot. Figures you’d have a slow ‘n’ painful start after a night like last, heh.” “Applejack, um,” said Fluttershy as she approached Applejack’s side, “I’m afraid we have a much more urgent problem. You see, we lost something that’s terribly valuable to us.” “Mmm.” Grimacing, Applejack tipped the brim of her hat down and shielded her eyes from the rising morning sun. “This that Gate Key thing y’all was talkin’ ‘bout?” She brought her hoof down from her hat, holding it defensively toward Fluttershy. “Sorry, I didn’t mean to be snoopin’ in matters that don’t concern me none. I just heard y’all talkin’ when I was passin’ through.” “That’s right,” sighed Twilight Sparkle. “Tungsten rod with embedded electronics. Six glass orbs on the end. Approximately one-and-one-half hooves long.” She looked up at Applejack and pressed her forehooves together. “Please-please-please tell me you’ve seen it?” Applejack shook her head gently. “Can’t say I’ve seen anythin’ like that, and it sure sounds more memorable than yer first taste of zap apple jam. I’m guessin’ it was something mighty important to ya?” “Yes,” she replied, deflating slowly. “It was very important. And I went and lost it.” “Well shoot, if it meant that much to ya, I sure don’t mind helpin’ ya take a look. Why don’t we start by checking over—” Applejack’s ears twitched. She turned and squinted down the edge of the forest. With a grin, she called out, “Well hey there, Daring! Was wonderin’ where you’d gotten off to.” Daring Do froze, half her body still hidden within the verdant bushes of the forest. She whipped her head toward Applejack, then quickly brought a hoof over her face. With a light flap of her wings, she floated over to the group of ponies while wiping vigorously at the corner of her mouth. “Oh, uh... Hey, AJ. What’s up?” Applejack chuckled. “Aww, hun, you havin’ a rough mornin’ too? I didn’t even see you have any cider last night.” “Rough morning...” Daring Do touched down next to her wife and tensed her jaw. “Yeah, you could say that.” “Aww, poor DD.” Applejack threw her hoof around Daring Do’s shoulder and nuzzled her gently. “Go ahead and rest up. I’ll be back in an hour or two. Just gotta help Rainbow and her friends look for some doodad they misplaced.” Daring Do’s eyes flashed and locked onto Rainbow Dash, giving her the same vivid glare that she had given last night. “Whatever. There’s four of them. Why can’t they look for it on their own?” Rainbow Dash met the hostile glare and returned one of her own. She slowly rotated her hindquarters away, placing herself in between the aggressor and the friend on her back. Applejack stopped nuzzling Daring Do and frowned up at her. “Because it’d be quicker with five, and it’s the neighborly thing to do.” “Yeah well, they shoulda been more careful.” Applejack pulled back and gave her a sidelong glance. “Is there somethin’ you wanna tell me, Daring?” She scoffed and folded her hooves. “Whatever. Even if there was, you wouldn’t care.” “Um,” said Fluttershy, edging her way backwards toward the forest. “This is sounding like it’s, uh, a really private conversation, and well, I wouldn’t want to—” “Drop the attitude,” snapped Applejack. “You’ve been nothing but disrespectful to Rainbow and her friends ever since they arrived here, and I wanna know why.” Daring Do staggered backward, holding a hoof to her chest. “Are you kidding me? You—” Applejack held up a hoof to silence her. “Don’t think I didn’t see that fight you had with Rainbow at the party last night.” She poked the air in front of Daring Do’s muzzle for emphasis. “The fight which you started, might I add.” Daring Do’s wings stood on end and she narrowed her eyes. “Well excuse me! Maybe not everypony wants to throw a huge party for the new hotshot in town. Didja think about that?” “Applejack, please.” Twilight Sparkle held out a hoof. “Don’t fight because of us. This whole thing is getting blown way out of proportion, and—” “Twilight, wouldja just—” Applejack held up her own hoof, then stomped and ground it into the dirt. She inhaled sharply and locked eyes with Daring Do. “Daring. I’m only gonna ask you this once, and I want the honest truth. Did you take Twilight’s thingamajig from her?” Daring Do’s jaw dropped. “That—You—What?! How dare you!” She stepped right up to Applejack and pressed forehead-to-forehead with her. “It’s one thing for you to go all goo-goo eyed over the hot new piece of flank in town. But where the hell do you get off accusing me of stealing their shit?” “You watch your mouth, missie!” “Yeah,” said Pinkie Pie after an audible gulp, “we should really get moving along. We’ve got a crazy-busy day ahead of us, and—” “Seriously, what’s the matter with you?” continued Applejack. “You’ve been actin’ screwier than a termite in a cider barrel ever since yesterday.” She placed both her forehooves on Daring Do’s shoulders and looked into her eyes. “What’s gotten into you?” “What’s gotten—” With a sharp inhale, Daring Do brought her hoof across Applejack’s face. Stunned, Applejack dropped her own forelegs, releasing her grip. Daring Do stepped backward and drew a few quivering breaths. “Screw you, okay? Screw you.” Applejack held a hoof against her swollen cheek. Her lips motioned silently a few times on their own before her voice found her. “Daring... what...” Daring Do grit her teeth, her face contorting beyond recognition. She reared up and then slammed her hooves to the ground, leaning forward to give her scream full effect. “I’m pregnant, you dumbass!” A hush overtook the group. Rainbow Dash and her friends dared not make a sound. Applejack froze, her eyes the size of dinner plates. Slowly and shakily, she lifted a hoof and pointed at her own chest. Daring Do snorted and looked away. “Course it’s yours, idiot. Or did you forget our trip to the Stars’ village already?” “We’re gonna start a family?” Applejack held her hoof against her chest, staring vacantly into space. “We’re gonna start a family. We’re gonna start a family, oh my stars!” With a mile-wide grin and a twinkle in her eyes, she leaped and bucked in a circle around Daring Do. “Yee-haw! I’m gonna be a mommy? We’re both gonna be mommies! I can’t hardly believe it! Oh, DD!” She leaped up and hugged onto the mare, smothering the side of her face with kisses. Daring Do, for her part, fought to shake Applejack off, pushing her half-heartedly with elbow and wing. “Ow! Get offa me. I’m still pissed at you, y’know.” The group collectively exhaled. “Oh, Applejack, Daring Do, congratulations,” said Fluttershy. “This is such wonderful news.” “Mazel tov!” chirped Pinkie Pie. “I call dibs on throwing the foal shower!” Applejack stopped her loving assault to look into Daring Do’s eyes. “But I don’t understand. Why didn’t you tell me sooner?” “Dunno. You tell me.” While Daring Do couldn’t make eye contact with anypony, she pointed a hoof straight at Rainbow Dash. “Just when I’m about to tell you the news, I learn you were making out with her. And throwing a huge party for her. And now you want to go looking for lost treasure with her.” “No, that—” Applejack blanched and looked at Rainbow Dash for backup, who merely winced and shook her head rapidly. “That kissin’ business was just a huge misunderstandin’, and then after I got to know her, she seemed like an upright gal—but just as a friend of course—and I wanted to give ‘em a right proper welcome, so I... I...” She sighed and sank her head. “I messed up somethin’ awful, didn’t I?” Daring Do snorted and lifted her nose. “Ya think?” “Look, I’m mighty sorry.” Applejack gently placed a hoof on Daring Do’s cheek and turned her toward her. “I was careless, I hurt you deeply, and my timing was plum awful. I’ll make this up to you, somehow. Ya know that I’m always good on my word.” She tilted her head to the side and offered a small smile. “But I promise you, no matter what happens, I’ll always be there for you. For us. All three of us. No matter what, you’ll always be my Daring Doe.” Daring Do’s face heated up, and she put on as sour of a frown as she could muster. “I hate it when you call me that.” Applejack giggled and stole a kiss. “Yep. I know. Now I know me and you got lots to talk about. But right now these folks need our help before they can be on their way. Lemme help ‘em find their Gate Key, then when I get back you can chew me out like you have every right to, and then I can get with pamperin’ the mother of our beautiful foal. That sound alright to you?” Daring Do sighed. “It’s not gonna be that easy.” “Daring...” Applejack winced. “I’m sorry. Powerfully sorry. I—” “Oh. No, not that.” Daring Do rolled her eyes and pulled Applejack closer, squeezing her with her hug. “I forgive you, AJ. You’re an idiot, but I forgive you. That’s not the problem.” She pointed her hoof at the soil in the middle of the herd. “That is.” Rainbow Dash gave a start, realizing that she could speak now that the fight, which she accidentally instigated, was finally over. “Huh? The dirt?” She turned and looked down at where Daring Do was pointing. “What about it?” Applejack let go of her wife and trotted over to the same location. The instant she reached it, her expression darkened and she let out a low growl. “Oh, you gotta be pullin’ my leg.” “You sound surprised,” deadpanned Daring Do. She hovered a few centimeters above the floor, her nose dangling close to the ground as she made lazy circles around the clearing. “Lesse. Tracks head in from here... mingle around the blankets where they were sleeping... then head out toward...” She turned back toward Applejack and pursed her lips. “The southern orchard.” “You lost me,” said Rainbow Dash. Applejack sighed and turned to Rainbow Dash with her jaw set. “Remember that villain I was tellin’ y’all about last night? The one causing grief for earth ponies, pegasi, and unicorns alike?” She pointed down at the tracks. “Looks like her goons made in during the night, stole yer Gate Key, then made off to one of their strongholds south a-ways.” “Stole?” moaned Twilight Sparkle. She squirmed atop Rainbow Dash’s back, trying to get down onto her own hooves. “We have to get it back. The fate of ponykind rests on us finding—” She stopped mid-sentence when she felt a hoof press down on her withers. “Yeah,” said Rainbow Dash. “Not happening, Twi. You’re staying here.” “What?” Twilight Sparkle looked up at her friend with her eyebrows raised. “No. No, I have to go. It’s my responsibility and—” “And you still look a right proper mess,” snickered Applejack while Rainbow Dash nodded in agreement. “Knowing these thugs, we’re gonna have to do some negotiatin’ with our hooves, and you ain’t in any proper condition to rumble. You can get some rest at my home. Me and RD can get your Gate Key back for you by the time you wake up.” “Wait.” Twilight Sparkle blinked. “That’s—” “Oh, that will work nicely,” Fluttershy said as she stepped up to Rainbow Dash and Twilight Sparkle. “I can stay behind and watch over Twilight while she rests.” “And I can go with Dashie!” Pinkie Pie bounced up to the other side of Rainbow Dash. “The three of us should be able to handle these meanies without breaking a sweat.” “No, wait.” Twilight Sparkle looked from Rainbow Dash to Pinkie Pie to Applejack. “But I—” “No ‘buts’, you lush,” said Daring Do, giving her a good-natured tousle of her mane. “C’mon, let’s get you back to bed.” Twilight Sparkle looked from face to face once more, then biting her lip, she looked to the ground. “Okay.” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 65,000,000 BC Southern Lair As soon as they had hooved over Twilight Sparkle to Fluttershy’s care, Applejack took off at a full gallop, forcing Pinkie Pie and Rainbow Dash to give chase. The prehistoric native navigated the dense apple orchard with ease, cutting and weaving through the woods with precision and experience. Rainbow Dash’s natural speed and agility helped her remain competitive as she soared over the canopy. Pinkie Pie bounded after them, but fell behind shortly after the journey began. After the short but brutal race, Applejack stood at the mouth of a gaping stone maw. Cold, dank air billowed out of the cavern, swirled underneath her coat and filling her lungs with each heaving breath. Rainbow Dash landed beside Applejack and gave her wings a few slow flaps to wind down her muscles. “Jeez, not wasting any time, huh? I like that. That was quite the race there, Applejack.” She blinked as her wings froze mid-flap. “Not that I had any problems keeping up, of course.” Applejack pursed her lips and, with a loud inhale through her nostrils, she trotted ahead into the cave. “Sooner we get in, sooner we can get out. These scum are always tryin’ to pull something, to ruin our way of life.” She turned back toward Rainbow Dash as she trotted ahead, the corner of her mouth faintly turning upward. “I ain’t about to let ‘em ruin yours as well.” “Mmm, so they’re a bunch of bullies, huh?” Rainbow Dash flashed a grin. “Alright. I can help you with teaching them to play nice.” She paused and turned around. “Hold up, though. Looks like we lost Pinkie at some point.” “Finally!” Pinkie Pie bounced out from behind a boulder next to Applejack, causing the latter to leap a meter in the air. “What took you girls so long?” “Pinkie!” Applejack clutched a hoof over her chest, keeping her heart locked inside her ribcage. “What took you so not-long?” Pinkie Pie twisted her head askew and raised an eyebrow. “Overworld map. Duh.” Applejack turned back to Rainbow Dash and started to speak, but Rainbow Dash simply shook her head. “Don’t. Just... don’t.” “So anyway, Applejack,” Pinkie Pie said, her face beaming so much that it nearly illuminated the cave, “is this a zoo? I wasn’t expecting there to be so many different types of animals down here.” “A zoo?” Applejack’s hollow chuckle bounced against the dank walls. “Yeah, you sure could put it that way. Pretty much exactly the way that their ‘queen’ would like it, if she had her way.” “Queen?” asked Rainbow Dash. Pinkie Pie giggled and bounced toward them. “It’s really a shame that we didn’t bring Fluttershy with us. I mean, she always seems to like any creatures we find, right? And just look!” She motioned behind her with a hoof. “These little guys are so friendly, they followed me all the way back here!” Applejack gave Pinkie Pie a bemused, half-lidded glare. “What you meant to say was, you got the attention of the guard creatures.” With a sigh, she turned her head and started unfurling her rope from around her torso. “Yeah,” said Rainbow Dash as she unsheathed her katana, “and another thing, Pinkie? Those ‘little guys’ are twice your size.” With a confused frown, Pinkie Pie turned back around and craned her neck to look up at the winged ape behind her. She grinned and waved at it, saying, “Hi there, Mister Monkey! My name is Pinkie Pie! Let’s be friends!” She finished her greeting just in time for the ape’s uppercut to connect with her jaw, sending her reeling through the air. “Gotcha!” Rainbow Dash intercepted her friend in mid-air, grabbing hold before she smashed into the jagged stone wall. From further in the tunnel, a pair of feral creatures followed behind the savage simian. The floor tremored as a green-scaled dinosaur stomped toward the ponies. The rotund reptile flitted its comically undersized wings, but there was nothing comical about the razor-sharp claws that it flashed in their direction. An oaken timberwolf prowled up along the edge of the cavern, baring its splintered fangs with a growl. The beast’s eyes glowed an otherworldly green, devoid of soul but not of rage. Applejack snickered, pulling her hat low with a hoof. “Ho doggies, you chose the wrong mares to mess with. We’re gonna make this nice and quick, y’hear?” The winged ape roared in reply. With a stroke of its mighty wings, it hurled itself into the air and barreled down on Applejack. She leaped aside with practiced ease, trailing her rope behind her. As the ape crashed down on the space she once occupied, there was instead a waiting lasso. Applejack landed behind the monkey, propped up a hoof against the small of its back, and yanked the rope with her teeth as hard as she could muster. The rope constricted around the ape, binding its arms to its side. The creature snarled and writhed against its constraints, but the rope held firm. With a grating snarl, the timberwolf pounced at Applejack, its claws outstretched and its jaw open wide. She whirled around in response to the sound, barely facing the creature before its jaw crushed down on the ice barrier that sprung up between them. Applejack’s own jaw fell. “W-Where the hay did that come from?” “Gotcha!” laughed Pinkie Pie. The airborne pony laughed and squirmed, gleefully waving her hooves and shaking the frost off them. Rainbow Dash held her from behind, her forelegs wrapped beneath Pinkie Pie’s armpits. Rainbow Dash gently plopped Pinkie Pie onto her hooves before leaping into the fray herself. With a bellow, she dove at the large dinosaur, aiming herself to its side so that her katana connected with its chest. The blade bounced off in the opposite direction with a metallic clang; her neck twisted sharply as the hilt refused to follow through with her and tore itself free from her mouth. Rainbow Dash tumbled off-balance behind the lizard, while her weapon clattered at the base of its claws. She quickly flipped back to her hooves and held a hoof against her sore gums. “Unff... what gives?” The dinosaur looked back and flashed a dangerous glare at Rainbow Dash. It turned itself around in a slow and deliberate manner, rotating a few degrees with each lift and stomp of its stout legs. Once reoriented, it bared its massive fangs with a guttural growl, then roared in rage as two orange hooves connected with the back of its skull. Applejack landed back on the ground, bit down on the katana’s handle, and slid the weapon across the floor toward Rainbow Dash. “You leave this one to me, sugarcube! These fellas are tougher than fittin’ a weasel into a girdle.” With a push of her wings, Rainbow Dash flipped herself head over hooves, bit down on the hilt of the katana in motion, and somersaulted through the air. Touching down briefly atop the dinosaur’s head, she flipped herself again, spinning over Applejack and landing blade-first onto the timberwolf that was stalking up behind her. The timberwolf let loose one last cry of pain before fragmenting into dozens of twigs and branches. Rainbow Dash extracted her weapon, looked back at Applejack, and smirked. “They’re tough. We’re tougher.” Applejack returned the smile, then leaped aside, dodging the slashing claws of the dinosaur. She swapped blows with the creature: the dinosaur seeming unphased by each of her kicks, Applejack shrugging off her cuts and scrapes with gritted teeth. “Yeah!” Pinkie Pie bounced across the cavern with eyes closed and a carefree grin, hopping with no discernible rhythm or direction. “There’s no need to be afraid of a few mean creatures, right? Not with the three of us here together!” Chasing after her, the winged ape growled and punched at her, each swing of its fists missing her entirely and accomplishing nothing more than fueling its rage. “It ain’t that they’re fearsome, Pinkie. It’s that—” Applejack weaved underneath a swipe of the dinosaur’s claws and countered with a kick to the midsection “—they’re worthy adversaries. They may be scum, but they persevere like—gah!” She yelped as one slash finally connected, scoring streaks of red across her snout. “AJ! Hang on!” Rainbow Dash spun in midair, breaking off her attack on the ape. She threw a hoof out toward the dinosaur, letting loose a surge of electric current. The lightning coursed over the lizard’s form as it involuntarily twitched and spasmed. Applejack immediately whirled about and delivered a sharp kick to the stunned beast’s chest. Offering no resistance, the dinosaur hurtled across the cavern and cried as it smashed against the stone wall. It crumpled to the ground and stirred no longer. Pinkie Pie, although pinned up against the wall behind the winged ape, grinned and waved to Applejack. “Hey, Applejack, one more!” She lobbed a spark of magic into the air, which coalesced into a large ice crystal. Taking her cue, Applejack galloped toward the falling magical shard, aimed herself properly, and waited. She bucked out her hind legs, making contact with the ice, launching it like a cannonball across the room. Their Ice Buck attack collided with the back of the winged ape’s skull. The ape staggered slightly, his eyes twitching and losing focus, before he collapsed in a heap. As the last sounds of the conflict echoed away, only the three mares were left standing. “Great work, everypony!” Pinkie Pie pulled out a few slips of parchment from her saddlebags and distributed them to her teammates. “Here’s your battle evaluations. Applejack scored S-class due to her high stamina and landing two finishing blows, plus a newcomer multiplier. Dashie, you got A-class cuz you used a variety of moves and got a finishing blow, but you lost a few points for attacking the dinosaur before stunning it. As for me,” she said, her eyes scanning across her own self-evaluation, “good teamwork... lacks focus... needs improvement on timeliness... reckless and undisciplined? C-class?! What the hay!” She crumpled the document and stomped upon it repeatedly. “I’m totally focused! I’m so focused, I’m a ellipse!” Applejack quickly dropped her own form as well, looking askance underneath her furrowed brow. “I don’t understand. What was with those attacks y’all were usin’? They almost seemed like some kind of unicorn magic, ‘cept neither of y’all have horns on ya.” “Oh. Right.” Rainbow Dash tried to casually run a hoof through her mane, leaving a few strands of statically charged, rainbow-striped hair standing on end. “Those moves are just, y’know. A gift. Some pain-in-the-flank taught us how.” “Mmm,” hummed Applejack as she resumed her way through the caves. “A pain-in-the-flank from the future, huh?” Pinkie Pie’s face scrunched up. “I... think so? The Doctor wasn’t very clear on that. Something something, spacetime coordinates, temporal resistance, probably tea.” “Heh.” Applejack shook her head. “Don’t see what’s the point in going on like that. Ain’t that I don’t believe ya, necessarily, but ya don’t need to keep convolutin’ your story with magic and time travel and all that hogwash. Life is simple if you let it be.” “Simple?” Rainbow Dash snorted. “Yeah, not so much.” “How ya figure?” Rainbow Dash shrugged down at Applejack as she glided down the tunnel. “I dunno. Stop me when I get to the simple part.” She tapped her hooves together as she listed off her concerns. “I’m trying to stop some crazy hedgehog from destroying ponykind, Pinkie’s like a secret princess or something, Twi’s always one hoof away from a panic attack, Frog has sweet moves but serious stage fright or something, I dunno, Fluttershy is this hippie robot from the future, you’re...” She stopped, studying Applejack with an inquisitive stare. “Hay, you’re the head of the Apple clan or whatever, right? You’re practically a princess, too.” Applejack snorted, loud and very unlike a princess. “Come off it, Rainbow. I’m the furthest thing from a pretty pink princess... Err, no offense.” “None taken!” Pinkie Pie smiled and waved her hoof dismissively. “I just take care of my family. That’s all.” Applejack faced forward. Her gaze momentarily turned vacant, but before long a smile overtook her face and a skip overtook her gait. “A family that’s about to get one bigger. I just... That...” She ground to a halt and whipped off her hat. “Hoo-wee! I just can’t believe it. I’m gonna be a momma soon! Me and the love of my life...” She adjusted her hat back on her head and looked sheepishly up at Rainbow Dash. “I don’t mean to be braggin’ none, but let’s just say life’s lookin’ pretty sunny right about now.” “Sunny? Sure, makes sense.” Rainbow Dash chuckled and rested her head in her hooves. “Simple? Still not seeing it.” Applejack blinked at Rainbow Dash. “Sugarcube, family is about as simple as they come.” She pursed her lips and raised an eyebrow. “Or wait a minute. Don’t tell me y’all future-ponies don’t take kindly to a mare and another mare—” Rainbow Dash’s eyes bulged as she quickly held out her hooves. “W-Whoa! Hey, c’mon! I never said anything like that. I’ve got two moms, so I’m totally cool with you guys! I just meant—” The rest of Rainbow Dash’s protests were drowned out by Applejack’s laughter. “Easy, Rainbow, easy! I was just givin’ ya some grief. Didn’t mean nothin’ by it.” “Heh. Got it.” Rainbow Dash rubbed a hoof against the back of her neck and tried to ignore the heat stinging her ears. The conversation lapsed into silence. The trio trotted down the tunnels of the cave, the distorted, overlapping echoes of their hoofsteps sounding almost like a trickling stream. Pinkie Pie hopped along, eagerly casting her glance between the tunnel, her two friends, and a stray patch of mushrooms growing out of the sandstone floor. After running her tongue along the roof of her mouth, she opened it. “So once, I had this pet penguin, Mr. Dapper. He was—” “Is it very common?” “Pet penguins? No, not really. Penguins only live—” “Huh?” Rainbow Dash scrunched up her face at Pinkie Pie. “No, not... Sorry, I meant, AJ,” she said, playing with her hooves while looking where Applejack wasn’t, “y’know, with what we were saying earlier, about your new kid, and that you were really excited, and Daring Do seemed pretty excited too, and—” Applejack smirked at her with half-lidded eyes. “The word won’t bite ya, hun. Just say it.” Rainbow Dash squirmed in mid-air, twisting her shoulders in circles as if trying to unknot a muscle. “Y’know. That you’re, y’know... lesbians.” Her cheeks lit up lightly when Applejack started snickering. “Anyway! I was just curi—wondering,” she growled, “just wondering if it’s common. Here in the past, y’know.” Applejack cleared her throat, suppressing the urge to laugh any more at Rainbow Dash’s expense. “Common? Dunno what to say to that. Wouldn’t call it uncommon. I mean, if couples want foals of their own, they need to trek over to see the unicorns of the Stars tribe, so that makes matters a mite more difficult, but there’s other choices, like adoptin’.” She smiled at Rainbow Dash. “Love is love, Rainbow. If two ponies are in love, that’s the only thing in the world that matters.” “Yeah. That makes sense. Right.” Rainbow Dash returned her hoof to the back of her neck and massaged it once more. “So, your parents?” “My parents?” Applejack blinked for a moment. “Oh. Yes ma’am, I’ve got two mothers myself. Why do y’ask?” “Nothing. Forget it.” Rainbow Dash shook her head rapidly, then pushed off with her wings and raced ahead of the group. “We needa get moving. Twi’s probably tearing her mane out by now.” “We can make time,” Applejack called out, but by that point, Rainbow Dash had already disappeared down the tunnel. She turned to Pinkie Pie. “Now what d’ya suppose has got her feathers all ruffled?” Pinkie Pie shrugged and smiled weakly at Applejack. “Not sure. Sometimes Rainbow Dash isn’t that great at saying what’s really bugging her.” She faced forward and tittered. “I suppose we all do that sometimes, huh?” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 65,000,000 BC Applejack and Daring Do’s Cabin “Oh, good, you’re awake.” Twilight Sparkle blinked the sleep out of her eyes and looked up at Fluttershy. Her eyes scrunched shut again as she stretched her hooves up over her head. “How long was I out?” she asked through a yawn. “Not long. Only, um, eighty nine minutes,” said Fluttershy. She lifted the small washcloth off Twilight Sparkle’s forehead, dipped it into a nearby water basin, and replaced it. “It seems to have done you a world of good, though. You look much better now.” “I guess so?” She adjusted herself on the bed of hay, trying not to disturb the washcloth from her forehead. “My head and stomach aren’t bothering me anymore, so I guess that’s as much as I could ask for, huh?” Smiling up at Fluttershy, she slowly let her eyelids fall shut. Fluttershy trotted across the dirt floor of the log cabin and stared out the open door. “Rainbow and the others haven’t gotten back yet, but it shouldn’t be much longer now. Just get your rest and then we can all leave together, okay?” Twilight Sparkle’s eyes snapped open at the mention of her other friends, then they gradually fell half-closed. “Oh. So, Rainbow and Pinkie Pie aren’t back yet.” “Yes, nor is Applejack.” She trotted back and rested a gentle hoof on Twilight Sparkle’s shoulder. “But don’t you worry about a thing. The three of them can take care of the Gate Key. I know that you want to do your best, Twilight, but you don’t have to do everything. We’re a team. If you ever need help, your friends will always be there to help you.” Twilight Sparkle rolled onto her side, facing away from Fluttershy. The washcloth slipped off her forehead and crumpled lightly on the hay. “Oh, is your stomach ache back again? I could check with Daring and see if we could find some food.” “I still haven’t learned a thing, have I?” “Hmm?” Twilight Sparkle rolled onto her back again, staring blankly up at the wood grain in the roof. “With Rainbow Dash. Anymore, it seems like she just wants to spend time with Pinkie, not me.” Fluttershy took a hesitant step backwards. “Twilight, I... I don’t understand.” “It’s completely clear from the way she’s acted.” She bit lightly on her bottom lip. “Teaming up with her when we were fighting against Lyrabon. Picking her to go find the Gate Key. It feels like she doesn’t even—” “Oh. Um, no, sorry.” Fluttershy held up her hoof to interrupt her. “I mean, I don’t understand why you’re still talking about this. I thought you’d already gotten over this, on the bridge yesterday.” Twilight Sparkle's ears flattened against her head, even as they grew red-hot. “What? No, that’s...” She tilted her head toward Fluttershy and tried to ignore the sudden dryness in her mouth. “It’s not—” “You both decided that you were still friends, right?” Fluttershy said, her voice soft and sincere. She tilted her head to the side while gazing down on Twilight Sparkle. “So, what more is there to say? It shouldn’t matter if she’s friends with Pinkie too, as long as she’s friends with all of us, right?” Her breathing increased as she looked down at her chest. “Well, of course, but, well—” “I’m sorry. I mean, I’m not trying to be insensitive to your concerns, of course,” said Fluttershy, lifting a hoof near her own chest. “But I’m just surprised that this is something that would still be concerning you. I mean, when we met in my home era, you always seemed so strong and collected. I really admired you for that strength, to be honest.” “I... I...” Twilight Sparkle pulled her legs inward, curling herself into a tighter and tighter ball of lavender. “Shh, it’s okay.” Fluttershy reached out and gently stroked Twilight Sparkle’s mane. “You were so out of sorts last night and this morning that you probably still don’t feel like yourself. Just rest here, let me fetch you some fresh water from the river, and you’ll feel like your old self before lunchtime. I promise.” With one last pat, she turned and made her way out the door. Twilight Sparkle twisted her body and flipped herself onto her stomach. She reached out with a hoof, opening her mouth to call out to her friend, but no sound came. As the sound of Fluttershy’s hoofsteps died away, Twilight Sparkle’s hoof and chin gently fell to the ground. She closed her eyes. Her voice found her again, in time only to berate herself. “I’m such an idiot.” “Aww c’mon, kid, don’t be so hard on yourself.” With a jolt, Twilight Sparkle snapped her head around and quickly ran a hoof underneath her eyes. In the back of the cabin, Daring Do was lounging on top of one of the rafters. She was smirking down at Twilight Sparkle with a familiar air of confidence, yet her expression was somehow softened. Clearing her throat, Twilight Sparkle asked, “H-How long have you been up there?” “Was napping while you were. I thought you knew, sorry.” A light hop and a gentle glide of her wings brought Daring Do standing by the side of Twilight Sparkle’s bed. She slumped down off her hooves and rested on her belly, face-to-face. “I wasn’t trying to eavesdrop or nothing. Just, uh,” she said, her smile strengthening yet capped with pink cheeks, “it seems like ‘bad decisions’ are contagious today.” Twilight Sparkle stared down at her hooves. “Is it really that wrong, to feel how I’m feeling?” “Listen, sister,” said Daring Do, “from one jealous pony to another, you shouldn’t—” “Jealous?” Her ears perked as she propped herself up in bed. “I’m not jealous... I’m not!” she added when Daring Do drew her lips and arched an eyebrow. “Fluttershy wasn’t right, about what’s bothering me. It’s not that I need... I don’t know, exclusivity or whatever.” She sat upright in her bed, resting lightly on her haunches. Her gaze, however, lingered down at the hay. “I’ve met so many new friends in the past few days: Pinkie, you, Zecora, Applejack. It used to be only me and Rainbow Dash. Her—” Twilight Sparkle held up her hoof before Daring Do could interject. “Her friendship means so much to me. I’m fine with her having more friends—with all of us having more friends. More friends is great, but... She just feels more and more distant.” Her voice trailed off. Daring Do leaned back on her haunches. “You’re afraid of losing her.” Twilight Sparkle tilted her head away and curled her tail up next to her legs. Rising to her hooves, Daring Do walked to the open doorway and looked out on the small village. She could just make out the treeline of the southern orchard, visible between the neighboring log cabins. Looking back over her shoulder, she said, “I get it. I do. But this Rainbow Dash sounds like a bang-up pony. At least that’s what AJ thinks, and her gut instincts about a pony are good enough for me.” She walked back to Twilight Sparkle and lightly bumped into her with a shoulder. “Good ponies don’t leave their friends hanging.” “I doubt it’s that simple,” she replied with a hollow chuckle. Daring Do laughed in return and rolled her eyes. “Yeah, yeah, it’s cliche, and after that scene from this morning, I’m hardly the pony to talk. I’m aware of that. I guess I just needed a reminder. But since you saw our little tussle, you oughta know what I’m about to say.” She rested a hoof on Twilight Sparkle’s shoulder. “She believes in you. Always has, always will. You just gotta have faith that she’ll be there for you. Don’t give up on her.” She winced as Twilight Sparkle cringed and pulled away at those words. “Look, I know that’s not what you wanna hear—” “No. No, it’s not that.” Twilight Sparkle brought a hoof to her eyes and laughed. “It’s just, I said something awfully similar yesterday afternoon, and I’d already forgotten my own advice. I guess that was exactly what I needed to hear.” She placed her hoof on top of Daring Do’s and smiled. “Thank you. I don’t honestly know if I can, but... I’ll try.” “C’mon, don’t worry,” Daring Do said, winking playfully. “We’ll get you and your fillyfriend back together by the end of the day, promise.” “Oh.” Twilight Sparkle’s ears fell limp. “No, no, that’s—We’re not—” Daring Do sighed, staring at her with half-lidded eyes. “That was a joke. Seriously, last night you must’ve declared you were straight three times for every drink you had. And that’s saying something, Ms. Boozehound.” “Oh.” She nodded, looking up and to the right. “The party. Right.” After a few seconds of silence, Daring Do looked askance at her. “You do remember your little performance last night, right?” Twilight Sparkle rubbed the back of her neck and flashed a toothy grin. “Err, heh heh, truth be told, I’ve got a few blank spots in my memories of last night. One or two.” “Oh, my, gosh.” Daring Do grinned back with heaps of eagerness. “Have I got some stories for you, then. See, it wasn’t even ten minutes after they brought out the cider wagon, that you were—” A shriek pierced the air of the village. Both mares’ ears pivoted toward the doorway. “Fluttershy!” screamed Twilight Sparkle. “Where did—whoa!” Daring Do staggered to recover her balance as Twilight Sparkle barreled through her. A magenta aura tore into her saddlebags and extracted her plasma pistol. Before Daring Do could react, Twilight Sparkle and her weapon were gone. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 65,000,000 BC Southern Lair—Grand Cavern Rainbow Dash pulled her bandana off her head, wiping the already-grimy rag across the base of her neck. “Look, AJ, I know that Pinkie was joking earlier. Or acting goofy. Whatever-it-is she does.” She replaced her headgear and bit down on the hilt of her sword. Placing her hoof on the neck of the deceased manticore, she pulled and tugged until the blade slid free. “But is this a zoo? We’ve been wandering around for forever, and I don’t even think we’ve fought the same critter twice.” “Mmm, yeah, I dunno anymore.” Pinkie Pie rested her head on a hoof, seated atop a deceased hetake mushroom. “If there's only one of each animal, they wouldn't be able to breed them. That's pretty essential for a zoo. Poor Mr. Dapper. He still hasn’t found his soulmate either.” Applejack shook her head, trotting into the center of the cavern. “Terrible as it is to say, these critters are just meant to slow us down. This is all one big game to her.” She looked upward, shielding her face from the moisture which dripped down from the mighty stalactites overhead. “You hear me?! C’mon out already. You’re the ones itchin’ for a tussle, so let’s tussle already.” Her voice reverberated against each nook and cranny of the chamber, while her dancing silhouette was cast across every wall by a circle of eight oil lanterns on posts around the perimeter. “So! Somepony’s looking for a fight?” bellowed a deep voice. Rainbow Dash whipped her head around. “Who’s there?” She backflipped in midair and searched behind her as well. “We aren’t afraid of you!” Pinkie Pie shivered, rubbed her hooves against her forelegs, and tried to stop her teeth from chattering. With a pained sigh, Applejack let her eyes fall shut, and she hung her head. The brim of her hat cast all but the tip of her muzzle in shadow. Applejack pulled back one of her hind legs and balanced stoically on three legs. “Strike first with all your might!” Pinkie Pie hiccuped. Gasping and tucking her ears, she opened her mouth to shout. Soundless but for a swoosh of wind surrounding it, a boulder—twice the size of a pony—hurtled from the rear of the cavern, aimed straight at Applejack. She kicked out her poised leg, snapping like a mousetrap, connecting with the crushing projectile. With a thundering crack, her horseshoe drove through the rock and cleaved it in half, sending pony-sized chunks crashing to the ground on either side of her. “Jeez!” Rainbow Dash beat the air with her wings, clearing away the stirring dust. “You okay, Applejack? What’s with the dude throwing shit at us?” Applejack’s eyelids cracked open, weary slits staring out at the world. She lifted her gaze and stared level at the wall in front of her. “Iron Will,” she said flatly. From the same direction that the boulder launched, a hulking monstrosity emerged from the shadows, balanced on two hooves. The gray, bull-like creature snorted, fogging over the nose ring that pierced his snout. He pointed forth at Applejack in a strong pose, flexing his arms and abs, muscle and vein straining against his skin and visible beneath his fur. “Applejack,” he grunted. Pinkie Pie raised her eyebrows. “You two know each other?” Applejack stepped about in a circle, muttering to Pinkie Pie as she passed, “Far more‘n I’d like.” Facing Iron Will, she fixed a steely glare on him. “Let’s not go through the whole dog and pony show today, alright? Been enough senseless bloodshed already. Just give back that thing you stole, we’ll pretend that I walloped you what-for, and us ponyfolk will leave you to yours.” “Silly Applejack,” said Iron Will, tacking on a wry snort, “the likes of you and I have sparred numerous times, mano-a-pezuña. And if there is one thing—and only one thing—that you should have taken away from those brawls, is that I,” said he, jamming his thumb into his sternum, “am no doormat.” “Ugh,” snapped Applejack, “this ain’t about your pride. We just wanna be left alone, without your lot causing us pain and sufferin’ at every possible junction!” She punctuated her sentence with a stomp of her hoof, echoing thrice in the cavern. The next sound was a voice. Sultry and feminine, it seemed to come from everywhere and nowhere at once. “Aww.” Applejack’s frame went rigid at the sound. Her eyes danced about in their sockets, searching for the source of the voice and finding nothing but stone. Her expression, at first unreadable, slowly evolved into an ugly sneer: lip curled to expose her canines, brow creased and furrowed, ears folded back flat against her scalp, stance lowered and tensed. “Are we keeping you from something important, mmm?” The voice was accentuated with sharp clacks on stone, keeping a slow, even rhythm. Meanwhile, Iron Will turned his head slightly, peeking out of the corner of his eye. “Harvesting some fruit, no doubt? Perhaps a bit of galloping across the meadows?” Rainbow Dash’s mouth opened to ask another question, but no sound came forth. She stared at Applejack’s hostile pose for a moment, then wordlessly, she drew her katana and held it to the ready. Seeing her friends both preparing, Pinkie Pie bit her lip and gave a pensive flick of her tail, yet she fidgeted with her crossbow brace. When the owner of the female voice emerged from the shadows, the first part of her body to do so was her leg. Shaved smooth and pale, it broke its way through the tall slit of a purple dress: slim, silken, shimmering. Her foot was strapped into a matching stiletto heel, which landed with another sharp clack. She carried forward, the light illuminating her more and more with each step. Her curvaceous figure. Her blonde, voluminous locks of hair. Her soft, sympathetic eyes paired with a tight, malicious smirk. Rainbow Dash and Pinkie Pie both froze, staring at her in wide-eyed silence. Taking note of the ponies’ dazed expressions, she let out a soft chuckle in a voice rich and silky. She walked up from behind Iron Will and crossed in front of him, running her fingers teasingly along his biceps while eyeing the trio of ponies in front of her. “Dear, sweet Applejack. It’s been far too long. You’re looking well.” As her friends looked to her for confirmation, Applejack hawked up and spat at the ground between herself and the woman in the purple dress, before baring her teeth once more. “Eva.” Queen Eva’s smirk widened. * * * Chapter 25: Ambush! Hurry! 65,000,000 BC Southern Lair—Grand Cavern Eva grinned at Applejack, staring at her with a stoic, half-lidded gaze. Arms akimbo, her weight was shifted slightly, jutting her hip out to the side. Behind her, Iron Will stood tall, his chest puffed out and pressed against his folded arms. Eva cleared her throat demurely. “That’s Queen Eva. Show some respect to your betters, dear Applejack.” A feral growl tore out of Applejack’s throat. “Betters?” came her husky voice. “I ain’t seein’ no betters in front-a me.” Winking, Queen Eva waved a single finger in front of her, bouncing with each correction. “I don’t see any betters in front of me.” Applejack snorted. “Mockin’ my way of speakin’? I’d say that’s like spittin’ in a rain barrel, but I reckon there ain’t no depths that scum like you wouldn’t stoop to.” “Mocking you?” Eva gasped lightly, raising her eyebrows and bringing her index finger to rest lightly on her bottom lip. “Applejack, Applejack. I thought we understood each other better than that. I would never be so petty as to resort to sticks or stones.” Her surprised expression having served its purpose, her face returned to its neutral pose of smug bemusement. “I simply want what’s best for you.” “Best for us? Best?!” shrieked Applejack, her voice cracking under the strain. Her toned legs slammed down into the floor, drawing a hairline crack in the stone. “You’ve the gall to say that after all the despic—” She looked up, the words dying in her throat. Blinking, she turned her head around to find a pink hoof resting on her withers. Pinkie Pie pulled her in close, gently stroked her mane, and whispered into her ear, “AJ, it... it’s gonna be okay, okay?” After hesitating briefly, Applejack relented and drew into Pinkie Pie’s side, slowing her breathing to normal. Closing her eyes, Queen Eva nodded in agreement with herself. “Mmm, yes. Your amaranth friend is correct, dear Applejack. There is no need to be upset. You and I simply need to have a girl chat one of these days.” She rested her cheek in the palm of her hand, planting her elbow in her other hand. “Perhaps over some chai? Or you could have some of your cider instead, if it’s more to your tastes.” Applejack exhaled deeply, drew in a lungful of fresh air, and opened her eyes. When she spoke again, her voice was soft, level, and forcibly restrained. “Eva. That thing you stole belongs to Rainbow Dash and her friends,” she said, nudging her head toward Rainbow Dash. “They ain’t a part of this. It’s me and my kin you’re after. Hoof them their thing, let ‘em be on their way, and then you and I can ‘chat’ all y’like.” “Ah yes, these new companions of yo—” She paused, a single thin crease appearing on her brow. Her smile slowly melting, Eva’s eyes danced up and down Rainbow Dash’s form, causing the pony to fidget under the scrutinous gaze. She glanced briefly at Pinkie Pie before returning to Rainbow Dash, and her jaw jutted out ever so slightly. And then, just as suddenly as it had left, Eva’s easy smile returned. “—these new companions of yours. Rainbow Dash, was it?” She looked to Applejack for confirmation, then smiled again at Rainbow Dash. She slowly walked her way around the perimeter of the cavern, Iron Will following two paces behind. “Charmed. I am Her Majesty, Queen Eva.” Rainbow Dash raised her hoof and pulled back, keeping the queen locked in her sights. “Queen? Queen of what?” The blade of her katana bounced and flopped with each syllable. Queen Eva shook with silent mirth. “Why, everything, of course. The land.” She swept her hand across the room in an idle, grandiose gesture, before pointing her hand at Applejack, palm up. “The beasts. All things. It is our destiny.” Pinkie Pie looked up from Applejack’s mane, momentarily forgetting the growling and tensed muscles below her. “Your... destiny?” “Buncha hooey!” spat Applejack. She jabbed her hoof in Eva’s direction. “You do whatever you choose, imposin’ yer will on everypony, then you just claim it’s ‘birthright’ and ‘natural order’? You ain’t foolin’ nopony!” She stomped her hoof down, its sharp clack punctuating her sentence. “Spoutin’ the same crazy-talk over ‘n’ over, every single chance you get, don’t make it come true. Yer still a bunch of apples short of a bushel!” “Shh.” Queen Eva raised a finger to her lips. “Stay calm, dear Applejack.” She reached behind her back, and though she had no visible pouch or bag, her hand reappeared delicately grasping the Gate Key. Pinkie Pie gasped audibly as Eva continued, “You were right, earlier: there is no reason to subject your visitors to our quarrel. A simple courtesy, then.” She held the Gate Key out toward Rainbow Dash, half a meter out of hoof’s reach. “Your friends can have their little toy back.” She smiled serenely at Rainbow Dash. “Wouldn’t that be nice? I’m sure you and your friends are eager to return to the future.” “I mean,” said Rainbow Dash, scratching behind her ear, “Twi has been freaking out that we’d be stuck in the past forever, but still, we can't—mmph fhph ghp!” she yelped, gagging as Applejack’s hoof lodged itself in her mouth. “Ha ha ha!” laughed Applejack, wearing a toothy expression which was likely intended to be a disarming smile, but in actuality looked as though she had been suckerpunched in the gut. “Ain’t she a riot? RD sure does love to weave one heckuva yarn, lemme tell ya. Why, just last night, she... she...” Applejack swallowed the rising lump in her throat. Queen Eva was wearing her own tooth-filled grin, her brow creased and her pupils flared. “Now now, my little pony. Lies don’t become you.” “Ooo, how’d she know? How’d she know?” Pinkie Pie trotted up to Queen Eva, eagerly examining her dress as if looking for a clue written in the stitching. “Is she a spy? A fortune-telling gypsy?” Her jaw dropped as she stared up at Eva’s face. “Don’t tell me she’s a time traveller, too!” Eva chuckled and arched an eyebrow at Applejack. “Pay attention. You might learn something. Firstly, you’re with a pegasus. Barring your wife, who turned her back on her own kind—say hello to Daring for me, won’t you—I’d hardly expect your tribes to suddenly start cooperating now. “Next, your friends’ attire,” she continued, waving the Gate Key at Rainbow Dash. “Fabrics which I’ve never seen, certainly not on any of your kinds. A blade of fine make. Even some saddlebags, which, if I’m not mistaken,” she said while squinting and dramatically holding a hand over her brow, “appear to be machine-stitched.” “Got it!” said Pinkie Pie, smacking her hooves together. “She’s a private investigator with obsessive-compulsive disorder!” Sweeping with her other hand, she motioned to Pinkie Pie beside her. “An earth pony who decidedly lacks, ahem, yer kin’s ax-ent.” She offered her hand, which Pinkie Pie promptly shook with her hoof. “Not to mention, this quite ornate collapsable crossbow she’s wearing.” “Thank you for noticing!” chirped Pinkie Pie. “And then of course, there’s this.” Queen Eva turned aside, holding the Gate Key in full display, turning it end over end. “Such advanced technology. I’ve never seen its equal.” Blinking, she looked askance at Applejack. “Of course, the marvel is probably lost on mere livestock. But even I wouldn’t know where to begin with studying such a device. This is quite exciting.” She returned her gaze to the Gate Key and chuckled. “It would seem the future holds much in store. “But no matter. Forgive me and my idle musings.” She rested a hand on her hip and took a few steps toward Applejack, unphased by the latter’s sneer. “Even if your friends are from the future, they needn’t be present. They may have their item back.” She offered the Gate Key to Applejack. “Cool. Awesome.” Rainbow Dash looked to Applejack for confirmation, but the two arch-enemies were locked in each other’s gaze. She slowly approached Queen Eva and reached up with a hoof. “I’ll just—” Eva curled up her arm, spun on her heels, and walked away. “After a brief sortie, of course. Lest we forget, you invaded our sovereign soil and slaughtered some of our guard beasts. Such an act of aggression cannot go unpunished. Quid pro quo, and all that.” Applejack's gaze bored into the back of her skull. “What's the point? You’ll throw your crony at me—” she waved her hoof flippantly at Iron Will “—and I'll just beat him up. Same old song and dance. It's just a waste of time.” Queen Eva froze in her tracks, looked back at Applejack, and blinked. “But it is a waste of time, dear Applejack.” She looked to Iron Will, tilting her head to the side. Iron Will grasped onto a chain on his belt, from which dangled a small hourglass. After studying it for a moment, he nodded. “It should already be underway.” “More guessing games?” asked Pinkie Pie. “Neat! Now what does she mean? What could be starting soon?” “I don’t understand what you’re goin’ on about,” murmured Applejack, furrowing her brow and staring down at her muzzle. “Wastin’ my time with all this here hoop-jumpin’ is petty, even by your standards. Let’s just get on with it. I promised DD that when I got back to... the village... No...” Her eyes growing in size, Applejack took a few steps back. Her breathing intensified. Her tail thrashed about violently. “No!” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 65,000,000 BC Apple Village Commons Fluttershy shook violently, taking slow, stilted steps backward. She jolted as her flank unexpectedly bumped into the exterior wall of the cabin. She flattened her body against it, trying to withdraw as much as possible. In front of the steel pony stood a human clad in a suit of iron. Holding a jagged knife in one gauntlet and a bridle in the other, he slowly closed in upon the cowering Fluttershy. “Huh, ain’t that something. You ponies are making armor now, too? Queen Eva'll be quite pleased to have such a mount in her stable.” As he approached, he held the bridle in front of him, preparing to position it onto Fluttershy. “Here, little pony. I don’t want to hurt you. I’ll just—yearrgh!” His scream of agony overwhelmed Fluttershy’s sensors as he fell to the ground, clutching his back. “Fluttershy!” Twilight Sparkle leaped in front of Fluttershy, facing out in a defensive stance, her blaster levitating and steaming. She glanced a look back and shouted above the din. “Are you okay? He didn’t hurt you, did he?” “N-No, I’m... well, I’m not okay, but I’m so glad you’re here.” She peeled herself off the wall and stepped to Twilight Sparkle’s side. “Who are they? What’s going on?” “I’m not certain,” she said, drawing the corners of her mouth tight, “but I have a theory. And it’s not pleasant.” The humans’ ambush raged around them. With ropes and bridles, they subdued and bound the cowering ponies of the village. A scant few ponies were brave enough to fight back, but against warriors with training, armor, and arms, they were quickly subdued. Most ponies opted for proverbial flight over fight, screaming in terror as they tried to escape the village. But the escaping ponies were cut off, chased down by humans riding astride the same quadrupedal lizards from yesterday’s skirmish and wielding wooden bows and arrows. “This...” stammered Fluttershy as she reached the same conclusion as Twilight Sparkle. “This is... I can’t even...” Her body started to shake once more. “We have to—” “Duck!” Twilight Sparkle shoved her to the ground and again leaped in front of her. Another human warrior, seeing his fallen comrade at the hooves of two armed ponies, charged at them at full sprint, sword held high. Drawing in a breath, Twilight Sparkle leveled her blaster at the charging human. She closed one eye for focus and felt out for the trigger with her magic, ready to protect her friend and herself—when without warning, the soldier was violently pulled back off the ground with a sharp crack. Twilight Sparkle snapped her eyes open, searching around for a possible explanation, when one crashed down in front of her. “Eyes forward, ladies!” barked Daring Do. She snapped her head to the side, sending a shockwave through the four-meter bullwhip hanging from her mouth. The whip cracked sharply at the feet of the uprooted human, eliciting the intended reaction: immediate tactical retreat. “These monkeys aren’t dicking around.” “Daring!” screamed a pony from across the way. As they located the source of the voice, they could see her hoisted over one of the human’s shoulders, her hooves bound in thick rope. Eyes flashing, Daring Do bit down on the midsection of her whip, forming a lazy loop in her mouth, and she took to the sky. Hesitating in the air, she spun back to Twilight Sparkle. “Help us! Keep everypony safe!” Twilight Sparkle gave a crisp nod without hesitation, and Daring Do was on her way. Holding up her blaster, Twilight Sparkle motioned with her head. “Fluttershy, c’mon! They need us.” “This is... disgusting.” Though Fluttershy’s frame continued to vibrate, her hooves moved forward at a faster and faster rhythm. “I can’t stand in the back and let this happen. I can’t allow it! Get out OF HERE!” “Fluttershy, wait for me!” Twilight Sparkle broke to a full gallop, chasing after her screaming friend as they dived into the thick of the fray. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 65,000,000 BC Southern Lair—Grand Cavern Queen Eva’s smirk stretched ear to ear, her blue eyes reflecting the flames of the oil lamps. “As I said, dear Applejack, quid pro quo.” Spinning on her hooves, Applejack bolted for the cavern’s opening, but screeched to a halt at the mouth of the tunnel, narrowly avoiding getting crushed by a collapsing cascade of boulders. She turned back from the cave-in, glaring with flames in her own eyes. Iron Will pointed straight at Applejack with his left arm, his right forming an indent in the cave wall. “When somepony’s running from the bout, cut off their escape route!” Applejack spread her stance wide and crouched low as she roared, “You snake! Let us outta here this instant!” Rainbow Dash looked to Pinkie Pie, who simply shrugged back. “I think we’re missing something, AJ. Can’t we just play their dumb little game, and—” “They’re attackin’ the village, Dash!” she yelled, wheeling on Rainbow Dash. Her eyebrows had flipped from furrowed to raised, her eyes shimmering in the lamplight. “What?!” “They’re just stallin’ for time while we ain’t there to protect everypony. They’re foalnappers and slavers, Dash. Everypony’s in danger! Mah family! Daring!” Rainbow Dash’s face fell, from her ears to her jaw. “Twilight?” “Now, now,” purred Queen Eva. “Fighting against Iron Will here shouldn’t take too long. You might even have enough time to save one or two of yo—hrrk!” A rainbow blur crashed into her, sending her flying across the cave and pinning her against the wall, a half-meter above the ground. “Let! Us! Out!” Rainbow Dash yelled into her face. Though her eyes were twisted in pain, Queen Eva still managed to wear her signature smile. “My, aren’t we the feisty little freedom fighter? I can see why dear Applejack enlisted your help.” She tucked the Gate Key into Rainbow Dash’s saddlebags and gave them a soft pat. “Your trinket, as promised. But I’m afraid you’re wasting valuable time, yelling at little old me. Iron Will is the only one strong enough to open that tunnel back up, so if you want—” Rainbow Dash released Eva and spun backwards through the air, dropping her unceremoniously on the ground in the process. She hurtled toward Iron Will at full speed, katana at the ready. In a fluid motion belaying his muscular size, Iron Will leaned to the side, dodging the pegasus projectile entirely. Snatching out with his hand at the last moment, he grasped onto Rainbow Dash’s chromatic tail. “When they use blades...” He spun on his hooves, whipped her about in a circle, and then, like a discus thrower, hurled her across the cave. “Pay ‘em back in spades!” Rainbow Dash crashed into the wall with a crumble of stone, a plume of dust, and a pink earth pony hot on her heels. “Oh no, ya don’t!” Applejack leaped at Iron Will, twisting herself in midair to lead with her rear hooves. Iron Will blocked with an upraised forearm and swung with a wide left hook, but whiffed over her head. She dropped to the ground, slid between his legs, and bucked again, directly into Iron Will’s waiting palm. She staggered as Iron Will tried to pull her off-balance with his captured hoof, but she spun about her leg’s axis and delivered a sharp hoofdrop to the inside of his wrist, forcing him to release his grip. Rainbow Dash staggered back onto her hooves, clutching her forehead and enveloped in a cool blue mist. “Dang.” Finishing her Cure spell, Pinkie Pie nodded while looking at Applejack and her opponent. “I know, right? It’s quite emotive.” “Seriously,” said Rainbow Dash as she too nodded. “They’re really going at it.” She blinked. “Wait, I don’t think that’s what ‘emotive’ means.” “But just look at em!” Pinkie Pie smooshed her cheek against Rainbow Dash’s and pointed a hoof at the dueling pair, as if to ensure that Rainbow Dash wasn’t looking at a different fight. “They musta fought dozens of times, and they know all of each other’s moves. It’s like they’re dancing, isn’t it?” “What?” droned Rainbow Dash. She pointed her own hoof at the pair, for much the same reason as Pinkie Pie. “They’re trying to kill each other. Well, at least one of 'em is, anyway.” She winced and inhaled through her teeth as Applejack took a rough hoofkick to her midsection. Pinkie Pie shook her head, and—since she was still cheek-to-cheek—she shook Rainbow Dash’s head as well. “Nopey dopey. She’s super mad at that Eva lady, and who can blame AJ for that, since Eva sure seems like a big bossy brazen bipedal witch, but with Iron Will, it seems more like—” “Hey, RD, Pinks?” Applejack punched Iron Will in the kneecap, then somersaulted and kicked him square in the jaw. “It’s nice that y’all are having a friendly little chat ‘bout philosophy and what-has-ya, but would ya mind lendin’ a hoof?” “My pleasure!” Smirking, Rainbow Dash charged up her outstretched hoof. The air about her hoof cracked and ionized as voltage coursed about her body. Iron Will and Applejack’s sparring slowed to a halt as the pair bore witness to the magical display before them. With whirling flair, Rainbow Dash whipped her hoof skyward, shooting electricity up into the stalactite-covered ceiling. Applejack and Iron Will’s eyes instinctively drifted upward, following the charge. It was exactly the opening Rainbow Dash needed. With a sudden burst of speed, she tore across the chamber toward Iron Will. Her blade aimed and focused, she gashed across the breadth of his chest, a small whirlwind following behind her at a half-second delay. A small red streak formed on Iron Will’s chest, looking rather inflamed. With a frown, Iron Will licked his thumb and rubbed it vigorously across the mark. “C’mon, seriously?!” “Now you look here, missy.” Iron Will grasped her tail once more, before she could fly to a safe distance. He tugged and flexed, holding Rainbow Dash still in spite of her frantically-beating wings. “Sneaky attacks like that are for cowards. True warriors attack head-on!” “Yer one to talk,” grumbled Applejack, wiping her jaw. Once more, Iron Will whirled Rainbow Dash about, this time spinning her overhead like a screaming, cyan sling. “Go for a cheap shot, I’ll make you hurt a lot!” “Whee! Faster, faster!” Iron Will’s face contorted. “Wait, huh?” As his wrist stopped flicking back and forth, the pony overhead lost her momentum and fell downward, swinging back and forth from her curly pink tail. Lacking the needed concentration to maintain his composure, Iron Will's jaw fell and his shoulders slumped. “Aww,” whined Pinkie Pie, her pout managing to resemble a chipper smile when viewed upside-down. “Why’d you stop?” Rainbow Dash blinked and looked herself over, suddenly finding herself seated on her haunches in the middle of the cave. “Wait, huh?” “Hey, don’t give me that stupefied look! Look!” Reaching within her frizzy ponytail, Pinkie Pie scooped out a heaping mound of glitter, holding it atop her downward-pointing hoof. “Glitter!” she explained. Sucking down a lungful of air, she blew the glitter off her hoof, covering all over Iron Will’s face, nose ring, and eyeballs. “Gah!” Releasing her tail, Iron Will brought both fists up to his eyes and vigorously rubbed at the tiny flakes of color scratching his corneas. Pinkie Pie plopped down to her hooves and merrily skipped away, clearing the distance just as Rainbow Dash’s bolt of lightning released from the stalactites and shot to the ground, straight through Iron Will’s body. His agony doubled, he roared as his muscles twitched and spasmed in spite of himself. Applejack seized her opportunity, galloped in, and gave a leaping buck to his stomach, knocking the wind out of him. As she skidded to a landing, Applejack turned to Rainbow Dash with a pained look upon her face. “Hold up now. How’d she and you switch places like that? How’d she hold that glitter upside down without it fallin’ out her hoof? How’d she know when the lightnin’ would—” “No. Applejack, seriously, stop trying to figure her out.” Rainbow Dash waved her hooves at Applejack. “You’ll just give yourself a headache. Trust me.” Taking to her wings once more, she smirked at her recovering opponent. “Alright, you bully. Now lemme show you how it’s really done.” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 65,000,000 BC Apple Village Commons The warrior’s chestplate crumpled like tinfoil as Twilight Sparkle’s mallet crashed into it. He fell to his knees, wheezing for air, before collapsing face-first onto the dusty field. Freed from engagement for the moment, Twilight Sparkle’s eyes danced about the chaos. “Fluttershy! Fluttershy, where are you?” Even amongst frantic, scampering earth ponies and armored, marauding humans, and in spite of her muted yellow and pink palette, a trail of murky exhaust made Fluttershy easy to locate in a crowd. Her Rocket Hoof smacked into the hindside of a fleeing human, sending him flying a good five meters before crumpling in a heap on the roadside. Turning back, Fluttershy leaned down and looked into the eyes of a sniffling little filly. “There now, please don’t cry. He won’t hurt you ever again.” The filly didn’t look back at her, instead reaching her hoof over Fluttershy’s shoulder. “Daddy!” she wailed. Fluttershy turned and looked in her direction. On the grass between two cabins, an orange stallion bucked and squirmed against his restraints. A pair of humans held him fast, one tightly grasping the lasso that wrapped around his chest while the other tried to affix a bridle on his muzzle. “Hey!” Fluttershy’s rocket wings shrieked to life, sending her heavy steel frame hurtling toward the poachers at deadly speed. “Leave him alone!” Twilight Sparkle raced up to the filly, gasping for breath while she stared after Fluttershy’s jet trail. She turned down and motioned with her nose. “Your dad will be fine, I promise! Head for Applejack’s cabin. It's safe there!” The young filly sniffed and wiped a hoof across her nose. “Promise?” “Yes, now go, quickly!” Twilight Sparkle nudged the filly along with her head and watched her scamper towards the cabin. Sufficiently convinced of the young one’s safety, she turned back to the battlefield. The marauders numbered only a few dozen—far from a crushing invasion, but amid a village of mostly timid ponies, there was little resistance. All around her, ponies were being bound up and carted off by hominids twice her height and armed for battle. The sound of a sharp crack behind her drew Twilight Sparkle’s mind back into focus. Turning on her heels, she steadied her blaster and let fly a trio of shots. The bolts of plasma whizzed across the field, buzzing past Daring Do’s ear, and embedding into the chest plate of a female archer. She clutched at her chest and dropped the longbow that she’d been pointing Daring Do’s way. Another sharp crack from Daring Do's whip, and the soldier in front of her fell to his back, screaming and holding his hand to his face. Daring Do turned back with a wink. “Nice shootin’, kid.” “We’re starting to whittle down their forces,” panted Twilight Sparkle as she galloped up, limping from cramps and cuts, “but we’re still outnumbered by a ratio of several to one. Fluttershy is on the other side of—” Daring Do chuckled and shook her head. “What, no quips about how I’m barely older than—” “Daring!” Twilight Sparkle stomped her hooves and flicked her tail. “This is no laughing matter! Those... those things are taking—” “Hey.” As Daring Do opened her eyes again, Twilight Sparkle’s voice evaporated. Though Daring Do’s smile had not wavered, her eyes spoke. Twilight Sparkle couldn’t fathom the full meaning of the story they told, but wordlessly she understood the depth they carried. “I know, yeah? I know how serious this is. Just...” She turned her head, scanning the edges of the village. “Sometimes you gotta do anything to keep smiling, y’know?” Her head jerked to a stop, and she nodded to the distance. “Two escaping southwest. Fluttershy’s got east.” She jumped to the sky, her whip flapping behind her. “Grab the north!” “Got it!” Rearing up on her hind hooves, Twilight Sparkle spun around and raced toward the north end of the square. Her chest burned, each stride of her gallop more focused on keeping herself on her hooves than on propelling herself forward. Come on, she pleaded. Please hurry. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 65,000,000 BC Southern Lair—Grand Cavern Pinkie Pie’s jaw popped. “Rainbow Dash, look out! He’s gonna punch you!” Spinning onto her back, Rainbow Dash glided above Iron Will’s fist, her mane brushing across his arm as she flew past. “I know,” she growled. Twisting about, she brought down her sword on his forearm. As the muscular minotaur had been softened by her constant onslaught of lightning bolts, her katana finally struck home, leaving a proper gash along his arm. “You think you ponies can simply outnumber me?” said Iron Will, snorting roughly. He windmilled his left arm, knocking aside some incoming crossbow bolts as though he were swatting at flies. "My rigorous training regimen has made me stronger than you could even imagine!" Looking to his side, he spotted Applejack approaching at a full gallop, and he pulled back his right arm. A soft pop echoed across the cavern walls. “Applejack, look out! He’s gonna punch you!” Flipping laterally while midstride, Applejack landed roughly on her back with a grunted, “I know.” Her momentum slid her forward, the rough cavern floor scratching at her backside, as she passed underneath the punch and Iron Will himself. As she rolled beneath his legs, she opened her mouth and released one end of her rope, letting it lag behind her. Rolling up to her hooves, she doubled back and raced around him in a wide circle. Pop. “Rainbow Dash, look out! He’s—” “I know!” Rainbow Dash parried Iron Will’s white-knuckled fist and beat her wings twice, sailing over his head. Her hooves lit up with blue-white sparks before lightning rained down from her. Through gritted teeth, Iron Will steadied his shaking fists and stared down Applejack. He made to walk toward her, but staggered immediately as he found his hooves bound up in Applejack’s rope. “This isn’t over, farmgirl,” he hissed. “Even when you’re down, don’t yield any ground!” His muscles slowly stopped their shaking. Turning his whole chest, he pulled back his fist and took aim. Pinkie Pie’s jaw popped. “We know!” shouted Applejack and Rainbow Dash in unison. Pinkie Pie reached out with a hoof and yelped, “Iron Will, look out!” “Huh?” Iron Will turned to give Pinkie Pie an incredulous look, and thus he missed some things. He failed to see Applejack spin about and wind up her legs, nor did he see Rainbow Dash fly down and lightly touch her own hooves to Applejack’s. He certainly missed Applejack buck with all her might, launching Rainbow Dash like a bullet. He certainly felt the Falcon Hit, though. The pegasus and minotaur blurred across the room, bouncing and tumbling horn over hoof, before crashing full-force into the rockslide in the back of the room. The collapsed tunnel exploded in a shower of pebbles and dust. Applejack and Pinkie Pie raced up to the crash site, frantically waving their hooves and squinting through the blinding debris. As the dust settled, they saw the form of a collapsed, unconscious Iron Will, strewn haphazardly atop the rubble which once blocked the pathway. Rainbow Dash was nowhere in sight. With a running start, Applejack leaped into the air, clearing the rubble and minotaur in a single bound. “C’mon, Pinks!” she shouted while galloping down the tunnel and vanishing from sight. Pinkie Pie trotted up the side of the hill, wearing a frown and shaking her head at Iron Will’s unconscious form. “I tried to warn you,” she lamented. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 65,000,000 BC Apple Village Commons Screams. Aching muscles. My heartbeat pounding in my ears. From somewhere, the smell of flames. I’m drowning, but I can’t stop. Not yet. Where is she? There. Twenty meters out. Two mares slung over the shoulder of one of those beasts. My weapon, held in magic. Aim. Down. They can free each other. Where is she? Keep moving. Fluttershy? Daring’s putting out that house fire. Another filly; go to Applejack’s. Fluttershy? Sword! Jump back, quick draw; he’s down. Oh thank the Sun, there’s Fluttershy—not hurt. Where is she? Twilight Sparkle’s hoof caught on a rock, and with a squawk, she tumbled to the ground, skinning her front knees before coming to rest awkwardly on her side. She rolled back to her hooves and pressed, but nothing happened. Her body shook and trembled, but her belly remained firmly rooted to the ground. “Still have my blaster,” she hissed, closing one eye. Though her hooves were committing mutiny, she planted one to her side and leaned on it, holding herself as steady as she could. Where is she? She took stock of the remaining enemies, but reality danced and swam in front of her. Only four humans left. No, nine. Where is she? Six. Ahead, one of the humans lunged and grabbed onto the hind legs of a fleeing colt. The colt squealed and screamed for help, but the attacker pulled him ever closer. Twilight Sparkle took her shot. High and left. No good. I’ll hit ponies. Where is she? She felt her horn grow clammy, her blaster wavering and shaking in front of her. Beyond the blaster, the colt wailed and dug his front hooves into the sand. Where is she? As her strength drained from her limbs, she felt her horn growing hotter and hotter. Where is she? Where is she? Where is she? “Rainbow Dash!” Her horn exploded with magic, blasting a wave of flames into the sky. Twice her size, the orb of fire hung in midair at the zenith of its lazy arc, illuminating every human and pony with a radiance like a second sun. Twilight Sparkle craned her neck, looking skyward, squinting to see the intense magic. With a leap of her heart, a burst of wind blew onto her back, whipping her mane forward and into her eyes. By the time she shook her vision clear, the perfect orb was gone; in its place was a lingering trail of color and a winged beast of fire. Flapping its burning wings, the creature peaked at the top of the sky, then nosedived sharply. It crashed into the colt-grabbing marauder, smashing him to the ground. The colt quickly scampered to freedom without looking back; the human did not stir. The remaining humans dropped their weapons in a clatter, pointing at the flame creature with such urgency, as if each were trying to convince their peers that such an impossible creature was real and in front of them. “It’s a phoenix!” “No, it’s a demon!” “Who cares?! Run!” Weapons discarded, the humans stumbled to their feet and fled to the east. From the crowd of ponies rose a boisterous cheer, as they threw apples at the retreating aggressors, praised their three pony defenders, and marveled at the flames overhead. Twilight Sparkle stared at the beast, transfixed. Her jaw hung slack, leaving her mouth making a soft “oh” shape. Even under the noonday sun, the flames were bright enough that they reflected clearly in her eyes. Overhead, the flame creature whirled about in circles above the cheering ponies, alighting the sky above with a mix of fire and rainbows. It came to a hover above Twilight Sparkle, and as it descended, its flames slowly burned away, puffs of ash billowing behind it. Her hooves touching ground, Rainbow Dash grinned eagerly at Twilight Sparkle. “Dude!” She trotted to her and lifted her up by the shoulders. “Dude! That was insane! I had no idea we could pull off that kind of crazy attack. We shoulda been using that one every single—” Twilight Sparkle wrapped her hooves around Rainbow Dash’s neck, squeezing with every ounce of her remaining strength. Rainbow Dash’s cheerful praise died in her throat. She opened her mouth, but no questions came forth. Wordlessly, she raised her own hooves and held onto her friend. The two stood in silent embrace for a hoofful of seconds which stretched for an eon. “Mom!” came the first wail. Twilight Sparkle and Rainbow Dash’s heads turned in unison. A young mare—younger than either of them, but old enough to wear a cutie mark—pushed and struggled as two stallions tried to hold her down. “No! Let me go!” She flailed a free hoof to the east. “I need to save her! Mom!” The sounds of conflict now gone, they were replaced with the sounds of the aftermath. Fillies and colts slowly emerged from Applejack’s cabin, sniffling and shivering. A few more ponies wailed as they discovered their own family members were lost. Those who had remained hidden and safe took to the streets now, caring for the injured. Twilight Sparkle felt the grip around her shoulders tighten slightly. “Twi...” Daring Do touched down in front of them, taking a soft running landing. “Great work, Twilight! Just did a fly-by and it looks like we’ve only got a few injuries. No fatalities! You really saved our haybacon, there.” She gave Twilight Sparkle a playful bump on the shoulder. Twilight Sparkle's head bobbed lightly with the nudge, but she otherwise remained motionless. “How many?” “Injuries?” asked Daring Do. “A few. Y’know, three or so.” “How many captured?” Daring Do matched eyes with Twilight Sparkle. Both mares held the gaze for a few prolonged seconds, but the pegasus was the first to relent with a sigh. “Seven—look,” Daring Do added without pause, “it coulda been a lot worse. A lot worse.” She pointed to the east with a hoof. “They’ve never attacked with a group that size before, and usually AJ is here to defend us. You were a huge help, Twilight—you and Fluttershy both.” Twilight Sparkle looked out over the commons. Ponies were consoling each other, tending to the young fillies and colts, and starting to repair the damage done to the village. She bit her lip. “I wish I could have done more.” “Hey,” said Rainbow Dash. Twilight Sparkle turned back and looked into her eyes. “It’s not over yet. We can still make this right.” She tilted her head to the side wearing a smirk, confident yet soft. “Right?” Wordless, Twilight Sparkle stared at her for a moment. As her mind spun away, a weak smile of her own slowly emerged. “Yeah.” She turned to Daring Do and nodded with more enthusiasm. “Yeah. It’ll be okay. “We can fix this.” * * * Chapter 26: To Reforge Legends 65,000,000 BC Apple Village Commons “Yes.” “No.” Rainbow Dash rolled her eyes. “Wow guys, you’re both making such compelling arguments.” Twilight Sparkle locked eyes with Applejack, their brows creasing in unison. Daring Do stood by her wife’s side, herself staring with determination at Twilight. Meanwhile, Rainbow Dash and her friends lingered a few paces behind Twilight, casting glances at one another and silently fidgeting. The villagers, for their part, let the arguing go unheeded; they were preoccupied with consoling the mourning and repairing the damaged cabins. “I insist,” continued Twilight Sparkle, ignoring her friend’s sarcasm. “Those humans attacked the village because you were away, helping us. Seeing as we were directly involved, we’re obligated to help.” “Um, but, we did help, Twilight,” Fluttershy interrupted. “You and Daring and I fought back and protected all of the helpless little foals.” Turning, she looked aside to one of the nearby cabins, still lit aflame. A trio of stallions tripped over themselves as they poured bucket after bucket of water onto the burning building. As the flames extinguished, they revealed the charred wood underneath, streaked with zig-zagging scorch lines. Fluttershy fell silent and pawed at the ground for a moment. “At least, we tried to help.” Her interjection earned her a cross frown from Twilight Sparkle. “There’s seven ponies out there who would say otherwise. We need to make this right.” “No, we do,” said Applejack with a shake of her head. “Look, I’m truly in your debt. You were here to save everypony the one time I couldn’t, and from what Doe was telling me, things coulda been worse here.” “A lot worse,” Daring Do agreed with a nod. “But fact of the matter is, this is a matter for the Apple Clan. We’re the ones that’ve been saddled with this Eva goon, and we’re the ones that’ll see it through.” Applejack rested a gentle hoof on Twilight’s shoulder and offered a smile. “Y’all did what you could, but don’t fret yourselves over it. Me and Daring will see it through.” Twilight Sparkle brushed off the hoof. “But why can’t we help? We just want to make things right.” Daring Do and Applejack shared a look, their expressions wavering. Meanwhile, Fluttershy stepped forward, her eye panels focused solely on the ground between everypony. “Twilight, I know that this is very important for you, but... we should go.” “Go?” Twilight gave her a wide-eyed stare. “Well... yeah,” Rainbow Dash said, approaching her friends’ side. “Remember? We got the Dreamstone so we could fix that sword, yeah? And help Frog? To fight Nightmare Moon?” “Because everypony needs our help,” Pinkie Pie quietly added. Twilight Sparkle looked between her three friends, her harsh gaze turning increasingly softer. With an exhale, she faced front and let her eyelids fall closed. A calm fell upon the group before she eventually offered a nod. “You’re right,” she sighed. “You’re right.” She gave a soft, respectful bow to Applejack and Daring Do. “We should be on our way. Sorry, again.” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 65,000,000 BC Magic Mountains “So this is the way y’all said ya got here?” Applejack peered off the ledge of a sheer cliff. Twilight Sparkle followed her lead. “That’s correct.” Far below, a mud-caked chasm floor lay in waiting, but their vision was impeded by a telltale fluctuation in spacetime a dozen meters below the lip. “It’s a bit of a fall, but if we hop off the edge here, the Gate will catch us and send us back to the future. Perfectly safe.” She nodded, half to herself, before turning to Rainbow Dash. “You’ve still got the Gate Key, right?” She flashed a grin and rattled her saddlebags for effect. “Duh.” Twilight Sparkle leaned aside and gave Applejack one last hug. “We promise, Applejack. As soon as we’re available, we’ll give you a hoof with anything you need.” “I keep tellin’ ya, it ain’t necessary,” chuckled Applejack. “All the same, thanks. I do hope the lot of you will come back, just for a friendly visit.” She broke the hug and smiled at the four time travelers. “You and your friends are always welcome with the Apple Family.” “Deal.” Twilight Sparkle nodded to Applejack, then turned to Rainbow Dash. “Ready? On the count of three.” “One!” Pinkie Pie crouched low and wiggled her rump in the air. “T-T-Two...” Fluttershy took another step closer to the edge, while leaning her full weight as far back as possible. “Three!” Rainbow Dash pounced off the edge of the cliff, flanked by a pony on each side of her. Reacting to the Gate Key in her bags, the spatial distortion ripped open before them, catching three ponies well above the ground. Suspended in temporal aether, Rainbow Dash had just enough time to spin about and reach back upward with a hoof, jaw agape, before the Gate closed around them and thrust them aeons through time. Applejack and Daring Do turned to their side and stared, slack-jawed. Twilight Sparkle responded to their stares with a pert, eyes-closed grin. “So! Now that I’m available, how can I help?” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ The End of Time Rainbow Dash floated gently down the column of light, laying on her back and staring skyward, like a feather drifting on an unfelt breeze. “She... she just ditched us.” Trixie was lounging underneath the nearby lamppost, a gossipy tabloid magazine beneath her hooves, and a bowl of crackers and a jar of peanut butter at her side. She looked up and cocked her head. “Wait, you’re still alive?” After a moment, she gave a bland shrug. “Mmm. At least the purple one is gone. She was the annoying self-righteous one.” She returned to her magazine and flipped the page. “As opposed to the annoying cocksure one, the annoying useless one, and the annoying annoying one.” Fluttershy quietly looked up as well, following Rainbow Dash’s gaze upward into the past. Pinkie Pie was the first to speak. “Well, we don’t need her help right now, right now. Right? I mean, the Lyrabon is gonna take a little while to repair, so we can just go back when it’s done and pick her up.” She blinked, chewing over her reply for a moment. “When the Lyrabon is done, we can go to sixty five million years before it’s done, and pick her up.” After pondering a few seconds more, she nodded with vigor. “She’s such an idiot. We kept telling her to drop it, then she goes and pulls a stunt like this.” Rainbow Dash stood silently reflecting for a moment, before she gave a light chuckle. She looked back at her friends, her mane flipping to the side. “Actually... that was a pretty cool move. Gotta give her credit.” Fluttershy turned to look at Pinkie Pie; the latter returned an eager, toothy grin. Trixie flipped another page of her magazine, lazily muttering to herself. “The Great and Powerful Trixie can’t believe the cliff didn’t finish them. Perhaps next time Trixie should send them to the bottom of the ocean.” She levitated a peanut-butter cracker delicately onto her tongue. The doorway next to the lamppost popped itself open, and the Doctor poked his head out. “Trixie, m’dear, please do stop trying to murder equinity’s last hopes, would you?” “Feh.” Trixie rolled her eyes and turned the page. The Doctor closed the door and returned to his business. “Whatever. Forget that loud-mouth.” Rainbow Dash buffed her hoof against her chest, smirking idly at it. “‘We got more important things to get to. Let’s go repair that sword!” She trotted toward the other pillars of light at a decent clip, then a trot, a walk, a slow step, and at last, stationary. “Uh.” “Mmm.” Pinkie Pie tilted her head this way and that. “Come to think of it, we knew that we needed Dreamstone to fix the sword, but we don’t really have any idea of how to fix it.” She turned her head around and looked up at her rider. “Right?” Lyra shrugged. Her hindlegs sloped off Pinkie Pie’s back to one side as she sat upright in a somewhat uncomfortable-looking position. “Yeah, sorry, that’s our bad. In fairness, we totally didn’t expect you to make it this far.” A pulse of energy emanated from Fluttershy’s saddlebags, bursting into a tiny star before coalescing into a cream-coated earth pony. “Not that we doubted your talents, of course. It’s just that—get down from there!” Bon Bon thrashed at Lyra’s side with a forehoof until her partner begrudgingly obeyed. “It’s just that we assumed the task was impossible.” She gave a weak smile and shrug. “Finding our creator should be equally impossible.” “But that’s all the more reason that you fillies can pull through, am I right?” said Lyra with a wink. “You bet!” Rainbow Dash held herself up straight, her chin lifted slightly. “Lay it on me.” “Well...” Bon Bon fidgeted with her hooves. “Our creator actually isn’t a pony, but a zebra. Her name—” “Oh, you mean Zecora?” Bon Bon sat back on her haunches, staring incredulously at Pinkie Pie a moment, before throwing her hooves in the air and then trotting away. “I can’t. I simply cannot.” Lyra rolled onto her back, howling with laughter. “You ponies are a riot! Out of all the zebras in history, you just happen to know Zecora?” Fluttershy kicked lightly at the paving stones, murmuring lightly, “...the odds of knowing the zebra in question, based on our travels to date, is approximately one in seventeen million, five hundred and…” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 1000 AD Palomedina Village—Zecora’s Shop Zecora sat down a satchel of tools on her kitchen table, boggling slightly as three ponies walked through her door. “What is this? Do my eyes play tricks? I did not expect your return to the village of Mystics.” “Heya, Zecora!” Pinkie Pie pronked across the cozy shop, giving its keeper an enthusiastic nuzzle. “Long time no see. We brought you a surprise!” she called out in a sing-song voice. With a mirthful shake of her head, she leaned into her toolbag and selected a hammer with care. “What this surprise is, I could not know—” “—cuz I’m all stuffy and boring, like whoa.” The hammer slid effortlessly from her teeth, landing upon the thatch flooring with a muffled thud. Zecora stared wide-eyed at the wall, softly murmuring, “Only one pony would mock me so,” before turning back to the entrance. Lyra trotted up to the zebra, wearing a cheeky grin. “Heya, Mom. What’s up?” “Zecora, it’s been far too long.” Bon Bon followed shortly behind, her own smile gentle and sheepish. She nudged Lyra out of her way and gave Zecora a warm hug. “You’re looking well.” “Lyra?” Zecora’s mouth flapped voicelessly, struggling to call forth the names of the ponies in front of her. “Bon Bon? This is incredible.” She turned back to Pinkie Pie and her companions, scrutinizing them. “Tell me, little ponies, how is this possible?” “Oh, right, that. We’re time travellers.” Rainbow Dash looked up from the bowl of fruit in the kitchen that she had helped herself to, and nodded in Zecora’s direction. “Hey, Z. Sword’s working out great.” Fluttershy silently looked at a vacant space to her right. “You are able to traverse the currents of time?” Zecora asked. “And saw fit to bring these dear friends of mine?” “Um, correct,” said Fluttershy, reaching into her saddlebags. “We also brought you some Dreamstone.” “The stone of dreams?” Zecora’s ears drooped. She turned to Lyra and Bon Bon, a misty look overtaking her eyes. “Alas, my friends…” Lyra rubbed the back of her head, inhaling with a hiss and releasing it in a soft titter. “Yeah.” “Sorry, Zecora,” Bon Bon said, as the pair of ponies radiated with a dazzling white glow. “There was, err, a bit of an incident.” A crystalic chime reverberated inside the hut. In the blink of an eye, where once stood a unicorn and earth pony, now rested a golden hilt with a single amethyst gem in the pommel, and a sturdy broadsword blade, snapped off the hilt along a jagged edge. Zecora softly approached the broken sword before her, running her hoof across the smooth surface of the blade, untarnished by time if not for the severing. “Be at peace,” she murmured to the weapon. “I will thee mend.” Rainbow Dash planted her hooves on the table, propping herself up. Her eyebrows arched high as she looked at the zebra. “So you can do it? You can fix the Lyrabon?” “We really really need it,” interjected Pinkie Pie, leaning her head in between the weapon and Zecora. “A lot of ponies—and one special pony in particular—are counting on us to put this back together so that we can stop an alicorn and a porcupine.” Holding herself upright and at attention, Zecora nodded at Pinkie Pie, her visage tightly drawn. “Fixing dear Lyrabon is my duty and charge. But the amount of work required is quite large. Giving all of my energy, keeping distractions at bay, this will still easily take me most of two days.” Even before Rainbow Dash could finish her loud groan, a set of metallic hooves stepped forward. “Miss Zecora? Um, I hate to impose on you, but this is so very important. If I stay with you to help, is there any chance we could repair the sword sooner?” Her steel hoof touched upon Zecora’s back with the softest of graces. “Please?” Zecora’s eyes, however, were fixated back on the weapon at her hooves. “The spirits infused into this sword are anything but ordinary. When it was forged, I knew it would hold a destiny most legendary.” She fixed her eyes on Fluttershy and gave a resolute nod. “Very well. If we work hard, though the schedule is tight, Fluttershy and I should complete these repairs by tonight.” “Fluttershy,” said Pinkie Pie, wincing as she reached toward her with a hoof, “are you sure that’s okay? That sounds like so much work for the two of you.” “Of course it’s okay,” the robot replied in a cheery tone. “We all need the Lyrabon repaired, right? I’m just doing my part. And besides, you and Rainbow Dash have family here, don’t you?” “Hey, yeah!” Rainbow Dash elbowed Pinkie Pie in the ribs. “We could go crash at my place. More of my mom’s cooking? Yeah?” Pinkie Pie’s tail sagged as she looked from Rainbow Dash to Fluttershy. “Just… are you sure? I mean, I’d feel bad when you and Twilight are—” “It’s alright.” Fluttershy shook her head, as best her rigid frame permitted. “Twilight and Applejack know what they’re doing, and so do I. I’m volunteering because I want to. The two of you should take the opportunity to relax while you can.” “Your friend of yellow steel speaks true,” Zecora added, a smile at her lips and a twinkle in her eye. “A bit of rest can do wonders for you.” Pinkie Pie frowned a moment longer, staring vacantly through the western window, overlooking the cool blue of the ocean. When she looked back to the group, though, her classic grin had returned. “Well then! If you insist, then we simply gotta go get our party on, am I right?” “Totally,” laughed Rainbow Dash. She bumped Fluttershy’s shoulder, then she and Pinkie Pie made for the front door. “Thanks, Fluttershy. We totally owe ya one!” “Oh, not at all,” she called out after them. Fluttershy turned to Zecora and released a small puff of steam. “Now, um, how can I be of assistance?” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 1000 AD Equus Rainbow Dash coughed, hacked, and heaved salt water from her lungs. “Why didn’t,” she asked amid coughs, “I just fly instead?” “Because,” said Pinkie Pie, glomping her soggy pink self onto Rainbow Dash’s equally damp backside, “you can always fly anywhere if you want. But traveling by whirlpool is a super rare treat. Things like this are meant to be enjoyed, don’t you think?” Rainbow grunted in return. “Anyway. So, you ready to chow down and—” “I mean, speaking of enjoying, talk about that Millennial Summer Sun Celebration.” Even from their distance at the shoreline, Pinkie Pie and Rainbow Dash could easily see the festivities underway, with dozens of ponies still in attendance. “I mean, we’ve barely had any time to see the sights and the smells and the tastes, even though you can only really see the sights, I suppose.” “Oh!” Rainbow Dash blinked. “I mean, uh, yeah. If you want, we could go—” “No-no-no.” She shook her head in a small pink blur. “I could never come between a big eater and her food. You go ahead and hang out at your mom’s for now. When you’re done there, we can meet up together at the fairgrounds.” She grinned widely, her ponytail hanging to one side as she tilted her head at Rainbow. “Kay?” Rainbow Dash’s ears drooped, though her smile belied this. “Oh! I-I mean, sure. We got the whole day to us, so might as well get some Dash time, y’know. Sure, no problem.” She stood there, smiling and nodding; Pinkie Pie kicked up small plumes of dust. “So…” “Yeah…” Rainbow Dash rubbed at her neck as she caught wind of the pause. “I’ll, uh, catch ya later, Pinkie.” With one last look over her shoulder, she flew off to her home along the coast. Pinkie’s whole frame sagged as she watched Rainbow Dash disappear inside her front door. “Sorry, Dashie. I didn’t want to lie, honest.” She pushed out a weighty sigh and, with a sharp inhale, she pushed her remaining strength into her chest. “Have fun.” Standing tall, she turned to the west and took off at a rigid trot. The skyline before her was dwarfed by a mighty structure with thick stone walls and towering spires. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 1000 AD Sugardia Castle Technically, it was the gate guards who spotted her first. To be sure, they were quick to recognize a pink pony who was not only their sovereign princess, but also a several-count foalnapping victim, and thus currently one of the kingdom’s most sought after ponies. It therefore stands to reason that the gate guards would have been entitled to quite a sizeable reward if, indeed, they had brought her in. But they were bowled over when a second pair of ponies rushed through the main entrance—a unicorn and pegasus. “Princess!” cried out the navy-maned pegasus. He fell to his knees before her, scuffing his signature blue-and-gold Wonderbolts uniform in the process. “Pinkamena!” Chancellor Scratch showed slightly less restraint. Her horn lit as she ran closer. “Soarin! Scratchy! Hey, I’m—whoa!” She yelped and giggled as her forehooves were forcibly lifted off the ground. “Scratchy, I’m fine, really! I’m back, aren’t I?” “In one piece, somehow,” Scratch grumbled. When she finished her visual inspection of the Princess’s limbs, she pulled up in front of her and stared at her with wide, red eyes. “Pinkamena, c’mon. You ran off with that rainbow-maned punk and got eaten up by some spooky purple portal thing. You want us to say it? Fine!” She punctuated her exclamation with a stamp of her hoof. “We were scared, okay?!” Captain Soarin swallowed and approached the two mares, sufficiently cowed. “Your Highness, I’ve had all of my Wonderbolts out on patrol, turning the kingdom upside down.” “Aww, you guys.” Pinkie Pie winced and looked between her two long-time caretakers. Soarin wore a familiar-enough visage, worrying on his lip while his ears hung limp, but the Chancellor wearing the same expression was a rare event indeed. “I’m sorry. Really, super sorry. I wasn’t trying to freak you guys out. I just…” A deep sigh escaped her. “I needed to get away. From all this. I needed to think and search and learn, but I’m back! I’m… I’m ready to talk.” Soarin nodded, leading the trio up the staircase and past the grumbling, underpaid gate guards. “It’s not us you need to talk to. The King has been sick with worry. Ever since you left, Princess, His Highness has been sealed in his chambers nearly twenty-four-seven, working away.” Chancellor Scratch hissed an inhale of breath, and winced Pinkie’s way. “Pinkamina, I agree that you should talk, just… He’s worried but he’s also super ticked. You did kinda make a huge splash when you left. Probably a good call if you have, like”—she wiggled her head from side-to-side, shaking her two-toned mane in the process—“some sorta gift. Apology thing, y’know?” “Oh. Yeah, I guess.” Pinkie Pie ran her tongue over her lips as the trio began their climb of her father’s private tower. Only a few floors separated her from a reunion, a talk, so many words. “I didn’t really, uh…” Scratch came to a halt and turned to the Wonderbolt. “Soarin. Head down to the kitchens. The King’s been having a bit of a sweet tooth recently. See if they can whip up a pie or cake or something like that, pronto.” Pinkie’s eyes lit up. “Oh, you mean a gift like that?” With a grin, she turned and hopped her way up the stairs, two at a time. “No worries, then. I got this!” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 65,000,000 BC Eastern Fields Twilight Sparkle wiped at her brow and adjusted the pith hat atop her head. The thick green foliage overhead provided sufficient cover from the scorching sun, and yet the heat baked into her from all angles, heating up her coat from the outside and dampening it with sweat from underneath. Her stomach grumbled and protested, but until she found and identified her next patch of berries, she would simply have to tolerate the pain. The vast wilderness sprawled all around her, untamed, unexplored. No maps and no guides. Nothing but her wits and her survival instincts. “Twi? Twilight, sugar, stay on the path,” Applejack called out, bits of apple spraying out of her mouth. She tucked the snack back into Daring Do’s saddlebags before preparing to holler once more, but by this point, Twilight had vanished into underbrush lining the dusty trail. “Just let her go,” chuckled Daring Do. Smiling and lowering her voice, Applejack spoke through gritted teeth. “Daring, she’s gonna slow us down.” “A little, probably,” Daring replied matter-of-factly as she looked straight down the path. “But it’s important to her. She needs to feel like she’s involved, like she’s repaying her debt. It’ll drive her nuts otherwise.” Applejack gave a sidelong glance with her wife; Daring upped the ante with a faint smirk. “What were ya thinkin’?” Applejack asked, breaking the silence. “‘Bout a name, I mean.” “Oh.” Daring Do blinked. “I hadn’t decided yet. We’ve got a while to make up our minds. And besides, well,” she said, turning her head away to try to hide her growing blush, “it’s something for both of us to decide, you know?” “Not just one!” Applejack’s eyes turned upward, glittering as the noonday sun peeked its way through the foliage. “Gotta come up with two. One for if it’s a colt, one for if it’s a filly. Oh, and we’ll needta add another extension to the cabin, make a crib, playpen, diapers, bottles… What? What’s so funny?” Daring came to a halt on the pathway, holding her gut and trying to control her laughter. “You, doofus. You know that the kiddo’s not due for, like, another nine or ten months, right? You only just found out today and you’re already gung-ho.” She snickered. “I’m nearly offended, Daring. S’almost like you weren’t expectin’ your wife to respond like this. But you oughta know by this point.” Reaching back with a hoof, she tapped at her cutie mark. “A pony ain’t nothing without their family. Was true with me ‘n my kin. True when I met the sweetest mare I ever laid eyes on.” Daring scoffed and glared off at the treeline, yet she allowed Applejack to pull her close. “And our foal will know it, too.” “And that’s why we need to stop Eva, I know, I know.” Daring Do rolled her eyes skyward. “Just… why’s it always got to be you, who leads the charge?” Applejack frowned. “Well, who else could? And don’t say yerself.” “I don’t know,” Daring said with a shrug. “Just… not you? For all the crap you give me about getting into trouble, you’re worse than I am.” “I don’t go outta my way to find it!” Applejack held her forehooves wide. “Ain’t my fault that this Eva goon won’t leave us be. Foalnappin’, and pillagin’, and—” “You’re not a superhero, okay?” Daring accentuated her yell with a jab to the chest. “Just…” The fire in her eyes went cold, and she crumbled from the inside out. “Just, can’t it be somepony else?” Applejack bit lightly at the tip of her tongue as she looked down into Daring Do’s eyes. Pulling her closer, she kissed the top of the mare’s head and held her against her chest. “I’m sorry, Doe, but I can’t rest yet. Not ‘til the world’s safe for our family.” “Yeah,” said Daring, as Applejack felt the heat of a sigh against her coat. “I know. Doesn’t mean that I like it, but… I get it.” Daring’s ears brushed the underside of Applejack as she turned her head. “Speaking of saving…” “Twilight Sparkle!” Applejack shoved her wife to the side and galloped full-speed into the underbrush. “You stop that right now! We have canteens!” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 1000 AD Rainbow Dash’s House On that day, the creature’s destruction was absolute. Loaves of bread vanished in the twinkling of an eye, nary a crumb remaining. Daisies and sunflowers alike were cut down in the primes of their lives, sacrifices to an abomination who knew naught but hunger. The beast opened its gaping maw and drank heartily from the oceans, dyed a cranberry red. It crawled forth, consuming anything that dared cross its path, leaving naught but destruction and famine in its wake. The beast wiped the remnants of carnage from its mouth with one of its many arms, and upon that, it spoke in the ancient tongue. “Mah, can’na pa’sha keeth?” Aurora Glow furrowed her brow and waggled a hoof at her daughter. “Rainbow, no talking with your mouth full.” With tremendous effort, Rainbow Dash swallowed her oats, pudding, and half-a-muffin without sending any of it down her windpipe. “Sorry, Mom. Was just askin’ if you could pass the quiche.” Aurora stifled a chuckle as she nudged the dish in front of her and watched it vanish. “Well, I’m glad to see that you’re doing well. I assumed that when you left yesterday morning, that was going to be the last time I saw your keester for weeks.” Sitting down at the opposite end of the table, she smiled easily and watched her daughter eat. “But, I guess, time travel, huh?” “Dunno,” said Rainbow with a shrug. “Not sure we can just go back in time a day or whatever. Only big jumps, like four hundred years, y’know?” “Ah. Well, that makes today all the more special, then.” Aurora gave a firm tap of her hoof next to Rainbow’s napkin. “And how about your friends? I was surprised they didn’t join you today.” “Yeah. They’re…” Rainbow grabbed the napkin and wiped herself up, buying herself time to think. Taking royal oversight of her own fair, reforging a legendary sword with a zebra, and rescuing prisoners from a human millions of years in the past. “Y’know. Doing their own stuff.” “I can’t wait to hear the full story.” Aurora Glow helped herself to a slice of her zucchini bread. Rainbow Dash was generally not prone to sharing, and so, once as a filly, she had not shared with her mother. Exactly once. “So Twilight’s doing well?” Memories flashed behind her eyes as she sipped at her cranberry juice. Memories of streaking across the sky as a blazing orb of fire. “Oh, yeah, Twilight’s doing great. She’s really getting into the whole adventuring thing. Real natural.” “Aww, that sounds wonderful.” Her melodic laugh rang through the kitchen. “That sounds exciting. Exhilarating.” Aurora Glow’s eyelids fell to half-mast as she smirked at her daughter. “Romantic, even?” A spray of juice left Rainbow’s lips, followed by a few sputters and a scream. “Mom!” “Teasing! Just teasing.” Aurora giggled and waved her off with a hoof. “Sometimes you just make it too easy, sweetie.” Rainbow Dash scowled and crossed her hooves tightly across her chest. She fixed the brunt of her glare at a nondescript point on the lower kitchen cabinets. On the plate in front of her, half a bouquet of carnations sat, uneaten. Clicking her tongue, Aurora Glow pulled her seat cushion around and wrapped a foreleg over her daughter’s shoulders. “Oh, Rainbow, I’m sorry. I was just having a bit of fun, but… I know she’s been a close childhood friend of yours, and just a friend. I didn’t mean for you to feel this uncomfortable.” Swishing her tail behind her on the wood floor, Rainbow turned her head to the living room. The family portrait hung in its prominent spot on the wall, same as it always had. “I…” Her ear twitched. She twisted a hoof against the floorboards. “I’m not interested in dating. It’s just a dumb waste of time. I’d rather be flying and going on adventures, cool stuff like that.” Her voice lost strength at the end, petering out into a small whinny. Aurora Glow followed her gaze and smiled. “She felt the same way too, y’know. And I hardly had ‘housemare’ aspirations, growing up. But life can be funny that way. Our interests change and grow over time.” She placed her hoof atop Rainbow’s, bringing its twisting to a stop. “Neither of us wanted to make time for love, until we met each other. Then, we made time.” Rainbow swallowed. “What if I don’t want to change?” Giggling, Aurora brushed Rainbow’s forelock into place. “Sweetie, everypony changes. Every thing. But change brings opportunity. If you hide away and try to keep everything the same, you’ll miss out on so much that life has to offer.” She poked Rainbow Dash in the ribs, continuing, “If your mother and I hadn’t changed, we’d have missed out on you.” A small chuckle escaped from Rainbow Dash’s fretful frown. “Yeah… I guess the world would be a lamer place without me.” “Remember, Rainbow. ‘Don’t fear the unknown...’” Rainbow Dash looked back at the portrait—at the mare whom she knew mostly from pictures. “‘Make it fear you instead.’ Heh.” The frown playing at her lips gradually faded as her mother pulled her into a warm embrace. Aurora brushed her daughter’s mane back and planted a kiss on her forehead. “There. Feeling better?” When Rainbow shrugged, she continued. “Just don’t worry about it. I know you’re all about living in the present. Your ‘destiny’ will knock, sooner or later.” A small frown appeared on her brow. “Destiny?” she echoed. “Now!” Aurora clapped her hooves together. “It’s time for your chores. Ah, ah, ah! Hey!” she shouted over her daughter’s drawn-out groan. “Don’t even give me that ‘busy saving the world’ nonsense. You had enough time for two home-cooked meals, in as many days. The least you could do is help your poor, single mother in her time of need.” For good measure, Aurora threw in a couple of overly theatrical sniffles. Rainbow Dash rolled her eyes and grunted. “Fine.” “First chore,” she said, pointing to a lonely looking dish on the floor, nestled next to one of the cabinets where it was out of everypony’s way. Rainbow Dash stared at the dish for a few pondering seconds before looking back at her mother. “You didn’t feed Tank?” Aurora Glow let out a pained sigh, rubbing between her squinted eyes with a hoof. “Rainbow, the purpose of getting you a pet was to teach you about responsibility. Since you did not feed your pet, he ran away.” “Pffft!” Rainbow nickered, swatting away the accusation with a hoof. “Tank is super chill. He doesn’t run away. He’s probably out there, finding himself.” “You didn’t feed him, so he ran away.” “A turtle is a free spirit, Mom,” said Rainbow, forehooves spread wide. “He can’t be all cooped up, bound by society. He’s gotta spread his wings! Live dangerously!” “You didn’t feed him, so he ran away,” she insisted. “Go look for him, poor bugger. And while you’re out there looking, your second chore: we’re out…” Pausing for dramatic effect, Aurora Glow narrowed her gaze at her daughter. “Of haybacon.” Rainbow Dash gawked. “No. Come on. I know I haven’t been around a lot, but—” “Rainbow? Sweetie?” Though Aurora narrowed her eyes, her voice was cloyingly sweet. “You left me thinking you had been executed. You’re on haybacon duty. For life. Get used to it.” “That’s so unfair!” she whined. “Come on, I’ll do any of the other chores. Anything but that. Let me wash the windows, or clean the gutters, or—” “Haybacon. Nothing short of that would be a fair punishment. Now, skadoodle.” A forceful smack on the rump and a stern look set Rainbow Dash moving. “And don’t come back empty hooved!” Rainbow Dash plodded out her front door, muttering ill wishes all the way. As her daughter marched to her imminent doom, Aurora Glow grinned innocently and gave Rainbow a carefree wave goodbye. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 1000 AD Palomedina Village—Zecora’s Shop Zecora read. Fluttershy waited. The zebra had been poring over a dusty weathered journal for the better part of a half hour. To her left, on the workbench, the Dreamstone sat by itself. An average observer might think that the rock was just sitting there, neglected and unattended, but there was nothing average about a full thaumaturgical sensor array. Already, Fluttershy could feel the jewel ebb and flux with magical potential, flooding the basement workshop. As Zecora selected a passage from the text and whispered it, her muzzle a hair’s width away from the Dreamstone, the aura in the room felt nearly palpable. Zecora, too, seemed pleased with the result. She nodded once to the stone. “It seems, at last, the Dreamstone is primed. We shouldn’t be too far behind.” Turning, she motioned with her muzzle to the equipment beside Fluttershy. “Now tell me, friend, how go things on your end?” “Oh!” Fluttershy carefully balanced the tray on her back, between her wings, and carried it over to Zecora for inspection. Resting atop it were the hilt and blade of the Lyrabon, polished and sanded to a fine sheen. “Is this good enough? I tried to sand down the edges just like you showed me, but it was making so many sparks and I didn’t want to hurt the poor dears, so I tried to be extra gentle…” Zecora smiled, placing a hoof on the robot’s withers. “While this blade was forged to slash one’s hide, this minty one is more often a pain in my side.” Giving a playful chuckle, she flicked the hilt with the tip of a hoof. Fluttershy didn’t have the most expressive face in the world; she was welded that way. All the same, Zecora saw the way that Fluttershy’s stance shifted, just the smallest bit. “It will take some time, to infuse this rock,” she said lightly. “I get the sense that you’d like to talk.” “Talk?” Fluttershy looked to Zecora, then turned away. “I… no. It’s not important. I don’t want to distract you from your work.” “Nothing good will result from concealing,” she said, leaning her head around to get a better look at the robot’s face. “Please, Fluttershy, tell me what you are feeling.” Fluttershy looked back at broken blade on the workbench, then stared out the window. “It’s just… I hate all this violence.” She motioned away with a hoof. “I understand why we have to fight. I accept that we’re doing some good. I want to protect those I care about. It’s just…” Though she didn’t need to breath, her chest rose and fell, followed by a small puff of steam from her exhaust pipe. “We’ve hurt others. Good ponies and bad ponies both. I hate that.” Zecora shifted her eyes, looking down at the broken Lyrabon. “You’re afraid that this blade will cause more harm than good. You’ve been asked to repair it, but now, you wonder if you even should.” She nodded stiffly. “I mean… you make weapons. All the swords upstairs, and the Lyrabon, and even the one that Rainbow Dash bought. Doesn’t that frighten you? To think of all those ponies out there, using those weapons?” For a moment, Zecora had no reply. She returned to the workbench and wiped down the already-polished blade. When she finally spoke again, it was soft and methodical. “You are right to raise these points of concern. Even now, they cause my heart to burn.” She chuckled. “Call me an optimist, but in fate I trust. This blade is destined for one who is just.” Again, Fluttershy shook her head, using more body than neck. “But you can’t be certain of that! What if somepony uses it for the wrong reasons, or they try to do good, but—” “You are right, dear Fluttershy. I cannot ensure, that a pony is cautious, that their path is pure. But a weapon is more than a showing of might. These blades can stop evils; these swords set wrongs right.” Taking the hilt in her mouth, she raised the severed blade up, catching it in the lamplight of the basement. “Destruction is not a sword’s only means. It’s a symbol, a beacon, an embodiment of dreams.” Fluttershy’s eye sensors flickered, then drew into focus. “Dreams?” Gingerly, Zecora set down the hilt, then nodded. “When I forged this blade, I dreamed of peace. I dreamed of a future where love would not cease. A world without anymore need for my armory. No more pain or suffering, just ponies living in harmony. But my dreams needed an anchor, something to focus upon. Thus did they coalesce into these forms, of Lyra and Bon Bon.” Fluttershy’s head jerked back as she struggled to process the rhyme. “Coalesce? Lyra and Bon Bon… they are your dreams?” When Zecora nodded and smiled in reply, Fluttershy wordlessly swept her sensors across the sword on the workbench, then over Zecora herself. “I… I don’t mean for this to sound rude or insulting, Ms. Zecora, but… you are really something else, aren’t you?” “Ah, but my dear,” Zecora said with a wink, “are we all not more than we appear?” She reached a leg over Fluttershy’s back, as the robot looked downward in thought. “That is why I craft my weapons, without any shame. My dreams and the Lyrabon are one-in-the-same. Is this not similar to you, your friends, and your strife? Don’t you wish to bring your own dreams to life?” “...life?” was Fluttershy’s wide-eye-sensored reply. Though she paused for just a second or two, it was an eternity for her processor. Much to think about, and all the time she needed to reflect upon it. At last, with a twinkle in her eye, she genuflected. “Thank you, Ms. Zecora. I think I finally understand.” Zecora smiled. “Any time, friend of mine.” “Time! Oh goodness, but we mustn’t just stand around chatting, as nice as it is.” With a nod, Fluttershy picked up the sword halfs once more. “We’ve got a job to do!” “Right you are. Let us not linger on what has been. We’ve a sword to reforge.” Zecora picked up the Dreamstone, delicately pinched between forehooves. As she brought the red rock closer to the sword fragments, they glowed in unison, ebbing and flowing with a rhythmic pulsing. “Now, let us begin.” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 1000 AD Diane’s Square Marketplace Rainbow Dash girded her resolve, tight of chest, stiff of jaw, and tense of wings. When she had first embarked upon her quest, she knew that it would be fraught with dangers and peril. Unlike her fillyhood friend, though, knowledge did nothing to reassure her. All the bravado in the world could not mask the fact that she would rather be anyplace, and indeed, anytime besides here and now. For Lavos might be an unfathomable agent of death and destruction, but here, in her hometown’s fairgrounds, sat the true villain. “Wow,” rang a saccharine, catty voice over the ambiance of the fairgrounds. “Will you look who it is.” Sitting front and center, inside a violet-and-white-striped vendor tent, sat a small filly with matching mane. Resting her cheek against a propped-up hoof, she smirked at Rainbow Dash’s approach. Her eyes were narrow, cold and calculating. By her side sat a dark silver filly with glasses, who was already giggling with giddy anticipation. Rainbow Dash sighed at the pair of spiteful fillies. “Okay, seriously? Can we not do this today, Diamond Tiara?” “Not do this?” she gasped, sitting upright. “Silver Spoon, can you believe what Rainbow Dash is saying?” Silver Spoon shook her head, wide-eyed and breathless. “I can’t. It’s almost like she doesn’t even want any haybacon.” “I know, right?” Flashing a toothy sneer, Diamond Tiara went in for the kill. “This is Rain-blob we’re talking about here. How could she pass up eating her weight in haybacon?” “Gee. Wow. More lame nicknames.” Rainbow Dash made an exaggerated motion of rolling her eyes, as she subconsciously smoothed out her flanks with her wings. “Those might actually hurt if I was still a little filly or whatever.” “Trust me,” Diamond Tiara quipped, “there’s nothing little about you. Now, should I put you down for two tons, or three?” Rainbow Dash gritted her teeth, her ears laying flat against her head. “Two pounds, thanks. I’ve got your bits ready, so just shut up and let me buy stuff.” She brushed her wing against her saddlebags, flipping them open. “Mmm.” Idly scratching her chin, Diamond Tiara looked up and away in thought. “See, I don’t know about that.” Rainbow narrowed her eyes. “If you try to raise the price on me…” “Don’t be silly.” Silver Spoon dismissed the accusation, as next to her, Diamond Tiara adjusted the small namesake atop her mane. “Di and her dad pride themselves on having, like, the lowest haybacon prices in town—” “More like the only prices in town,” Rainbow growled through her teeth. “—so customer satisfaction is totally our number one goal,” Silver Spoon finished, paying the interjection no mind. Diamond Tiara smiled at Silver Spoon, nodding eagerly. “So true. But it can be so difficult to find which ponies want it the most, you know?” “Right? That’s just basic supply and demand.” Silver Spoon tapped her friend on the shoulder. “We should, like, test her. To make sure she really wants it.” The two turned their gazes to Rainbow Dash, smirking in anticipation. “No,” Rainbow snorted as she reached toward the stand. “That’s dumb. Just give me the—” “Great idea,” Diamond Tiara spoke over Rainbow Dash, blocking her hoof with her own. "What if we had her sing a little song?" Rainbow whipped her head around. Already, a crowd of onlookers was starting to gather. Diamond Tiara's voice carried well over the crowd, drawing them forward by their curiosities. Some looked on in abject interest, drawn in by the spectacle of what promised to unfold before them. Others drew back, hiding behind tents or even leaving the square altogether. They knew quite well what was occurring, and they neither wished to bear witness, or worse, become involved themselves. Silver Spoon spoke first, before Rainbow could think of a retort. “I think that your mom would be disappointed if you came all the way here, and went home empty-hooved.” Diamond Tiara nodded with eyes closed. “It would be such a shame if you couldn’t complete one simple little errand for your dear sweet mother.” She held her hooves against her chest and delivered a well-rehearsed pout. “Whatever,” Rainbow snapped. “If this is how you’re gonna play, we’ll just see what your dad has to say.” “Ooo. A tattletale.” Diamond Tiara rolled her eyes upwards and shook her head. “How scary.” “Like, Di’s dad dotes on her all the time.” Silver Spoon reached a leg in front of Diamond Tiara, as though to shield her. “Do you really think that he’ll take your word over hers? She’s his little princess, and totes cute, not to mention their best salespony.” “That’s because she’s the only… Ugh!” Rainbow growled up at the sky. “Whatever! Just shut up and let’s get this over already.” “Perfect.” Diamond Tiara motioned her onward with a flick of her hoof. “So, how about you sing, ‘This little piggy can’t get enough of Rich's Barnyard Bargains haybacon.’” Silver Spoon ooo’d appropriately. “An endorsement. Very business savvy.” With a sharp glare, Rainbow Dash spread her wings and lowered into an aggressive stance. “I am not saying that! Screw you.” “Then I guess you don’t want food after all,” snapped Silver Spoon. “Seriously, what’s the problem?” Reaching beneath her counter, Diamond Tiara bit down on a few pieces of haybacon—which may or may not have been somepony’s afternoon snack—and flung them at Rainbow Dash, piece by piece. “Rain-blob’s such a loyal little piggy. What’s the harm in just professing your love?” “I mean, it’s just one little sentence,” said Silver Spoon. “Hey!” Rainbow Dash tried to shield herself with her wings from the onslaught. Bits of haybacon still found their mark, trapping themselves in her mane and feathers. “Knock it off, you little brat! I’m warning you!” Around her, most of the ponies had already made themselves scarce, but Rainbow Dash could hear those that remained. She could hear the laughs, the gasps, the murmurs about “that pony” and “haybacon”. She could already feel the burning in her cheeks and ears, and the cold sickly feeling spreading outward from her gut. Silver Spoon doubled over in laughter, holding at her gut. “What are you even doing, Di?” she said between gasps of air. “You’re giving it to her for free!” “True, she’ll probably just eat it anyway,” Diamond Tiara laughed back. The next few pieces of haybacon flew wide. Gnashing her teeth and squinting her eyes shut, Rainbow Dash let out a growl. “Fine! Fine, just shut up. Your haybacon’s good and I’m fat, whatever, shut up!” “Uh uh uh,” chided Silver Spoon. “You were supposed to say—” Diamond Tiara waved her off. “Nah, it’s fine. I think we made her point.” Her grin widened as she took in the spectacle before her. Rainbow stomped her way up to the stand. As she laid out the pouch of bits on the counter, the burning in her ears failed to die down. She glared daggers at Diamond Tiara. Gnashing her teeth, she murmurred, “Listen here, you little brat. Nopony, and I mean nopony, gets away with making fun of Rainbow Dash. You’re gonna regret this.” Her smile didn’t so much as flinch. “I’m sure.” Without another word, Rainbow Dash grabbed the haybacon and left. The crowd quickly parted ways, not wanting to be anywhere near the fallout. Even though she could still hear the two fillies laughing behind her, Rainbow managed to choke down a few calming breaths. It had been worse than she had imagined, but she was done. It was over. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 65,000,000 BC Eden Forest Outpost “Duck!” The stallion threw himself to the ground, at best he could. His head snapped upward with a rush, as his reins tugged taut against the post. The two armored guards flanking him were not so lucky. Screams of agony escaped their helmets as they thrashed about, swatting at the magical flames that coated their metal armor. So distracted was he by the heat on his coat, that the stallion nearly failed to notice his bridle being removed, and a unicorn helping him to his hooves. He tried to blink back his shell shock, and dug away a distant memory from a few hours ago. “You… you’re that mare. From Applejack’s party. You’re here.” “Twilight Sparkle,” she said with a crisp nod. “C’mon, we’ve getting you out of here.” “Go?” He shook his head clear. “Wait, my wife! We—” “Yer the last one, Apple Bread!” From the wooden parapets above, Applejack leaped over the head of a bow-wielding soldier, an upward-bound arrow whizzing harmlessly behind her. A sharp buck to the small of the guard’s back crumpled her to the ground. “All clear!” “Apple Bread!” A green mare came galloping down the stairs from the parapets, racing toward them. “Green!” he called in reply. The two shared a quick embrace amid the shouts, the calls to arms, and the sharp report of Twilight’s plasma blaster. A group of four humans raced in from the adjoining room, weapons held overhead. Sheathing her blaster, Twilight’s horn instead shone with a red-white iridescence. The guards stumbled to a halt, holding arms aloft to shield their eyes from the blinding light. Soon after, an intense heat washed over their front sides. Squinting their eyes open, they could make out the wavering dance of a wall of flames that had materialized in front of them, and behind that, the vague outline of the ponies fleeing toward the exit. “Quick thinkin’, Twi!” Applejack chanced a quick glance behind her as they galloped. None of the humans were pursuing. “Gotta hoof it to ya: magic sure made this easier’n waterin’ the crops on a rainy day.” Facing forward again, she could make out the other liberated captives, huddled together at the appointed spot. “All clear!” Daring Do glided in from overhead. She motioned them along westward, back toward their village and home. “Let’s get moving, ladies!” Twilight cast one final look to the outpost. Dark smoke billowed out the top of the log-walled fortress. Barked, panicked orders could still be heard in the distance, as all abled guards ran about with water buckets. Aside from a few wide-shot arrows that sailed harmlessly overhead, the creatures seemed content to fall back and lick their wounds. Nodding once, letting out her breath, then nodding once more, she turned and chased after her fleeing friends. Daring braced her wings out, slowing her course until Twilight had a chance to catch up. “You did good, kid. Gotta say, me and AJ were afraid you’d be cramping our style. Especially after that”—she wrinkled her nose—“canteen incident.” She tucked her ears flat, scowling. “I told you, I just wanted to test out my water purification tablets.” “Still though,” said Applejack, slowing herself along to a trot now that the danger had passed, “don’t be misunderstandin’, since we do appreciate the help and all, but… Well, ain’t your friends gonna be cross with this stunt you pulled?” “Maybe.” Twilight Sparkle looked ahead at nothing, then snorted and smirked. “Well, Dash might be impressed, more than anything. But I think they’ll understand, in time.” “But Twi, we told ya time ‘n’ again.” Applejack shook her head slowly, side to side. “You weren’t under no obligation to help us. This here was an Apple matter, at the core of it.” “I understand,” she said, nodding slowly. “But that’s not why I’m here. Not really. It’s… This is going to sound so selfish, but this is something I had to do for me. I’d feel awful if I left without making things right.” Twilight hung her head and looked away, unable to meet the eyes of the others. “What?” asked Daring Do with a shrug. “Like, a guilty conscience?” Twilight shrugged back. “Not exactly. It’s just, this journey that I’m on, with Rainbow Dash and the others, is really important. Helping you to rescue your friends is also really important.” Looking askance to Applejack, she added, “I don’t want to have to decide that one of those is more important than the other. What’s the good in saving ponies, if we can’t save everypony?” Applejack gave her a wincing smile and placed a hoof on her back. “Look, Twi, I getcha. Really, I do. But trust me when I tell ya, ya can’t always act like a superhero.” Daring Do nearly dropped like a stone as she gaped down at Applejack. Only an instinctual flap of her wings saved her from eating a faceful of grass. “Excuse me? Am I hearing this right?” “Alright, I get it,” said Applejack, rolling her eyes at the pegasus. “I was just sayin’ otherwise not more’n an hour ago, and—” Gliding down, Daring Do wrapped one hoof around AJ’s head, roughly pulling it against her own chest, while she raised her other hoof dramatically to her forehead. “Oh, what cruel fates! The mother of my foal, kicked in the head during battle and suffering from amnesia! Why, she doesn’t even know who she is, anymore!” “A ha ha ha,” Applejack said testily, untangling herself from the pegasus. “I get it, Doe. I’m a hypocrite. T’ain’t my fault it’s easier said than done.” As Daring stuck her tongue out, Applejack continued. “My point was, it’s fine and mighty to have goals, and to push yerself hard as ya can. But at some point, a pony reaches their limits.” Applejack lowered her head, looking Twilight in the eye. “The last thing you’d want is to be so caught up in saving everypony that you stretch yourself too thin, and can’t save nopony.” “Well… in that case, it’s simple!” Twilight snapped, adding a resolute nod at the end. “I just won’t let anypony down.” “Ugh.” Daring Do rolled her eyes. “Both you and Rainbow are just as stubborn as AJ here.” With a shake of her head, she continued, “The future is hosed, isn’t it?” Applejack, meanwhile, smirked and gave Twilight an appraising look. “Well like I said, I admire a spot of gumption when I see it. Though, you’ll hafta be forgivin’ me if ya…” She paused in thought a moment, her gait lagging behind a half-step, before she finally shrugged. “If ya don’t quite strike me as the gumption sort.” “Yes, yes.” Smirking, she rolled her eyes upward. “Egghead. I get it.” Applejack frowned and blinked twice. “Ya raise chickens? But yer a unicorn.” It took Twilight Sparkle a few seconds to process that line of thought. Once she had done so, she shook her head. “What I mean is, just because I’m not an athlete doesn’t mean I can’t keep up with you. If I want to do two things,” she said with a firm nod, her eyes burning brightly, “then I’ll just have to devote myself twice as hard. I can carry my own weight.” “Heh.” Applejack picked up the pace, rejoining the liberated ponies. “I don’t doubtcha, Twi. Not for a second.” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 1000 AD Sugardia Castle “Enter.” The grand wooden doors of King Sugardia’s chambers swung open with a slow, heavy creak as Pinkie Pie pushed her way inside. Like her own chambers, they were ornate and stately but with a modicurm of restraint. Lush red carpets covered the ancient stone floors, upon which stood proud relic furniture, hoofed down across the generations. Gold candlesticks were already alight in preparation for tonight’s sunset, casting the room in a mix of orange and yellow hues. King Sugardia the 33rd sat at his desk, resting his forehead against a hoof while he skimmed through paperwork. A stately eagle quill hung loosely from his teeth in between signatures, and a dark cup of coffee sat on the desk beside him, slowly bleeding its heat into the air. The monarch rubbed at his temple and returned his quill to its inkwell before finally looking up. He stared vacantly at his daughter for a moment before remembering himself. “I did not expect you to return, so soon.” Pinkie Pie quietly closed the door behind her, then turned forward, her face and ears drooping downward. “Hello, Father,” she said. “Have you been sleeping?” “Soon. The kingdom’s duties come first.” He rose, sweeping his cape behind him as he approached Pinkie. As she nodded in wordless reply, he continued with a dash of hesitation. “You will forgive an old stallion for being blunt. It truly is good to see your return. However…” He contemplated a nearby tapestry, as though it had not hung there his entire life. “Harsh words were exchanged when you departed. I do not expect to push through things in a single evening.” Pinkie Pie paused in thought, then nodded. “Mmm, that makes sense. But, umm…” She kicked at the floor, murmuring, “Even so, I still do want to… patch things up. You know?” He studied her for a moment, just an inquisitive set of eyes reading her in silence, before nodding once. “Good. This pleases me.” As he walked around the front of his desk, he spoke to the room. “You will forgive me for remaining blunt. I expected you to return in stride with the townsmare.” “Uh.” Pinkie winced, rubbing the back of her neck. “Yeah. I kinda sorta thought that might not be the bestest of ideas. Seeing how she was accused of fillynapping me, then getting proved not guilty, then actually fillynapping me.” “Ah… yes.” Sitting down upon his seat cushion, King Sugardia shuffled a few documents around his desk. “I understand your trepidation. However, the rainbow-striped one was proven not guilty in court. As for the incident in the prisons… Well, she needs to face the consequences of her actions.” He shook his head. “But there is a time and a place for such things.” Pinkie tilted her head. “Huh? But what happened to all that talk about laws and sentences?” She tried to crack a smile, somewhat successfully. “Are you trying to say that you like my friends now?” “I am saying,” King Sugardia replied with a small frown, “that you are my daughter. I care for your well-being. I cannot exempt you or the townsmare from the rules. However. Pursuing this justice with ruthless intent would benefit nopony.” He paused, returning to his paperwork, pushing the documents from pile to pile. “Tell me. Why did you return?” A wince of her eye registered through Pinkie’s smile. “Do I need a reason?” she asked quietly. The king regarded her a moment. “I suppose not,” he said. “But you do have one, do you not?” Pinkie Pie chuckled, and her hoof returned to the back of her neck again. “You got me. Yeah. I, um… well…” Her voice trailed off as she stared out the window at the amber sunset. “Well, I’ve been gone a while, y’know?” “Three days.” “Yeah! So, y’know. I’ve been doing that whole ‘finding yourself’ thing, y’know?” Pinkie motioned along, painting the scene with her hooves. “I went on big adventures! I hung out with a bunch of ponies who were smart and strong and brave. I even got to talk with a whatchits, a foreign dignitary!” Nodding rapidly, she continued. “I saw all sorts of fun and crazy sights, and found out what it is that ponies really believe in. And I, well… I think I get it.” “You get ‘it’?” “Yeah!” she said with a scrunched-up shrug that didn’t quite match her bubbly voice. “I mean, it’s about balance, yeah? Work hard and play hard, right? Like, I havta put in a lot of hard work to do the boring duties and responsibilities, but then I can make up for it with a big ol’ celebration to perk myself up and get all jazzercized, and then it’s back to the grind.” She smiled at her father. “Right?” King Sugardia sat in reflection. Lifting his coffee cup, he took a small draw of the room-temperature drink before speaking. “You still have much to learn, Pinkamena. Yet too, have you grown in just a few days’ time.” He nodded once with deliberate movement. “I am pleased.” “Oh. Awesome!” Pinkie’s grin widened. “Well, I mean, speaking of which, you’ve clearly been working too hard, yourself.” She twisted herself about, nosing open her saddlebags. After a bit of shuffling and nudging, she emerged upright, a tiny platter balanced on the tip of her nose. Atop the plate sat an overstuffed caramel-drizzled apple dumpling. “Ta da!” The king sat upright in his seat, stiffening his jaw and staring at the dessert with hardened eyes. “What is the meaning of this?” he asked with a carefully level tone. “Well, see, we had this party that was millions of years ago. Oh! But don’t worry, this dumpling was made yesterday. Anyway, I met a lot of ponies there and we all had a lot of fun, and the food there was super scrumptious, so I had grabbed myself a snack for later, but I figured that you could use a little pick-me-up to get yourself through the rest of the evening, just to take a quick break from all that dumb boring paperwork, and you’re not smiling, why aren’t you smiling?” His gaze narrowed on the dessert in front of him. The king drew in a slow, deep lungful of air, then let his eyes fall closed as he held it in. With a quiet exhale, he rose, turned around, and stood stark still, facing his bed. “Good evening, Pinkamena.” Pinkie Pie took two steps back. She worked her jaw over words that would not form, while her eyes quickly scanned the room for any form of hint. “I… Did I say something wrong? I thought you’d want—” “Pinkamena,” he interrupted, soft and deafening. “I am tired.” She held her jaw firmly clamped together, feeling her teeth grind and press against one another. “Yes, Father,” she murmured. After a moment’s thought, she stepped up to the desk and gently placed the dish beside his coffee cup. With a polite bow, she turned and exited the chambers. Outside, Soarin and Scratch stood on the opposite side of the hallway, engaged in the sort of idle chatter that is exchanged when much more exciting things are underway. They both looked to the door in unison as it swung open, and once Pinkie softly latched it shut behind her, they were upon her at once. “How was His Grace? Was he in good spirits?” Captain Soarin asked first. “Nevermind that,” said Chancellor Scratch, her voice clipped. “Did you guys, y’know, talk? Did the whole heart-to-heart and all that?” “It…” Pinkie’s face twisted up as though she were eating a lemon. She turned and made her way back toward the stairwell. Chancellor Scratch blinked. “Wha… Didn’t you give him that dumpling?” “He, uhh…” Pinkie swallowed. “He didn’t exactly… like it.” “What?” Scratch stopped in her tracks, letting Pinkie gain step after step of distance. “Hated it? No, that… What the hell? He’s been on a sugar bend all day. No, seriously, what the hell?” Pinkie Pie shrugged. “It wasn’t all bad. He said that he thought I had grown. That’s something, you know?” Blinking with a start, Scratch galloped down the staircase until she caught up with Pinkie’s descent. “Pinkamena! Wait.” She did not. “You’re leaving again.” Pinkie turned at this, offering an apologetic smile. She wrapped her hooves around the other mare. “Sorry, Scratchy. And sorry, Soarin. I don’t mean to cause you two so much trouble. I just…” Releasing her from the hug, Pinkie turned toward one of the west-facing windows on the staircase. A stream of fading sunset washed over her face, forcing her to squint in order to make out the skyline. “I got smarter. My father said so, and… I can figure this out. I can figure out how to make this all better. I just need to…” A strained sigh escaped Scratch’s chest. “I get it. If you weren’t the Princess, it’d be easy to just tell you to go find yourself. But…” She shook her head. “Princess.” Soarin stepped forward, offering a salute. “Please, whatever you do, stay safe. No matter what he says or how he acts, His Highness cares deeply for you.” “I know.” Pinkie Pie took a breath, straightened out her smile, and steeled her resolve. “You guys don’t need to worry about me. My friends will keep me safe. And I’ll be back again before you know it. That’s a Pinkie Promise.” Sharing one more hug with each of them, she trotted down the stairs, leaving them behind on the stairwell. “You’d better stay safe,” Chancellor Scratch called out after her. Once she disappeared around the bend, she let out a sigh, then stared out the nearby window. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 1000 AD Diane’s Square Pinkie Pie walked up behind Rainbow. “Hey, Dashie,” she said, trying to inject some cheer into her tone. “There you are. Sorry, must’ve lost track of the time.” She looked around, confirming her suspicions; the fairgrounds were already thinning out as the sun kissed the horizon. “Didja have a fun time, at least?” Rainbow Dash did not reply. “Everything okay, Dashie?” Rainbow Dash did not reply. Pinkie flinched back, feeling her tail droop off her hindquarters. “You’re… not upset that I didn’t hang out with you today, are you?” When she didn’t receive any confirmation, she added, “I wasn’t trying to ditch you, honest. Please don’t be mad. I just… I just had some errands to run today, and, well…” Rainbow Dash did not reply. “Dashie, please!” She reached out to grab Rainbow Dash’s shoulder. “Please, just—” Rainbow Dash fell over. Pinkie startled, giving a quick look left and right. Hesitantly, she leaned forward, squinting her eyes at the form in front of her. With a bit of pause, she delicately poked it with a hoof. It gave way with a soft, minky plushness. Howling laughter rolled from the tree branch above her. “Oh my Sun, ahaha! You fell for it. Oh man, that is rich!” Rainbow Dash leaned her head over the edge of the branch, a wide gaping grin on her face and a tear welling in her eye. “Like, I knew that thing looked great, but, just… wow!” She gave way to laughter once more, nearly losing her balance in the process. Pinkie Pie studied the prone form on the ground, then the pegasus in the treetop, then the ground form once more. Slowly, her face metamorphosized, from confusion to realization to jaw-dropped amazement. “Whoa. Whoa! Are you kidding me? Is this really…” She picked it up and held it nose-to-nose with her. “It is! You seriously got a life-sized plushie… of yourself?!” Her eyes shimmered as her grin easily rivaled Rainbow’s in size. “Where? Where?!” “Far tent, by the woods,” Rainbow replied, waving her hoof in the vague direction. “The guy was more than a little weird. Smelled like cheese and sadness. But, I just had to beat some of his dumb carnival games and he gave me this bad girl!” “No. Way.” Pinkie Pie did a quick scan-over, looking at the stitching with a closer eye. “So what, he made a plushie of you? Like, while you waited?” “Uh… No,” said Rainbow, scratching the back of her head. “He… sorta had it already made. Ones of me, and Twilight, and some of the other ponies in town.” Pinkie gave the life-sized doll an unreadable look. “That sounds incredibly sketchy,” she observed. “Yeaaah,” drawled Rainbow. “More than a little creepy, if you ask me.” They considered Plushie Dash in silence. “Still!” chirped Pinkie Pie. “Free plushie!” “Heck yeah!” Rainbow Dash laughed. “And it’s a plushie of the most awesome pony in all of Sugardia! What’s not to like?” The two shared a healthy laugh for a moment, before Pinkie managed to get her breathing under control. “So, uh… today was good, then? You weren’t too lonely or anything?” “Yeah! It was… well…” Rainbow winced, slowly deflating as she thought back. “Well, I mean, it was mostly awesome. But, I guess some parts were less awesome than others.” “Yeah.” Pinkie Pie kicked at the pavement, looking down and away. “I know what you mean. A lot. But hey!” For the first time that day, she truly smiled with ease in her heart. “It’s all behind us. We made it. And now, we’re getting back together, just like we used to be!” “Yeah. Hey, yeah!” Grinning, Rainbow Dash threw her leg around Pinkie, pulling her into a friendly hug. “It’s stupid to just sit around, moping and obsessing. It’s what’s in the future that counts, right? The future we make together.” “Twilight’s in the past,” Pinkie pointed out. “You know what I meant,” Rainbow Dash said, swatting Pinkie’s ear with her hoof. “She’s coming with us, obviously. It would be a lame future without her and all the others.” Pumping her hoof, she smirked at Pinkie Pie. “We’re gonna kick fourteen types of flank together.” “Wait, wait, wait.” Pinkie gasped, her eyes growing the size of saucers. “Back up. That plushie guy—did he have one of me, too?” Frowning and tapping her chin, Rainbow Dash thought back to earlier in the afternoon. “Oh! Yeah, y’know? I think he did! Aw crap,” she growled. “He probably already packed up for today. Sorry, Pinkie…” “No worries.” Pinkie Pie grinned and poked her in the chest. “I’ll just take an IOU. Next time we’re in town, we’ll go and get a friend for Plushie Dash.” “Heh.” Rainbow Dash smiled back. “Sure thing, Pinkie. It’s a promise.” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 65,000,000 BC Apple Village Commons After one last visit to Rainbow Dash’s house to drop off Plushie Dash, a couple of leaps across the intricate fabric of time, and a bit of verbal berating from the Great and Powerful Goddess of War, Rainbow and Pinkie were back again amongst the Apple Family. Though the village had been attacked by Queen Eva’s vanguard only this morning, it already showed signs of rejuvenation. All around the square, ponies were carrying replacement boards to other ponies who fixed broken walls, while yet more wheeled around carts laden with food and drink for the hungry workers. The whole town buzzed like a high-tech machine, but at the core of it, it was the strong sense of community and family that drew them all together. Just south of the center of town, Twilight Sparkle’s horn glowed, and beside her, a new wall rotated up from the ground, snapping into place on the damaged home. She waved above her, and a set of stallions on the rooftop set at once to hammering the framework into place. Wiping the sweat from her brow, she turned toward Rainbow Dash and grinned. “Hey! There you girls are. And here I thought you were going to abandon me.” Pinkie Pie stuck out her tongue. “Oh, we thought about it.” “You made it pretty easy for us,” Rainbow said, batting Twilight on the horn. “Don’t forget that you’re the one who didn’t jump after us. Buuut, I suppose we were obligated to come back. Out of pity.” “Uh huh.” Twilight let her eyelids fall to half mast. “Admit it. You’d be lost without me to guide you, what with my superior planning and intellect.” “Pfft.” Rainbow Dash rolled her eyes. “I don’t have to admit anything. What?” she asked, furrowing her brow when Twilight giggled at her. “I said I don’t have to admit it. Why are you—” “Well, glad to see y’all are back in good spirits.” Applejack fanned herself with her hat as she approached the trio of friends. “Yer looking a mite more livelier than you were this morning. Especially this one,” she said, nodding in Twilight’s direction. “Yup yup!” Pinkie Pie smiled warmly at Applejack. “We just all had things we needed to take care of first, before we could really commit ourselves.” “Like getting haybacon,” Rainbow grumbled. Twilight Sparkle’s whole form cringed. “Oh dear. Your mom must still be really sore about you running away.” When Rainbow grunted, she continued, “‘That one filly’ didn’t make a scene, did she?” “She’s dished out worse.” Rainbow huffed and looked off toward the forest. “Ouch.” Twilight frowned, putting a sympathetic hoof on Rainbow’s withers. Applejack looked between the two of them, brow creasing as she tried to follow along. “Well… anyways,” she said, turning back to Pinkie Pie, “I’m glad ta hear that y’all found what you were lookin’ for.” Fittingly, Twilight looked back and forth across the commons. “Where’s Fluttershy? Wasn’t she with you?” “She’s back at Zecora’s,” said Rainbow, jerking her head toward the Magic Mountains and their Gate. “They should be finishing up soon. Ready to come with, for real this time?” “For real this time,” Twilight laughed in reply. She nodded to Applejack with a knowing smile. “We had a busy day here, but… I’m not about to forget the promises that got me here in the first place.” Applejack winked in reply. “And what about you, AJ?” Dash asked. “Does the cowpony wanna come with us and see the mysterious future?” “Ooo, yeah!” Pinkie chimed in, while Applejack rolled her eyes at Rainbow. “You could join us on our big adventure. The more the merrier!” “Thank ya kindly. Fer all the help, Twi, and for the offer, RD.” Applejack turned and looked to the south. Above the schoolhouse, Daring Do hoisted up a basket of shingles for the stallions repairing its roof. “But there’s still things I gotta take care of, here with the family. ‘Fraid I can’t take ya up on that.” “I understand, Applejack,” Twilight said, giving the mare a friendly hug. “We’ve all got to give it our best.” She laughed, patting Twilight’s back. “Yup, that’s the long ‘n’ short of it. I’ve got mine, and you’ve got yours. But I’ll wanna hear all ‘bout yer adventure, next time y’all visit.” “And we can’t wait to tell you all about it!” Pinkie Pie chirped back, hopping up and down. With a nod and a wave over her shoulder, Rainbow Dash led the others off toward the mountains. “Take it easy, AJ!” “Goodbye!” Applejack waved her hat above her head. Around her, a few of the other Apples waved farewell in turn. “Thanks again fer everything! Stay safe, y’all!” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 1000 AD Palomedina Village—Zecora’s Shop “Twilight!” Fluttershy raced toward them as soon as the door opened, an avalanche of bright yellow steel. “Fluttershy!” Twilight hugged her tightly, half out of friendship, half as an attempt to not be bowled over. It was successful enough that she remained on her hooves, if a bit winded. “I heard you were busy.” “Me? Oh, no, that was nothing.” She pulled back, looking Twilight eye to eye. “What about you? Did you really help Applejack save all those poor captured ponies?” Rainbow Dash approached the kitchen table while Twilight and Fluttershy reunited. Seated at the table, Zecora inhaled deeply over her cup of herbal tea before taking a soft sip. “Gee, somezebra’s slacking off,” Rainbow said with a chuckle. “Shouldn’t you be, I dunno, smelting or hammering or whatever?” Zecora cracked open an eye to look at Rainbow, and she grinned. “While you stand there to laugh and bleat, know that our work is long since complete.” She took a drawn-out sip from her tea. “You did it? Awesome!” Rainbow Dash cheered. “Never doubted you two for a second,” Pinkie said with a wink. “It’s… really complete. Wow.” Twilight stared at the far wall, lined with Zecora’s lesser works. Her eyes were wide, somewhat glazed, as she spoke. “I mean, I know it was all building up to this, but… we actually did it. This is really happening. We have the sword, and we’re going to stop Nightmare Moon, and… It’s a bit hard to believe this is all real.” She looked back at Fluttershy, swishing her tail. “You know?” Her head tilted forward, Fluttershy looked up at Twilight Sparkle between her metallic bangs. “...would you like to see it?” Twilight’s eyes widened. “Oh, absolutely!” “Heck yeah!” Rainbow said, crossing her hooves in front of her. “Let’s see this bad girl in action.” As Fluttershy walked off into the back, Zecora set down her teacup. “Such a quick repair was no easy feat, but you ponies are in for quite a treat. Though once this blade was ravaged and torn, witness my hopes and dreams, reborn!” Her chest swelling, she swept her hoof in Fluttershy’s direction. Fluttershy returned with a dark green scabbard balanced upon her outstretched wingtips. The scabbard itself was unadorned and unremarkable, save for a familiar hilt poking out the top of it. Reaching Zecora, Fluttershy sat back on her haunches and moved the sword around, cradling it with her forelegs. Zecora bit down on the grip and gently pulled, freeing the blade from its sheath. As sunlight poured in from the west windows, it reflected off the drawn blade, filling the room with a silvery glow. Rainbow Dash widened her eyes, feeling the air being sucked out of the room. She managed to utter a single word. “Whoa…” * * * Chapter 27: The Hero is Reborn 600 AD Frog’s Residence “Just a moment, dears!” Frog called from the back room of the small burrow. “I’ll be out with you in just one moment. Please, do make yourselves comfortable.” Rainbow Dash and her friends looked to one another in confusion, each struggling to put to words what they were thinking at that very moment. Twilight was the first to succeed. “...I didn’t actually realize Frog’s place had a back room,” she murmured to the others. “Right?” agreed Pinkie. “I didn’t wanna say anything, since we’re guests and all, but I just always sorta assumed this was just a little hideaway nestled back in a glen. I didn’t realize that she’d go for the whole two bedrooms, one bath set-up.” Grinning sheepishly, she added, “But then again, that’s totally classic Frog.” Rainbow noted that the neck of Frog’s dress form—which some might claim had been vandalized, but which history would remember as having been the hiding place of a magical relic and therefore a necessary casualty—had been repaired, by some measure. The head was held more-or-less in place by some quick stitching, but with the crack still readily visible, the dress form was naturally unstable. The gown which Frog had been displaying on the dress form yesterday was nowhere to be seen. “Here we are,” said Frog, announcing herself as she entered the main living area. She turned quickly to her full length mirror, adjusted her fluffy white bathrobe with a few brushes of her padded foot, and gave its stain-resistant spell another surge of magic for good measure, before turning to the others with a warm smile. “Do forgive me for keeping you waiting. I’m not used to receiving callers at this hour, so I’m afraid I had already turned in for the night.” Fluttershy and Twilight flinched back, nearly in perfect unison. Twilight’s flinch was more expressive, with her head pulled away and her tail tucked low, but in fairness, Fluttershy’s smaller reaction was simply a hardware limitation. Fluttershy spoke first. “Oh, I’m sorry. I didn’t stop to think that we’d already had dinner.” “If it’s too late, we can always come back tomorrow,” Twilight said, walking up a few steps in front of Fluttershy. “We don’t want to impose…” “No, no, don’t be absurd,” Frog said, swatting away the idea like a pesky mosquito. “The company of good friends is welcome at any hour. I was merely caught unawares, so I regret to say that the tea shall be somewhat delayed.” She nudged her head in the direction of the stove, where the tea kettle was already in place and faintly hissing. Motioning them toward her table and cushions, she added, “So then! How goes your quest? Have you any new leads on how to assault Nightmare Moon’s castle?” Ignoring the invitation to sit, Rainbow Dash approached Frog directly, her expression set in an uncharacteristically stoic expression. Frog looked back, her naturally wide eyes growing further as she noticed not one, but two swords resting across Rainbow’s back, crossed at the middle with a hilt aside either shoulder. Turning her head to bite down on the grip, Rainbow pulled, slow and deliberate. The whole cavern sang with a metallic ring as the blade was pulled free of its scabbard. Frog felt her breath catch in her throat as lamplight bounced from the blade to her eyes. The rainbow refraction was enough to make her feel lightheaded—or perhaps, that was simply because she had forgotten to breathe. Rainbow held her forelegs level in front of her, then gently laid the broadsword atop the makeshift stand. The components were so familiar to Frog, yet simultaneously awe-inspiring. The rubber grip had been replaced, nearly possessing a sheen in its rich blackness. The gold guard and the pommel sapphire had always been ornate showpieces, but never before had she seen them shimmer in this way. Light danced playfully along every facet of the gold, and in the sapphire, Frog could see a dozen copies of herself staring back. The blade itself was difficult to look at for long, as though all of her senses were overwhelmed at once. But she forced herself to look, and in doing so, she felt her heart catch in her throat. “It’s…” she managed to whisper, before clearing her throat and trying again. “It’s the Lyrabon.” “Yeah it is!” Rainbow’s grin stretched her face muscles to their limits. “I… but…” Frog frowned at the legendary weapon, her eyes dancing up and down its presented form, before at last searching Rainbow’s face. “How?” “Eh, y’know,” said Rainbow, looking away with a noncommittal shrug so that she wouldn’t have to look Frog in the eye. Nevertheless, her lips twitched, threatening to give away her giddy excitement. “We’ve got connections. A zebra here, a cowpony there. You know how it is.” Staring transfixed at the Lyrabon, Frog approached with slow and weighty steps. Once within reach, she lifted a foot toward its middle, with the same eagerness that one might touch a hot stove. After a moment, she steeled herself and rested her foot on the blade, drawing in a shaky inhale. “This… this is not possible.” “Nah,” said Pinkie Pie with a playful wink. “Hang around with us long enough, and nothing’s impossible.” “This…” Licking her lips with a demure flick of the tongue, Frog tried to gather her thoughts. “I have seen many a repaired sword, particularly since the war began. Even the best of blacksmiths will leave behind a cut, a sign that the steel was once rended, a structural weakness that cannot be healed, but…” Frog looked to Rainbow and wordlessly shook her head, before staring once more at the sword. She ran her foot gently up and down the surface, simply feeling. “It never looked so… magical. Not even before…” “We’re glad you like it,” Fluttershy said softly, with the faintest trace of pride. “We really worked hard to make everything just right.” “Nothing we couldn’t handle,” Rainbow Dash quickly added. “We’ve got way bigger fish to fry than some legendary sword.” Fluttershy’s eye panels shrunk. “F-fry?” “It’s an idiom.” Twilight Sparkle shot a reproachful look in Rainbow’s directions. “Needlessly gruesome for a serious occasion like this, but she’s just talking about saving the world. No actual fish will be harmed in this adventure.” “Oh. Well, that’s a relief.” Rainbow Dash rolled her eyes and chuckled. “All I meant was, now that we’ve got this bad boy, we can finally get this show back on the road, and kick Nightmare Moon’s sorry flank.” She paused. “Right, Frog?” The heat of the stove returned at once; Frog jerked back, clutching the limb against her chest. “No,” she said at length. “No, Rainbow Dash. We discussed this quite adamantly, when last you were here.” Rainbow’s expression nosedived from restrained cheer into a darkened stare. “Are you serious?” she growled. “Indeed I am,” Frog said, meeting her gaze head-on. Her poised stance, with chest pushed out and head raised, commanded an aura of respect that even Rainbow Dash found difficult to ignore. “The legends clearly state that the Lyrabon may only be wielded by a true hero. As you appear to be in possession of both the Hero’s Medal, and the Lyrabon itself—” “Which I am giving to you,” groaned Rainbow. “Seriously! I, Rainbow Dash, do hereby be-quill this sword—” “Bequeath,” hissed Twilight. “Be-quiche this sword and this medal to you,” Rainbow said, jerking her head back at her saddlebags. “There, happy?” “They belong in the hooves of a capable hero, Rainbow Dash, and you have demonstrated your abilities here far moreso than I. Perhaps I could…” Trailing off, Frog stared a moment at the back wall. From a single peg mounted into the wall of topsoil hung Frog’s green traveler’s cloak. The tip of her old broadsword peeked out beneath the bottom of the cloak. “I would be able to supply you, should you be in need of anything. My personal reserve of healing potions, for instance.” “Screw that noise,” snapped Rainbow Dash. “If I wanted a healing potion, I’d go to a merchant.” She motioned as though she were going to poke Frog in the chest, but with the Lyrabon currently cradled in her hooves, all she could manage was a rough gesture in Frog’s direction. “I came here because I wanted the only pony better with a sword than me. I wanted a hero.” “The only ones you will find here are yourselves.” Frog’s words were clipped, her expression frigid yet stately. “Rainbow,” said Twilight Sparkle, a strong tone of warning in her voice. “Twilight,” Rainbow parroted back. “Pinkie Pie!” Pinkie shouted, throwing her forehooves in the air. As all eyes in the room turned toward her, she tittered, gently sat herself back down, and remained very quiet. “Frog is being very explicit here,” Twilight said, choosing her words with care. “She doesn’t want to take the Lyrabon from you. It was a very thoughtful offer, but she declined it, and we should respect her wishes.” “That’s great and all?” Rainbow Dash shot Twilight a dour look. “But we’re jumping into the big leagues now. Nightmare Moon doesn’t sound like the type who’s gonna mess around, so we need all the help we can get. Frog can’t just hide away and pretend like none of this matters to her.” Frog took a full two steps back, her eyes bulging. “Excuse me?” she whispered. Twilight opened her mouth, but before she could reply, Fluttershy stepped in. “Um, Twilight? Actually, I agree with Rainbow Dash.” “What?” Twilight asked, mouth agape at her robotic companion. “Frog is really quite talented. Um, well, I don’t know her as well as you three do, but I did see her practice match with Rainbow.” Rainbow Dash nodded in quick agreement as Fluttershy continued. “So, if she joined us, she could really make a big difference. She’d be able to help with something that’s… well, right now it’s nearly the most important thing in the world.” Fluttershy tilted her head at Twilight. “If that’s the case, shouldn’t she want to help? To save everypony?” “Wait a minute, wait a minute, wait wait wait.” Pinkie Pie held up her hooves in a placating manner, looking around the circle of ponies. “Nopony’s trying to say that saving the world isn’t super-duper important. I’m like the most pro-saving-the-world leaning pony you’ll ever meet. Nopony’s trying to say that she has to go fight monsters with us, or else she’s anti-saving-the-world. It’s still her choice whether she comes with us or not.” “But Nightmare Moon is so very powerful. And don’t forget about Lavos,” Fluttershy said back, as Pinkie Pie worried at her lip. “That terrible monster is strong enough to hurt everypony. Everypony.” She paused a moment, letting the words sink in as she looked around. “If… If we lose… No, we can’t lose. There’s too much at stake.” “And you will not.” All eyes fixed upon Frog as her voice called out. Strong. Deliberate. “Ladies, I understand your concerns. Truly, I do. Nightmare Moon’s reputation for villainy precedes her.” An easy smile returned to her. “However, your one mistake is in selling yourselves short. In such a short period of time, you all have grown so much, rising to every challenge set before you. Why,” she said, motioning toward the Lyrabon, “you’ve already accomplished feats that are, by all accounts, impossible. Together, the four of you will prove to be more than a match for any fiends, no matter how monstrous they may be. “Now. I acknowledge Rainbow Dash’s frustrations,” Frog continued, resting a webbed foot on Rainbow’s shoulder. “She admires my talent with a sword, and really, I am humbled by such praise. But it takes more than flashy sword tricks to be a real keeper of the peace,” she said, a hint of laughter creeping into her tone. “No, it requires devotion, and bravery, and believing in something bigger than yourself, and all manner of traits for which I simply do not measure up. I apologize, but I cannot become the hero you seek. I would simply hold you back.” “Bullshit.” The hint of mirth in Frog’s eyes evaporated in a flash of steam, replaced with a venomous glare at Rainbow Dash. Twilight punched her hoof into Rainbow Dash’s shoulder, eliciting a grunt from the pegasus. “Really?” she hissed. “Now, of all times, you decide to run your mouth?” Rolling her sore shoulder in a wide circle, while careful to keep ahold of the Lyrabon, Rainbow Dash resumed her staredown with Frog. “Fine. Tell me why, then. Why do you keep saying you can’t be a hero?” “I explained myself yesterday,” Frog said with a tightness in her voice. “Sir Spike is the hero that you seek, but he has not been seen for some time. In lieu of him, you are the next most qualified to carry the mantle. When measured against Sir Spike, I fall short.” “But why?” Rainbow stomped a hoof, nearly losing her balance in the process. “Why won’t you admit how awesome you are? What makes this ‘Sir Spike’ character so much better than you?” Frog drew in a sharp inhale from her nose, letting her eyes fall closed. She turned in place, facing the back room of her abode, and stood. “It is quite late. You should be on your way.” For a moment, nopony moved. Rainbow Dash stood behind her, drilling her eyes into the back of Frog’s head. Then, she snorted out a hot blast of air. “Fine,” she said. “Fine. We’re going.” Silence. “Rainbow,” Twilight murmured in reply. “No.” The cavern sang once more with the sound of sword against scabbard, though this reprise was somber and quiet. “She wants us to go, we’re going. We’re going.” Silence again, and then, the sound of hooves on the wooden planks of the staircase. Frog held her ground, listening as her guests climbed the stairs leading up to ground level. The sounds faded. Even alone, Frog dared not exhale, feeling a slow burn grow in her chest. Feeling the memories race through her heart. On the nearby stove, the percolating tea kettle hissed, then whistled, then screamed. Frog listened to the noise shattering the calm, simply letting it run its course. Exhaling, then drawing in a fresh breath, she lit up her horn in a pale blue magic, and the kettle resonated in turn, lifting up from the heat. With a shriek, she hurled the kettle with all her might. A loud crystalline crash rang out through the room as the full length mirror shattered into a hundred shards. Heaving out a sob, Frog hung her head and surrendered once more to her emotions. She held a webbed foot across her face, hiding away the bitter tears that welled forth. “Frog…” Nearly leaping out of her skin, Frog whirled about and faced Rainbow Dash. The pegasus was in the center of the room; while her friends had departed, Rainbow had remained rooted in place. Rainbow Dash fixed Frog with a firm stare and an unwavering stance. From above appeared Pinkie, Twilight, and Fluttershy, leaning their heads down into the hole but not daring to cross the threshold. “Get out.” Frog’s voice was in an unrecognizable range, lost between growl and sob. Rainbow Dash smacked open her mouth once as she looked to the side, at the shattered remnants of Frog’s mirror, then back at Frog. “No. I’m not leaving you like this.” “Get out!” she screamed, voice tearing at the back of her throat. When no response came save for Rainbow’s even-keeled stare, Frog’s horn lit with magic once more. The mirror fragments came to life, lifting off the ground and then buzzing beside her head like a swarm of razor-sharp hornets. “I am warning you!” Rainbow Dash considered her, and then took a step forward. And another. Frog let the shards fly. They raced toward Rainbow Dash at breakneck speed, before colliding with some unseen wall. The swarm hung in the air, inches away from Rainbow’s face, though Rainbow did not so much as blink. The shards pushed and strained and whirled about, but to no avail. The glass could come no closer. Frog wouldn’t allow it. The shards fell to the ground, and shortly thereafter, Frog too fell to her knees. Covering her face with both forelegs, she wailed from her very core. Rainbow Dash made her way to Frog’s side, carefully stepping around the pile of glass. She lowered herself to the ground, before placing a gentle hoof around her withers. “Don’t,” Frog sobbed, weakly trying to pull away. “Don’t look at me.” Rainbow Dash stayed. On the other end of the room, three sets of hoofsteps descended the staircase. ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ Twilight poured tea for five, seated as they were around the table. The tea set itself was white china with ornate roses decorating the perimeter: tasteful, fairly expensive, and well cared for. Herbal tea flowed for each guest, one by one, an attractive green-yellow that swirled and settled in the bottom of each wide, white cup. Steam danced up from the surface, flicking warmth across their cheeks and tingling their noses with the scents of foreign flowers. Pinkie graciously accepted her teacup and drank, followed by Twilight as soon as everypony was served. Fluttershy did not drink, of course, but the symbolic gesture was always appreciated. In her white bathrobe, Frog resembled a drowned cat. Gone was the life from her eyes as she stared down at her teacup. The bathrobe hung heavy on her frame, dragging her down and making her seem so small. Frog had not said a word since being comforted by Rainbow. She offered no response as the tea party was set, no response as Pinkie and Twilight offered reassuring hugs, no response as the herd looked to her with anticipation. On her right sat Rainbow Dash, or perhaps a statue. Every muscle was tense, every joint locked, every tendon strained. She afforded herself to glance at her tea, then the briefest of glances in Frog’s direction before immediately locking her gaze front and center. The tea grew colder. Twilight gently cleared her throat, drawing Rainbow’s attention. Rainbow Dash winced at her, looking every bit the part of a filly whose wildly-thrown hoofball had broken her neighbor’s window. To this, Twilight smiled and gave an encouraging tilt of her head toward Frog. Frowning, Rainbow Dash looked down at her tea and chewed on her lip. Without looking up from the tea, Rainbow Dash spoke. “I’m sorry, Frog.” The tea grew colder. “You said no. You said it should’ve been me. You said get out. And I had reasons for ignoring you. Really good reasons. But…” She chanced a glance in Frog’s direction; Frog made no outward change in expression. “But I crossed the line. A lot. And, well, you deserve more respect than that. So, I’m sorry.” With that, Rainbow Dash resumed her rigid vigilance over her teacup. Fluttershy nodded, and the sound of her servos cut through the stillness of the room. She froze, looked around the room without so much as moving a joint, and then stared at her tea, motionless. Frog blinked, otherwise unmoved from her cup. “Would you like to hear a fairy tale?” Everypony turned to Frog, roused from their thoughts and hesitations. They each opened their mouths to offer a reply, but Rainbow was the quickest. “A fairy tale?” “A fairy tale.” Frog nodded slowly at first but increasing in tempo, before she finally made eye contact with Rainbow Dash. “A tale about knights, and princesses, and true love.” She faltered, biting her lip and looking to the floor. “Sure!” Pinkie Pie leaned over the table, physically interjecting herself into the conversation. “I love a good bedtime story.” Rainbow Dash shot a glance in Pinkie Pie’s direction, and she quickly picked up the cue. “Y-yeah! Totally! I mean, if you wanna tell it, then we’d love to hear it. Right, girls?” Fluttershy sat upright, tilting her head to one side. “I’ve never actually heard a fairy tale before. I mean, I know some from accessing central data records, but I’ve… never actually had somepony tell me one.” She scuffed her hoof in small circles on the floor. Twilight kept her expression level as she stirred a few drops of honey into her tea, then lifted it to her lips. “So, where does the story begin?” Frog let her eyelids fall closed as she pulled the story to the forefront of her mind. She inhaled deeply through her nose, paused but for a moment, and spoke. ♢♢♢♢♢♢♢♢♢♢♢♢♢♢♢♢♢♢♢♢ Once upon a time, there was a princess. Though just a wee unicorn filly, she was kind and compassionate and beautiful. Her coat was the purest white of snow, while her mane was a gorgeous cascade of vivid violet down her shoulder. Everywhere that she went, she radiated an aura of beauty. It made the princess truly happy to share her gifts with others—to brighten their day in the light of her own presence. There came the day when the princess was graced with a cutie mark of her own, and what an auspicious occasion it was! For on that day, the princess had sewn for herself a radiant dress of baby blue, which shimmered in the daylight like a diamond. The princess was overjoyed in her creation and in her cutie mark, but she was not content to remain locked away in her gilded tower, hidden from the world. “Beauty is meant to be shared!” cried the princess. “I shall walk amongst all the ponies of the land, and give them joy.” The princess was an arrogant foal, of course, with bloated ego. But she was only a filly then, young and naive. She had her excuses. Frog paused to sip from her cool tea. Scrunching her nose, she levitated the teapot over and topped off her teacup, warming it back up. Pinkie shared a head-tilted look with Rainbow Dash. Twilight’s brow furrowed but she said nothing, simply taking the teapot next after Frog was done with it. And so the princess left for town, resplendent in her hoofmade dress of blue. So full of pride was she, so happy and eager to share this happiness with others, that she was caught unawares by a quartet of ruffians. The brutish colts circled around her, sneering and japing in a manner most foul. “Oi, you lot. Take a load o’this one, eh?” laughed the first. “Ooo! Accents!” Pinkie Pie interrupted. Twilight shushed her with a stern look. Frog gave them each an appreciative smile, cleared her throat, and continued. “Fancies ‘erself a princess, does she? With the dress and jewels?” sneered the second. The third spat on the ground in front of her. “Thinks she’s better than us! Just a’cuz she looks all done up ‘n such.” The four colts circled around the princess, like some vortex of ire and loathing. “Who said your kind’s even welcome round these parts, eh?” chimed the fourth. “Why don’t cha just take your fancy get-up and ‘ead right on back ‘ome?” The princess cowered back, drawing in upon herself as the colts circled closer and closer. Had she acted thoughtlessly? Had her zealotous drive for beauty blinded her, and caused her to act in an uncaring and selfish manner? Perhaps the colts were right, the princess thought. Perhaps she should return to her home and hide away her silly dress, after all. Frog leaned forward, one leg bracing against the table in front of her, the other thrusting toward some imaginary figure in the distance. But lo! Who should appear by the princess’s side, but a gallant knight! He, short of stature but standing proudly, clad in gleaming purple scales, wielding a blade of finest ash and tightly-bound twine— “He was a runt with a toy sword,” translated Rainbow Dash. She looked around the table at the series of dirty glares aimed in her direction. “What?” “Hey!” shouted the valiant knight. “What’s wrong with you jerks? Leave her alone!” Pale and wide-eyed, the colts sized up their opponent and found themselves wanting. For not only was he a knight, noble and true, but also a ferocious, fire-breathing dragon! Knowing themselves outmatched, they fled at top speed, revealing their true cowardice. The princess and the knight found themselves alone. “Sheesh, what a bunch of bullies,” said the brave knight. He turned and beheld the princess, and at once, he found his vigor sapped, his roaring voice softened. “Are, uh… are you okay?” “I am,” was the princess’s soft reply. The filly rose to her hooves, looking the knight eye to eye. “Thank you for rescuing me.” The knight said nothing in reply. He simply bowed his head, staring down at his claws. Frog looked down at her tea. “The princess was naive. She thought him quiet, or humble. She did not see the truth for what it was. But she knew little about boys, let alone dragons.” Frog closed her eyes. “She had her excuses.” With a frown, Twilight Sparkle scooted around the edge of the table and leaned close to Rainbow. “The princess in this story is Frog herself, as a filly,” she whispered. “Since the knight’s a dragon, I assume that’s Sir Spike as a hatchling too.” For a brief moment, Rainbow’s eyes went wide with recognition. Then she scowled. “I-I knew that!” she hissed. Some years passed, but through it all, the princess and the knight remained close friends. The princess grew into a budding teenage beauty, gaining even more refinement and grace. The baby blue dress from her cutie mark day had been just the beginning; she wished not only to grace herself with such beauty, but to bestow gifts upon everypony. The knight grew as well, lean and agile, now a head taller than the princess. His life had also been set in motion on that fateful day, for he now trained to become a true knight of his queen, to serve and protect her and all the land. The day fast approached when the knight might apply for this new post. The princess and he met upon the Zebran Bridge, for it was a favorite spot of theirs. They looked out over the ocean waters, watching the radiant sun as it sank below the horizon and set the sky ablaze. The princess smiled upon him. “Stay brave, my knight, for your performance tomorrow will be grand. Soon, you shall be the queen’s newest knight.” The knight scuffed his feet upon the bridge, bashful and uncertain. “I dunno,” said he. “What if I screw up? What if I’m not good enough? I haven’t trained enough for something like this.” He inhaled and met the princess’s eyes. “But I just gotta get in! I won’t be able to protect everypony unless I pass.” “You have nothing to fear, sir knight.” From her bag, the princess unveiled her gift to him: a dazzling vest adorned with diamonds, glistening blue. The same blue as her first dress. The same blue as her cutie mark. The knight looked to his navel, regarding his appearance as she placed the vest on him. Of course, it fit him to a T, and made him look so dashing. The princess commented as such. The knight looked back at her. “Why don’t you come with me?” “But of course,” said the princess. “I wouldn’t think of missing your trials.” But the knight shook his head. “No. I mean, you should try out with me. You could be a knight too.” “Moi?” The princess’s laugh was airy and melodic. “No no no, surely you jest. I couldn’t possibly… take up a sword. Fight against evil. Defend the realm.” She placed a hoof upon the knight’s chest, smoothed out the fabric of his proud vest, and graced him with another smile. “You are you, and I am I. You shall play your part, and I shall play mine.” Certainly, the princess was correct in part, for it would be folly for her to take up a weapon, to pretend to be a hero. The tenacious knight knew his way around a sword, and true to his destiny, he was accepted into the queen’s personal guard. But it was the princess’s folly, to hold herself to the same measure as her knight. He sought to protect ponies; she made him a vest. But the princess thought that everypony had their own destiny to fulfill, and she thought them to each be equally deserving of pursuit. That was simply how the princess had been raised. She had her excuses. “Frog.” Twilight met eyes with her above the tea, as she frowned in thought. “That’s not… It wasn’t a worthless gesture.” “I’m sure he really appreciated it,” said Fluttershy. Frog blinked and looked between them before giving a demure laugh. “Oh no no, dears. This is just a fairy tale. You mustn’t read too much into it.” Thus said, she took a small sip from her tea. “Oh.” Fluttershy looked to her side at the wall. “My mistake. I’m sorry.” The knight was now in the service of the queen, but it was not enough for him simply to serve. He sought to give to the best of his ability, to be the queen’s number-one knight, to be the Captain of her Guard. Thus it was that he left on a journey to save the land from a villain that had tormented the countryside for years—the Warty Warlock—a foul, dire toad that led the local wildlife in an uprising against the peaceful ponyfolk of the kingdom. And so the knight traveled deep within the murky moors, finding the lair of the Warty Warlock. A finely-honed blade rested in the knight’s claw, and strong iron armor covered his muscled form. But on top of these symbols of war, he was decorated in beauty, as he deserved. Atop his breastplate was the first of his gifts, the diamond vest. Wrapped around his frame, blocking out the biting cold, was a matching cloak made of thick wool. Standing by his side was the princess, now two heads below his height. She braved the depths to stay by his side; he stayed by her side to keep her safe. As the pair entered the inner sanctum of the swampy lair, they were met with a waiting trap. The Warty Warlock grinned at them, surrounded in a miasmic aura, flanked by a hundred evil critters: buzzards and manticores, hetake and timberwolves, gargoyles and yeti, all set to collapse upon the knight and his princess, to bring their quest to an abrupt halt. “Grribt! Are you ready to surrender yet?” croaked the Warty Warlock. He gave a baleful look to the princess, before smirking at the knight. “Or are you foolish enough to take on a hundred foes by yourself?” “You bet I am!” boasted the knight, raising his proud sword to the ready. “I’m not gonna just turn tail when the going gets tough. I’m going to prove that I can be the Captain of the Guard, protector of the kingdom—a hero!” “Rbbbt! A hero, says he!” The slimy villain let out a bubbly laugh, rubbing at the medallion around his neck. “If it is a heroic defeat that you desire, I can grant you that much!” The Warty Warlock raised a webbed foot to the sky and gathered to him the darkest of magics. All around the two ponies, a cacophony of cries went out amongst the beasts as they prepared their charge. Thus provoked—for a true knight never strikes without first declaring his intent—the knight raced forward. His blade was held low, nearly dragged against the swampy ground, cutting the odd twig and leaf in its path. At the end of his rush, face to face with the evil foe, he brought his blade upward in an arc, cutting forth with a mighty Sun-bound Slice. The Warty Warlock stopped laughing. He clutched his chest. Lightning split the sky in a brilliant flash. The villain faded from existence, and was no more. Pale and wide-eyed, like the colts who had first challenged him a decade before, the critters fled for their lives, swearing that they would never again do harm to the ponies of the realm. The knight beamed at his princess, raising his weapon on high. “We did it! We stopped the Warlock.” “Ah,” said the princess with a smile, “but that is not all we did.” Where their foe had once stood, now rested a small pile of spoils, amongst which was the medallion that had hung around his neck. The princess levitated the medallion from the pile, and brought it to the knight. “Does this not look familiar?” The knight’s eyes went wide with recognition. “No way. No way! Isn’t this—” “The Hero’s Medal.” Smiling, the princess placed it around her knight’s neck. “The symbol of a true champion, one who is brave and valiant. I can think of no one who deserves it more than you.” “Aww, c’mon,” said the knight, blushing and looking to the floor. “I couldn’t have done it without you believing in me.” They were both creatures of fate. Such could be said of all ponies, but this moment marked the point of no return. By hoofing him the symbol of a hero’s might, she had sealed his fate. But he had needed her to believe in him, and in a way, she had needed to believe in him for her own sake as well. She had her excuses. “Me again! Now Morgenstable had, as you have no doubt noticed, used these repeating lines both to drive home her point as well as to set up some super spooky foreshadowing. Of course, what’s here is only an abridgment, whereas the full version went on for several—” “Pinkie, who the hay are you talking to?” asked Rainbow. “And who’s ‘Morgenstable’?” “Oops, wrong story!” Pinkie clapped her hooves together and smiled sheepishly. “Go on ahead, Frog!” Err… yes. Anyway, as you are no doubt aware, the Hero’s Medal is a serious token of championship. No mere amateur is fit to wear it about their neck. But the knight was worthy to bear it, and the queen of the land recognized this as well. It was not long at all before she appointed him to be her Captain of the Guard. The princess continued to stand with him, offering him support and encouragement, and bestowing him with garments fitting for a captain. It came to pass that the knight was summoned to appear before his queen, for a new mission of utmost urgency. As always, the princess was welcomed to appear alongside him, for as the knight believed in the princess, so the queen believed in her as well. The queen gave her a smile of acknowledgement, which the princess accepted with a gracious bow. In that moment, recognized by the queen in this way, she almost felt like a real princess. “O valiant Captain,” the queen proclaimed, “the darkest of times now befalls our kingdom. For a new opponent has arisen, the Mare of the Night, who threatens to shroud the land in eternal darkness. Surely, if nothing is done to stop her, our kingdom is forfeit.” “Is that all?” asked the knight. He arose from his kneeling pose and stood before his queen. Now twice as tall as his princess, his chest swelled with the pride of a true champion. He was decorated with his diamond vest, his warm blue cape, a proud circlet of gemstones, and not least of all, the Hero’s Medal about his neck. He tapped at the medal with a claw. “In that case, I’ll just need a sword awesome enough to stop a fiend like that.” “What are you saying?” gasped the queen. “You cannot mean to seek the legendary blade of the hero?” Try as she might, Frog could not help but glance toward the center of the table, following the gazes of everypony else. On the table, lying gently beside the tea set, the Lyrabon rested unassumingly in its scabbard. “Sure do,” boasted the knight. “With a powerful sword like that, beating this Mare of the Night will be a snap. And then everypony will truly be safe, once and for all.” Still, the queen had one last question. “But can you accomplish such a task on your own?” The knight looked to his princess, and the two shared a smile. “I won’t be alone.” The queen nodded to the both of them. “You are truly brave, sir knight, and I could not ask for more in a Captain of the Guard. May the Sun ever keep you safe on your quest.” “But of course, Your Highness,” said the princess, beaming with her usual radiance. “For I shall ensure that your Captain returns to you, safe and sound.” Frog stared at her room-temperature tea. “Of course, the princess could have refrained from feeding his ego for all those years, praising him as a hero. She could have tempered his ambitions, and told him that what they had was enough. She could have taken up the way of the sword, as he had prompted her all those years back, instead of the way of silly, frilly things.” At length, she set the tea aside. “Or perhaps, she simply could have realized what he had been trying to say to her, for all those years. But by this time, it was too late.” Frog stared out through the entranceway, up at the star-filled sky. “She had run out of excuses.” Fluttershy tilted her head. The knight and the hero journeyed across the countryside in search of this mighty blade. True to form, the trials and tribulations could do little to stand in their way. It was not long at all before the pair made their way to the top of an awe-inspiring mountain, at the mighty peak of which was a blessed shrine. Housed within was the legendary blade, awaiting a hero fit to wield it. After conquering the trials within, the knight proved himself to be that selfsame hero. No sooner had they left the shrine, than lightning tore its way across the sky. Clouds rolled in from nowhere, coalescing together and blotting out the sun. The princess took shelter behind the guard of her knight, as he drew forth his new, mighty blade. The two of them were alone, and then they were not, as a mare black as pitch coalesced before them. She started at them with glowing eyes, baring fangs sharp and foreign. “Ah, so this is the mighty hero who thinks he can stop me.” The Mare of the Night regarded him, feigning disinterest. “How tragic.” The knight leaned down to his princess, whispering an aside. “Quick, get out of here while you have a chance. I’ll distract her.” He faced the Mare of the Night, brandishing his blade of legends on high, and called out. “That’s right! Your days of evil are at an end. I’m here to stop you once and for all.” His challenge declared, he rushed headlong at her. “No,” was her pithy reply. “You will not.” A great darkness sprang from her horn, shielding herself from the oncoming strike. The blade met blackness like a twig against a castle wall. With a piercing crystalline ring, the blade split in twain and flew free of its hilt. Pale and wide-eyed, the knight stared at the broken hilt, scarcely believing the sight before him. “How?” he asked aloud with hollow voice. “In just one hit…” “Because,” explained the demon queen, “you are a worm.” And she shot him in the chest. The knight staggered back, clutching at where the magic had struck him. With the speed of a brushfire, icy crystals now traveled down his legs, turning his scales blue before freezing into solid ice. He looked down at his form in panic, then took a few steps in the princess’s direction, until he could walk no further. “Run,” he implored her, as the ice rose up to his chest. “Get out of her while you can. You need to save…” Ice crystals climbed up his neck, which he stretched as far as he could, buying a few precious seconds. “I never got the chance to tell you, but I… I always loved—” And then he spoke no more. The princess reached up a hoof to his face, feeling nothing but cold. She rested her head against his chest, feeling a chill trickle from her horn to her forehead to her muzzle. Soft tears trickled down her nose, joining with him one final time. “What a waste. The legendary sword, broken.” The Mare of the Night stepped forward and lifted the broken hilt in her magic. With a disinterested stare, she tossed the offending item off the mountainside, to the waiting chasm below. “The mighty hero, felled.” With a flick of her head, the block of ice was lifted and hurled, meeting the same fate. The princess leaned off the edge of the cliff, hoof outstretched as her hero vanished from sight. She tried to call out to him but her voice failed her. Only her tears gave chase. “And his final sacrifice, wasted.” The princess whirled about, rising to her hooves. There was no cover, no means to protect herself as the Mare of the Night drew closer with every step. “You were told to run far away,” said she, “as well you should have, for you are nothing compared to me. Does life hold no meaning to you?” The princess could do nothing to act. Her voice still failed her. Her hooves were made of lead. Her mind slowed to a crawl. On instinct, she channeled magic into her horn, but she had no spell to cast. A dress could not save her here. “Hmph,” snorted the demon queen. “So you would receive a beautiful gift and then throw it away. Miserable pissant.” Pools of shadow magic, foul and profane, gathered in slender spirals along her horn. “Begone.” The blast knocked the princess off the cliffside. By some tragic twist of fate, she alone survived, but the dark magics had transformed her body, her very being. No longer had she her coat of white, her mane of violet. No longer had she beauty to share with the world. No longer had she her knight. No longer had she true love. No longer was she fit to call herself princess. After so much frivolous waste, karma had come due. She was left with nothing, and her knight had paid the ultimate price in her stead. ♢♢♢♢♢♢♢♢♢♢♢♢♢♢♢♢♢♢♢♢ Frog’s face fell. She stared quietly at her feet, letting the silence in the room lapse for a moment, before delivering the last line. “She had no excuse.” She jolted a moment later upon being embraced. Frog looked over to see Rainbow Dash, wrapping a gentle wing around her, wearing an uneasy expression. “I’m sorry, Frog. Really, really sorry.” “No, it’s…” Frog shook her head and shrugged, a half-hearted attempt to free herself from the winghug. “Just a fairy tale,” she muttered. By this point, the rest of the herd was already on their hooves. Pressing in, they all collapsed into a group hug, surrounding Frog with warmth and condolences. Once her resistance ran dry, Frog rested her head on Rainbow’s shoulder, squeezed her eyes shut. After a time, the group hug ran its course. Rainbow Dash fidgeted a stiff shoulder from the bottom of the pile, and in unison everypony took this as the signal to extract themselves. “Frog? Can I ask you a question?” Fluttershy’s question brought everypony to a halt. Freed enough from the pile, Frog turned to look at her, and with a small frown, she opened her mouth. “About the fairy tale, I mean.” Frog’s expression lightened. “Of course, dear,” was her quiet reply. “What would you like to know?” Fluttershy tapped at her muzzle before replying. “I’m sorry, since I haven’t heard a fairy tale in person before, but one of the parts that you kept saying was about, um, the knight’s passion. For protecting everypony, and the kingdom.” Frog’s nodding was slow. Though her eyes were open, they were dim and unfocused, as though they were watching something else entirely. “Yes. Yes, he did. The princess was awestruck by his passion. It was something into which he invested himself fully.” “Well… There was the other part that you said. Toward the end of the story.” Fluttershy straightened her posture suddenly, and her eye panels glowed and flickered with a soft rhythm. “Of course, the princess could have refrained from feeding his ego for all those years, praising him as a hero. She could have tempered his ambitions, and told him that what they had was enough.” Frog looked away, biting her lip gently. Meanwhile, Twilight Sparkle arched an eyebrow in Fluttershy’s direction. Fluttershy ran her hoof back and forth across the tassels of the pillow beneath her. “That part made it sound like this was something that he shouldn’t have done. But it was something that was important, right?” Smiling peacefully, Frog reached up with a leg, gently brushing the side of Fluttershy’s muzzle. “I’m afraid, dear Fluttershy, that life is filled with complex and difficult choices such as these. Had the knight simply walked away, it’s true that this story could have had a much different ending.” She held eye contact with Fluttershy a moment longer, then sighed. “But, no. I do not think him the sort to abandon his course, no matter what the reason. He was a knight who believed in his convictions. He believed that his cause was something worth fighting for.” “What about you?” Rainbow Dash met her gaze evenly, a calm demeanor overtaking her. “Did you think the knight’s cause was worth fighting for?” Frog frowned. There was no heat, no reaction to the pointed question. She simply frowned. When no reply came, Rainbow Dash shrugged. “Dunno. Just seems like something worth thinking about, y’know?” Blinking, Frog looked up toward the night sky once more. “Heavens. I didn’t realize how late it had gotten. I got quite caught up with the storytelling…” “Oopsie.” Pinkie Pie scratched at the back of her head. “We were already saying it was too late, and now it’s like three late. We can head back to the inn if you’re ready to get some zzz’s.” “Actually.” Frog’s smile was small but genuine, as she looked to a blank portion of the wall. “My accommodations are meager, but I’d be quite happy if you spent the night. It… it is good to have company, on a night like this.” Pinkie Pie’s small smile met hers. “Sure. Sure, that sounds fun.” “Don’t worry ‘bout it.” Rainbow Dash swatted her away. “We’ve made do with way worse. We’ll manage out here.” As advertised, Frog’s home was fairly limited for housing four guests. All the same, the ponies were thankful for all that Frog had to offer. They situated themselves in the main room, laying out on mats and pillows. Frog retired herself to the back room once the others had made themselves comfortable. The air felt thick and stifling in the main room, with Frog’s fairy tale hanging heavy in the air behind her. Yet, they all reached a silent agreement. While much could be said in the wake of this story, there was little that needed to be said. And thus, they settled down for the night, staring up at the hole to the night sky above, each resigning herself to her own thoughts. Less than an hour later, the stillness of the night was interrupted by a single squeaky hinge. Fluttershy was seated in the corner, her legs curled up underneath her. She looked up at the sound, tilting her head. “Frog?” Frog jolted, looking around the darkened forechamber. “Oh,” she stage whispered, “sorry. I didn’t mean to wake you.” “What’s up?” asked Pinkie Pie. Around the room, everypony else stirred and showed signs of life. “I could not manage to sleep tonight,” Frog said. “Not after… well. I take it that nopony else was sleeping, either?” They nodded, all voicing something to the affirmative. “What’s on your mind?” Twilight asked. “Well, ah…” Frog rubbed one leg behind the other. “I had been thinking, a lot, about the fairy tale. And about what the prin… what the mare should do next.” Inhaling deep from her chest, she looked around the ponies in the room. “I think I would… I would like to at least look at Nightmare Moon’s keep. At least to see it and perhaps, well…” Rainbow Dash’s neck cracked, resonating around the room. “I ain’t sleepy. Dunno about you girls.” “Ain’t no time to party like the present!” Pinkie Pie rose to her hooves and hopped in place, grinning widely to Frog. With a nod from Fluttershy, Twilight looked to Frog and licked her lips. “It’s your choice. But all of us are behind you. And we’re ready.” “Right.” Nodding in turn, Frog walked over to her wall hook, grasped her thick traveler’s cloak, and draped it about her. Beneath the cloak, her broadsword hung against the wall. Frog stared at the weapon, her leg outstretched as she quietly mulled away. Twilight stepped closer and raised a tepid hoof. “If you’d like,” she said, “I could keep that with my things. In case you decide you want it later, I mean.” Slow at first, Frog nodded. “Yes… Yes. I don’t suspect that I should need it, but there’s no harm in being prepared, I suppose…” She looked to the others. “Anyways. Shall we?” ∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞∞ 600 AD Pommel Mountain Range It seemed difficult to imagine a skyline darker than night, yet as the ponies’ midnight stroll led them toward the eastern coastline, darkness was precisely what they found. Thick stormclouds swirled in the sky just off the edge of the horizon, blotting out the stars above. Pinkie Pie squinted her eyes, focusing onto the faint outline rising up from the horizon. “An ocean apart.” Frog walked up behind her, nodding toward the far shoreline. “A reasonable distance for the pegasi knights, perhaps, but it would be folly to storm her castle with only a third of Sugardia’s forces and nary a unicorn. And so she remains, protected from us.” She led Pinkie’s attention toward the nearby mountain, at the foot of which they now stood. Its sheer granite cliffs loomed high above them, a dull steely grey in the blackness of the night. “And yet, through whatever mysterious magic, Sugardia finds herself on the defensive, as waves of ground-bound forces find their way to our shores. As the rumors would tell it, on darkened nights such as this, a particular mountain opens wide its cavern mouth, and unleashes hordes of heinous Mystics onto our shores.” Twilight Sparkle rubbed her chin as she walked back and forth in front of the cliffside. “And you think this is that mountain.” “So if they can go out, we can go in!” Rainbow Dash slapped her hooves against one another. “And then we can take the fight to them!” “It’s a good plan in principle.” Twilight tapped the granite with her horn, frowned, and traveled down a few dozen meters before repeating. “And your hunch might be right. Something sure does seem fishy about this wall. I’m feeling some sort of energy, pulsing from deep within.” She frowned and looked back over her shoulder. “But it’s not enough that I can figure out the magic words to open it up for us. I mean, maybe with enough time to study it…” “Still!” Pinkie Pie followed behind Twilight, tapping her forehead against the wall as well. “It’s a lead, y’know? It gives us something to do, and no step’s more important than the first one.” Fluttershy tilted her head. “Is everything alright, Frog? Are you too cold?” Frog stood motionless, her chest raised, as she stared up at the cloudy sky. A small gap appeared in the cloud cover, and her eyes fixated on one twinkling star in particular. “What am I, Spike?” she whispered to the sky. “Would you even recognize me? I’ve changed so much.” She contemplated her star in silence, then gave a small chuckle. “And yet, perhaps not in the way that matters most.” Frog lowered her gaze to the dry, dusty plain in front of the rockside. “Rainbow Dash,” she said with a sudden projection of voice. “Uh?” Rainbow jerked upright, looking left and right as though making sure Frog meant that Rainbow Dash. “Y-Yeah. What’s up?” Frog nosed toward the patch of dirt. “The Lyrabon, if you please.” Rainbow froze for just a moment longer, before recognition dawned in her eyes. With a crisp nod, she stepped up to the indicated spot. The Lyrabon sang once more as it was freed of its scabbard, held aloft in Rainbow’s mouth. With a determined flip and lunge, Rainbow Dash drove the blade down into the ground, burying a few inches of the tip into the soil. She slowly backpedalled, leaving the Lyrabon poised in its makeshift pedestal. Twilight Sparke hissed loudly, grumbling something about delicate tempered edges and the dulling effects of coarse sand. Frog nodded to the sword and studied it for a moment, taking in its radiance, its restored glory. “Thank you. And also…” Her voice died in her throat. Frog licked her lips with a drying tongue, and tried to force any bit of moistness into her mouth. “Could you… Could I have…” As she struggled to speak, Rainbow Dash approached her side with a bright red ribbon in her mouth. She leaned above Frog’s neck, and with a practiced grace, affixed the Hero’s Medal around her. Rainbow gave Frog a soft bop on the shoulder, along with one of her signature cocky grins. “It’s yours. Take it already, yeah?” Frog looked down at her chest, running a soft touch across the embossed medallion. “The Medal,” she managed to say at last. “The Hero’s… Medal.” Her thoughts were distracted by laughter: light, playful, like foals at a playground. When Frog looked up, the Lyrabon was missing from its makeshift stand. On either side of the wound in the earth stood a pony, one a mint-green unicorn, the other a cream-toned earth pony. They smirked at Frog beneath darkened brows—a pair of predators on the verge of a kill. “Well.” Bon Bon exchanged a look with her partner before approaching her prey. “Of all the ponies to stand before us, I would never have expected to see this one.” While Bon Bon circled around Frog clockwise, Lyra approached counter-clockwise. The two of them swirled around her like a vortex of judgement. “Me neither,” replied Lyra. “But here she is. Sir Spike’s understudy, in the flesh.” Twilight took a step forward, opening her mouth to shout out a rebuttal, but she collided with Rainbow Dash’s outstretched hoof. Rainbow shook her head and fixed Twilight with a firm stare. Frog, for her part, kept her gaze straight and her composure firm as she was brought on trial. “I am not Spike, and I shall never be him. I am myself.” “Indeed you are.” Bon Bon coolly stared Frog down as she crossed in front of her partner. “And we are the embodiment of a legend, a blade sought after by countless foals. What makes you think you deserve to stand here, in our presence?” Frog smiled back to Bon Bon, unperturbed. She levitated the medallion around her neck, lifting it up for inspection. “Because the only pony worthy of wielding you, is she who possesses the Hero’s Medal.” “Uh huh,” snapped Lyra. “You got your grubby hoof-like things on a hunk of metal, so we have no choice but to slavishly obey.” Frog shook her head. “The Hero’s Medal holds no magic. It is a symbol. It is an ideal, a resilient spirit that is more than any one pony. I stand before you now, wearing this, because I hold this spirit close to my heart.” She stared down Lyra until the mare walked behind her, out of view. “Do you find me unfit to wear it?” “Hmph. That remains to be seen,” Bon Bon muttered. “But since you seem so eager to presume yourself as our master, continue to do so for one minute longer. With us in hoof, how would you wield us?” She crossed into view from the same side Lyra had vanished from. “Mmm? What is it that you seek?” Frog took pause. She considered the empty cut in the earth, until with a nod of her head she reached a satisfactory answer. “Justice.” Lyra snorted, nearly losing her hoofing. “Revenge! A child’s true love was struck down, and she wishes the murderer to suffer the same fate. An eye for an eye!” She spat on the ground. As Lyra met Frog’s eyes, she now found them to be distant, much like her voice. “No. Spike is…” Frog took a breath then continued. “Spike is dead. There is nothing that I can do to change that, least of all through further violence.” She shook her head, slow and methodical. “No. Revenge would be pointless. I am here because Spike believed in something grand, and I would not see those hopes and dreams die with him.” Bon Bon’s stare pierced her, dragging Frog’s gaze to the right as she crossed in front. “Revenge would be ‘pointless’, you say. So I am to assume that you will derive no pleasure from the task before you.” Bon Bon waited for a reply. None came. “Mmm. So, in spite of your claims to be more than a simple understudy, here you are, acting as a proxy for him and his beliefs.” “No,” snapped Frog, replanting a leg. “They were not just his. They are ours. We believed in protecting everypony, in a safe Sugardia, in a world where a pony need not live in fear because of who she was… or who she was not. We believed in a world where everything was just and good, where everypony lived together in harmony. And this fiend, this Nightmare Moon seeks to torment and kill all of ponykind, by creating an unspeakable agent of death and destruction. I must set this straight.” Lyra gave a gentle tug upon the Hero’s Medal with her magic. “Because you’re a ‘hero.’” “I am not,” said Frog, earning her raised eyebrows from both of the circling sword spirits. She touched her foot to the Hero’s Medal. “That is a title earned by action and deed. Nothing I have accomplished is worthy of the title. But as I declared earlier, I have the bravery and drive of a hero in my heart. I wear this not because of past deeds, but because of future promise. And,” she said, smiling off to the side where the other ponies stood, “because I have friends who believe in me.” “Friends who, until recently, were led by Rainbow Dash,” said Bon Bon. “But now as the Hero of Legend, you’ll usurp control for yourself.” “Oh, now you’re just being silly,” said Frog, waving off the remark. “Rainbow Dash has done a marvelous job leading this small outfit, and no decorative award—no matter how prestigious—will change that fact.” She turned to Bon Bon and coolly replied, “No, madam. My friends will not serve me. They shall give me strength.” Over Frog’s shoulder, Lyra and Bon Bon’s gazes met, and the pair huffed in unison. As they spoke, their pace quickened in circles around Frog, drawing to a dizzying whirl. “You speak of justice,” said Lyra behind her. “Yet you couldn’t be stirred to action until your true love’s murderer was going to be judged. Do not deny it, for all in attendance saw this with their own eyes.” “You speak of being a hero in the future,” said Bon Bon from her right. “Yet in the past you were naught but a dressmaker. Do not deny it, for I heard the ‘fairy tale’ from your own lips.” “You speak of heroic devotion,” said Lyra from her left. “Yet you were resigned to wallow in guilt in your home since the day that your inattentiveness caused the Queen to fall in battle. Do not deny it, for I watched you wallow, night after night.” “You speak of heroic drive,” said Bon Bon in front of her. “Yet it was Rainbow Dash who undertook the quest to see Lyra and I restored to our original power. Do not deny it, for I bore witness to the entire journey.” “You speak of earning the right to wear that medal around your neck,” said Lyra from behind her. “Yet thrice Rainbow Dash offered you the honor and thrice you renounced it. Do not deny it, for I was present for every fight between you two.” “You speak of being your own self, independent and strong,” said Bon Bon from her left. “Yet you could not stand here before us were it not for Spike and everything he gave for you. Do not deny it, for you wear your heart on your sleeve.” “You speak of bringing Nightmare Moon to justice,” said Lyra from her right. “Yet she is a sorceress beyond measure, one of the strongest foes you will ever do battle against. Do not deny it, for to do so would be to brand yourself a blind foal.” The two mares resumed their original posts, one on each side of where their blade once stood. Facing Frog, they lifted their noses in the air and looked down upon her. “So answer us,” said Bon Bon. “The question that rests on everypony’s tongue,” said Lyra. In unison, they asked, “Why don’t you just go home?” Frog bowed her head. She stood in silence, the accusations bearing heavily upon her shoulders. Around her, Rainbow Dash and her friends fidgeted and waited. While the silence weighed down on them all, Rainbow kept her gaze focused and determined upon Frog, never wavering. Lyra and Bon Bon, for their parts, also remained motionless, awaiting their answer with a stoic peace. Frog’s eyes slid open. Nodding twice to herself, she looked up at Lyra. “Because the world is beautiful.” She turned to Bon Bon. “And because beauty is worth protecting.” Lyra looked at Bon Bon; Bon Bon looked at Lyra. They smiled. The two mares dropped down upon a knee and bowed deeply, each resting her chin upon the ground. With a bright flash, both ponies were replaced with glistening stars of light, hovering just above the surface of the ground. They whirled about each other in furious double orbit, then in a violent crescendo, they collided and everything turned to white. As the light died down, all that remained behind was the blade of legends itself, the Lyrabon. Frog took three steps forward, staring down at the hilt of the sword. “I am sorry, Spike,” she said aloud to the sword. “I am several years too late. But I am here. I apologize for keeping you waiting.” And then, with a glow from her horn and a thrust of her head, she tore the Lyrabon free from the earth. Pooling from her horn, pale blue magic gathered along the upturned blade, gathering in strength and intensity. Unable to be contained within a single focal point, the magic poured forth into the sky above, piercing through the murky clouds and up into the stratosphere. The clouds melted around the column of blue light, tearing away to unveil the night sky in all its beauty, glistening with millions of diamonds. The eyes of Rainbow Dash and her friends were drawn upwards, taking in the spectacle for all that it was. Frog’s eyes were elsewhere. She dropped her gaze to the granite wall in front of her, that which stood between her and Nightmare Moon. In a masterful arc, she brought down the Lyrabon. A blade of light, pure magic coursing in a column above her, suddenly collided with a face of a mountain, and the weaker force yielded. In a flurry of explosions, the stone cliff ripped in half, falling to either side of her force of will. As debris fell from the cavern ceiling and dust settled all around them, the mouth of a tunnel could be seen deep within, showing them the way forward. Frog held the Lyrabon at her side. While the blade no longer screamed into the sky, it still hummed with a magic unique to her alone. She walked forward, at the ready for anything she might encounter. “Excuse me,” Fluttershy managed to whisper, “did you just cut a mountain in half?” “Jeez,” was Rainbow Dash’s whisper. Gravity tugged her ears, her tail, her jaw. The only part of her given free reign was her ever-widening eyes. “Frog, that was… incredible. I’ve never seen a move like that.” “Rarity.” Rainbow blinked. “W-wha?” Frog turned to face them, her cloak billowing in the rustling dust of the explosion. The determination in her eyes matched the same brilliance of the Lyrabon’s glow. Though she lacked a mane in this amphibian form, she flicked her leg through her ‘mane’ all the same, and in that moment, nopony doubted her beauty. “My name is Rarity.” * * *